Date post: | 12-May-2018 |
Category: |
Documents |
Upload: | nguyendang |
View: | 224 times |
Download: | 2 times |
Improved Water and Land Management in the
Ethiopian Highlands: Its Impact on Downstream Stakeholders Dependent on the Blue Nile
Intermediate Results Dissemination Workshop February 5-6, 2009, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Organized by
IWMI Subregional Office for East Africa and Nile Basin,
Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Compiled by
Seleshi B. Awulachew, Teklu Erkossa, Vladimir Smakhtin and
Ashra Fernando
Improved Water and Land Management in the Ethiopian
Highlands: Its Impact on Downstream Stakeholders
Dependent on the Blue Nile
Intermediate Results Dissemination Workshop
February 5-6, 2009
Compiled by
Seleshi B. Awulachew, Teklu Erkossa, Vladimir Smakhtin and Ashra
Fernando
3
IWMI receives its principal funding from 58 governments, private foundations and international
and regional organizations known as the Consultative Group on International Agricultural
Research (CGIAR). Support is also given by the Governments of Ghana, Pakistan, South Africa,
Sri Lanka and Thailand. The CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food (CPWF) supported
the project, the workshop and the outputs reported here; IWMI together with International
Livestock Research Institute (ILRI), Cornell University (CU), USA; the Omdurman Islamic
University, UNESCO Chair in Water Resources (OIU, UNESCO-CWR), Sudan; Bahir Dar
University, Addis Ababa University, Amhara Agricultural Research Institute, Forum for Social
Studies, Ethiopia have implemented the project and the papers presented here.
Awulachew, S. B.; Erkossa, T.; Smakhtin, V.; Fernando, A. (Comp.). 2009. Improved water
and land management in the Ethiopian highlands: Its impact on downstream stakeholders
dependent on the Blue Nile. Intermediate Results Dissemination Workshop held at the
International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI), Addis Ababa, Ethiopia, 5-6 February
2009. Summary report, abstracts of papers with proceedings on CD-ROM. Colombo,
Sri Lanka: International Water Management Institute. doi:10.3910/2009.201
/ river basin management / water governance / simulation models / reservoirs /
sedimentation / hydrology / water balance / erosion / soil conservation / watersheds /
irrigation schemes /Blue Nile / Ethiopia / Sudan /
ISBN 978-92-9090-716-9
Copyright © 2009, by IWMI. All rights reserved. IWMI encourages the use of its
material provided that the organization is acknowledged and kept informed in all such
instances.
Please send inquiries and comments to: [email protected]
Table of Contents
i
Table of Contents
Acknowledgements ...................................................................................... iii
Introduction ................................................................................................... v
SESSION I: OPENING AND GENERAL ...................................... 1
Opening address ............................................................................................ 2 Dr. Akissa Bahri ........................................................................................................................................ 2 Dr. Kim Geheb .......................................................................................................................................... 5
Blue Nile Basin Characterization and Geospatial Atlas ........................... 6
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture
in the Upper Blue Nile Basin ........................................................................ 7
SESSION II: WATER DEMAND MODELING .......................... 22
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows
in the Lake Tana Subbasin ........................................................................ 23
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir ............................ 38
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme ........... 50
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN
Model - A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia .................... 70
Application of the Water Evaluation And Planning (WEAP) Model to
Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile ............. 78
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir ........................................ 89
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment
Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana
Subbasin ..................................................................................................... 100
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile Basin
using the Open Model Interface Approach ............................................ 132
Rainfall-discharge relationships for monsoonal climates ..................... 141
Table of Contents
ii
A Water Balance-Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for
Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands ............................. 152
SESSION III: WATERSHED MODELING ............................... 159
Assessment of Hydrological Controls on Gully Formation and Upland
Erosion near Lake Tana, Northern Highlands of Ethiopia .................. 160
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully
Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana .................................. 162
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil
Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile
River ........................................................................................................... 170
SESSION IV: POLICY AND INSTITUTIONS ......................... 184
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and
their Impact on Environmental Management ....................................... 185
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case
of the Eastern Nile Subbasin .................................................................... 232
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture:
Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan ..................................................... 246
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile
Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds, Ethiopia ....... 254
SESSION V: MINUTES SUMMARY, LIST OF POSTERS AND
ANNEXES ................................................................................... 281
Minutes summary ..................................................................................... 282
List of Posters ............................................................................................ 298
Annexes ...................................................................................................... 300
List of Participants .................................................................................... 301
Acknowledgements
iii
Acknowledgements This proceedings booklet and the attached CD contain the results of the workshop
conducted during February 5- 6, 2009 and present findings from PN19 ‗Improved Water
and Land Management in the Ethiopian Highlands and its Impact on Downstream
Stakeholders Dependent on the Blue Nile (Upstream/ Downstream in Blue Nile)‖. The
CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food (CPWF) supported the project, the
workshop and the outputs reported here. The International Water Management Institute
(IWMI) together with International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI), Cornell
University (CU), USA, the Omdurman Islamic University, UNESCO Chair in Water
Resources (OIU, UNESCO-CWR), Sudan, Bahir Dar University (BDU), Addis Ababa
University (AAU), Amhara Regional Agricultural Research Institute (ARARI), Forum
for Social Studies (FSS), Ethiopia, have implemented the project and were involved in
the papers presented here. The authors of the papers and beneficiaries of the project
would like to thank the support rendered to implement the project and conduct the
workshop.
Project
The reports and papers included in this booklet and on the CD are part of the projects
related to the Nile Basin supported by the CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food
(CPWF).
Partners
About the CPWF
Water scarcity is one of the most pressing issues facing humanity today. The Challenge
Program on Water and Food (CPWF), an initiative of the Consultative Group on
International Agricultural Research (CGIAR), contributes to efforts of the inter-national
community to ensure global diversions of water to agriculture are maintained at the level
of the year 2000. It is a multiinstitutional research initiative that aims to increase water
productivity for agriculture-that is, to change the way water is managed and used to meet
international food security and poverty eradication goals-and to leave more water for
other users and the environment.
The CPWF deals with complex agriculture-related systems, for which there are a growing
number of stakeholders generating information. Its community-of-practice works in
innovative ways to collate, unify, organize, extract, distill and share the ideas,
information and knowledge to allow next-users to gain insights and deduce principles,
concepts and cause-and-effect relationships from its research results. To help achieve
this, the CPWF focuses on building multi-disciplinary north-south and south-south
UNES
CO CHAIR
IN
WATER
RESOU
RCES WATE
R IS
LIFE ا.جس.
.
O.I.U.
UNESCO-CWR
Acknowledgements
iv
partnerships, as demonstrated by the work produced in this special journal of Water
Policy.
www.waterandfood.org
General Introduction
v
Introduction
This proceeding provides the papers and discussion results of a two-day workshop that was
organized at International Water Management Institute (IWMI) office in Addis Ababa during the
period of February 6-8, 2009 in relation to CPWF Project 19 – Improved water and land
management in the Ethiopian Highlands and its impact on downstream stakeholders dependent on
the Blue Nile. Short title: Upstream Downstream (USDS) in the Nile. The project is being under
implementation during the last one and half years in partnership with various institutions that
include International Livestock Research Institute, Cornell University, Omdurman Islamic
University-UNESCO Chair in Water Resources, Addis Ababa University, Bahir Dar University,
Amhara Regional Agricultural Research Institute and Forum for Social Studies.
The main aims of the workshop had been:
Bring together key stakeholders relevant to the project
Present, debate and validate the intermediate results of the project
Disseminate key results to wider audiences through workshop participating
stakeholders
Follow up on the progress of the project and plan remaining tasks of the project
The workshop focus themes were: General characterization of the Blue Nile Basin
Watershed modeling and analysis
Water demand and allocation modeling and simulation
Policy and institutions of the water management in the Blue Nile basin
During the workshop, three opening and programmatic speeches, 27 technical papers and
10 posters were presented, being divided in 4 sessions. The papers were enriched by
discussions and debate at the end of each session attended by over 60 participants from
over 36 institutions. The program of the workshop as executed attached in Annex 1.
This proceeding is compiled based on mainly from the project output, but one additional
input from Egypt. The proceeding is compiled as submitted by the authors and hence
content and quality of the papers is the responsibility of respective author/s. The contents
of discussion and associated documentations are compiled by session rapporteurs. This
proceeding therefore includes the following session contents:
Session I - Opening
Session II - Water demand modeling
Session III- Watershed modeling
Session IV-Policy and institutions
Session V- Group discussion, plenary and closing
In addition to the above, the proceeding also contains the following soft copies on
interactive CD:
- The above papers and reports
General Introduction
vi
- The pdf version of all power point presentations
- All posters presented
- The Blue Nile atlas that includes over 270 figures and maps characterizing the
Blue Nile
- 2 working papers related to IWMI WP131 and 132 focusing on Blue Nile
characterization and policy and institutions respectively
We hope that this documentation provides significant knowledge base and wide
information material who would like to pursue further studies, research and undertake
development in the Nile Basin in general and Blue Nile in particular.
Seleshi Bekele Awulachew (PhD)
Project Leader
Opening and General
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
1
Session I: Opening and General
Opening and General
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
2
Opening address
Dr. Akissa Bahri
Dear Participants,
Dear Colleagues,
It is with great pleasure that I welcome you all on behalf of the International Water
Management Institute and on my own behalf to this workshop on ―Improved Water and
Land Management in the Ethiopian Highlands and its Impact on Downstream
Stakeholders Dependent on the Blue Nile‖.
This two-day meeting is an ―intermediate results dissemination workshop‖ of a
collaborative research project sponsored by the CPWF that started in 2007 and should
come to a closure by the end of 2009. It is implemented by the International Water
Management Institute (IWMI), the International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI),
Cornell University (CU), Bahir Dar University (BDU) and Addis Ababa University
(AAU), the Forum for Social Studies (FSS), Amhara Agricultural Research Institute
(ARARI), the Omdurman Islamic University (OIU)/UNESCO Chair in Water Resources,
and the Hydraulic Research Station (HRS).
The aims of the workshop are fourfold:
1. To bring together key stakeholders relevant to the project
2. To present, debate and validate the intermediate results of the project
3. To disseminate key results to wider audiences through workshop participating
stakeholders
4. To follow up on the progress of the project and plan remaining tasks of the
project.
The International Water Management Institute, member of the CGIAR system, is the
leading international scientific research organization on water, food and environment,
with an overall mission ―to improve the management of land and water resources for
food, livelihoods and the environment‖. In Africa, IWMI conducts research in three sub-
regions; the Nile Basin and East Africa, West Africa and Southern Africa. Water scarcity,
poverty, low productivity, health issues, water quality, endemic droughts and floods and
transboundary conflicts in water management, along with land degradation are some of
the critical issues Africa faces. IWMI works closely with Africa-wide sub–regional
organizations and many national and agricultural research systems to study the land and
water management challenges facing poor rural communities and to develop innovative
approaches, tools and interventions that can improve food security, livelihoods, health
and ecosystem services.
Opening and General
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
3
In IWMI new strategic plan, particular attention is given to managing the impacts of land
degradation on water resources with the specific goal to reducing the negative impacts of
inappropriate land management in catchments to enhance water quality and livelihoods.
This research project on ―Upstream Downstream in the Nile‖ is meant to fill a knowledge
gap regarding the run-off, sedimentation, erosion, hydrological, hydraulic and
institutional processes in the Blue Nile watersheds. It aims at improving the
understanding of these processes and to overcome constraints to up-scaling promising
management practices and technologies within the watershed. The work includes
hydrological and water allocation modeling, watershed management and policy and
institutional studies at various levels. The specific activities of the project include inter
alia micro-watershed and watershed level analysis of rainfall-runoff-sediment processes;
analysis of sub-basin level impacts of water management interventions; evaluation of
sediment management impacts on water infrastructure such as micro-dams; basin and
transboundary level analysis of the impacts of upstream interventions on major
reservoirs.
This project is contributing to the CPWF immediate objectives and themes. It focuses on
seeking innovations in improved water management and aims to enable people to benefit
from the improved management of land and water resources, namely improved
productivity of water through better water management. The Blue Nile upper catchments
are highly degraded area where many poor people live. The downstream riparian are also
affected due to heavy erosion, sedimentation, poor water quality and similar impacts. It
also strongly relates to the integrated management of the basin water, as the project helps
to understand the overall water availability, current and future water allocations under the
face of water scarcity. It is primarily focused on understanding the causes of degradation,
impacts on water availability, impacts of these on livelihood, mechanisms of reversal of
these degradation so that production systems can be made on sustainable natural
resources base and ultimately the poor people benefit. Thus, it is a pro-poor focused and
addressing sustainable natural resources management. It also helps future development
interventions through evaluation of impacts of past investment in the watersheds and
water management.
This project has also a strong capacity building component with a total of 18 M.Sc. and 1
Ph.D. students which have been supported by the project and whose work will be
presented during this workshop.
Dear Participants, Dear Colleagues,
The program of the workshop includes various presentations on the three major
components of the project: the ―Water Allocation Modeling of the Blue Nile‖, the
―Watershed Modeling‖ and the ―Policy and Institutions Component‖ and group
discussions.
This workshop is a major milestone in the implementation of our research project. At the
end of these 2-day workshop, we should have a better understanding of the progress
Opening and General
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
4
made regarding the knowledge on current water and land management practices and
understanding of best practices, the results obtained so far as to the modeling works for
water allocation and watershed management and the remaining tasks that should lead to
better natural resources management and to the improvement of the environmental
conditions of the Blue Nile Basin.
On behalf of IWMI, I would like to thank you all for coming and look forward for a
fruitful workshop.
Thank you
Opening and General
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
5
Dr. Kim Geheb
The CPWF is a network of research and development institutions, which provides
support towards research for development in the field of water and food.
CP 19: Improved water and land management in the Ethiopian highlands and its impact
on downstream stakeholders dependent on the Blue Nile, in short: Upstream Downstream
(USDS) in the Nile is one of the projects supported by CPWF. In brief:
The CPWF has been very proud to be associated with upstream downstream
project, lead by IWMI, form its offices here in Addis Ababa.
It congratulates the research team on progress made so far on this project, which
we feel has a distinct and definite contribution to make towards the management
of the Blue Nile Basin, and indeed the broader Nile system
The CPWF notes the significant progress made with respect to the development
of models that can estimate erosion rates and sediment loads and, indeed, the
proposal of methods by which these can be remedied
We believe that these and other supporting studies from the project can contribute
to a dialogue on water allocation within this basin
We draw attention to the very substantial partnerships that have enabled this
project succeed, and take pride in have been a part of this
Thank you very much
Blue Nile Basin Characterization and Geospatial Atlas
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
6
Blue Nile Basin Characterization and Geospatial Atlas
Aster Denekew Yilma1 and Seleshi Bekele Awulachew1
1International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
The Blue Nile is the most important tributary river of the Nile. It provides 62% of the flow at Aswan. Information related to GIS layers and commonly available data are not easily accessible to researchers and practitioners, and repeated duplication of efforts has been observed to generate such information. The paper deals with the characterization of the Blue Nile Basin and its subbasins. The characterization generally looks into the topography, climatic conditions, hydrology and land use/cover, soil, and other related properties. The basin, as well as selected subbasins, watersheds, and micro-watersheds are considered and presented separately to help provide basic information at watershed to basin level, and lay the basis for other studies and researches. The basic information in this paper comes from the Blue Nile Geospatial Database, which has been developed for the upstream/downstream project. Several maps describing various aspects of spatial information of the basin, subbasins, selected watersheds and micro-watersheds based on the database are produced in the form of an atlas. It provides over 270 various maps and figures, and the digital information system can be accessible for various uses.
(For details of the complete report, see the separate PDF file on the CD titled ‘Blue Nile Characterization and Geospatial Atlas’).
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
7
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
Teklu Erkossa1, Seleshi Bekele Awulachew1, Amare Haileslassie2 and Aster Denekew
Yilma1
1International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 2International Livestock Research Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
With its total area of about 200,000 square kilometers (km2), which is 20% of the country’s land mass, and accommodating 25% of the population, the Upper Blue Nile Basin (Abbay) is one of the most important river basins in Ethiopia. About 40% of agricultural products and 45% of the surface water of the country are contributed by this basin. However, the characteristic-intensive biophysical variation, rapid population growth, land degradation, climatic fluctuation and resultant low agricultural productivity and poverty are posing daunting challenges to sustainability of agricultural production systems in the basin. This calls for technological interventions that not only enhance productivity and livelihoods in the basin, but also bring about positive spillover effects on downstream water users. In this study, the farming systems in the basin have been stratified and characterized; and promising agricultural water management technologies, which may upgrade the productivity of smallholder rainfed agriculture while improving downstream water quality, have been identified. As a consequence, supplementary and full irrigation using rainwater and drainage of waterlogged soils are recognized as being among the promising agricultural water management technologies that can be easily scaled-up in the basin. The magnitude of the impacts of these technologies on the productivity of the upstream farming systems and the concomitant effects on the downstream water flow and quality are under investigation, assuming an assortment of scenarios.
Introduction
Currently, Abbay is one of the least planned and managed sub-basins of the Nile. About
two thirds of the area of this densely populated basin fall in the highlands and hence
receive fairly high rainfall of 800 to 2,200 mm per year. However, the rainfall is erratic in
terms of both spatial and temporal distribution, with dry spells that significantly reduce
crop yields and sometimes lead to total crop failure. The impacts of droughts on the
people and their livestock in the area can sometimes be catastrophic. The population
located in the downstream part of the Blue Nile, is entirely dependent on the river water
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
8
for supplementary irrigation. Canal and reservoir siltation is a major problem
exacerbating socio-economic burdens on poor riparian farmers together with the
seasonality of the river flow. Solutions lie in improving agricultural practices and
conserving water at all levels by all stakeholders: both within Ethiopia and downstream
communities. Particularly, there is a paramount need for integrated agricultural water
management to overcome the effects of water shortage in small scale agriculture,
alleviate poverty and food insecurity; and avert the negative impacts of climate change in
this part of the basin through improving rainfed system. As a component of the water
demand assessment, identification of appropriate agricultural water management
interventions, analysis of impacts on productivity and poverty alleviation as well as
hydrology need to be carried out. This study therefore focuses on various indigenous and
research based agricultural water management technological interventions suitable for
small holder farmers in the Abbay basin, and attempts to quantify their impacts on
productivity of the small holders agricultural as well as the overall livelihood of the
farming communities. Therefore the overall objectives are to:
• Characterize the upper BNSB and establish ‗homogenous‘ units of agricultural
production Systems ;
• Identify agricultural water management technologies for upgrading the rainfed
systems;
• Evaluate the impact of selected agricultural water management technologies on
agricultural productivity, water availability and hydrology;
• Develop methodologies and decision support tools for improved agricultural
water management in the basin.
Methodology
Location and biophysical settings
The Blue Nile basin covers an area of 311,548 km2 (Hydrosult et al 2006b). It provides
62% of the flow reaching Aswan (World Bank, 2006). The river and its tributaries drain a
large proportion of the central, western and south-western highlands of Ethiopia before
dropping to the plains of Sudan. The confluence of the Blue Nile and the White Nile is at
Khartoum. The basin is characterized by highly rugged topography and considerable
variation of altitude ranging from about 350m at Khartoum to over 4250m a.m.s.l. (meter
above sea level) in the Ethiopian highlands. The main stay of the economy in the upper
part of the basin is rainfed small scale mixed agriculture. Although the total annual
rainfall the area receives is relatively good, due to its unfavorable temporal and spatial
distribution, agriculture is prone to moisture stress. Besides, the poor water and land
management in the region exacerbates land degradation leading to low agricultural
productivity and perpetuating poverty.
Abbay river basin is one of the three sub-basins of the upper Blue Nile in Ethiopia (Fig.
1). Situated in the north-central and western parts of the country it forms a generally
rectangular shape that extends for about 400 km from north to south and about 550 km
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
9
from east to west. It is characterized by a high bio-physical variation, such as terrain (Fig.
2) and soil (Fig. 3). The intensively changing train which leads to varying agro-ecology
within short distances does not only hamper agricultural development planning and
mechanization, but also exacerbates the rate of land degradation. Corresponding to the
variation in landscape and other soil forming factors such as climate and vegetation, the
soils of the basin are also highly variable. However, only four soil types, Nitisols,
Leptosols, Luvisols and Vertisols cover over 80% of the area. Apparently, these soils
have various productivity limiting characteristics such as acidity, depth and permeability
(Table 1).
Table 1 Area coverage of the major soil types in the basin and their corresponding
limitations
Soil type Area (km2) % of the area Limiting factors
Nitosols 86,665 39.08 Acidity
Leptosols 52,529 23.68 Depth
Luvisols 31,494 14.20
Vertisols 26,735 12.05 Permeability
Cambisols 11,234 5.07
Alisols 9,238 4.17
Phaeozems 2,707 1.22
Fluvisols 1,188 0.54
The basin covers a total area of 199,812 km2 and has an average annual discharge of
about 49.4 Billion Cubic Meter, measured at Sudan border (BCM). Extending over three
regional states of Ethiopia including Amhara, Oromia and Benshangul Gumuz, it is the
most important basin in the country by most criteria as it contributes about 45% of the
countries surface water resources, accommodates 25% of the population, 20% of the
landmass, 40% of the nations agricultural product and most of the hydropower and a
significant portion of irrigation potential of the country
(http://www.mowr.gov.et/index.php?pagenum=3.1). Originating from the centre of its
own catchments around Lake Tana in the north, it develops its course in a clockwise
spiral, collecting its tributaries all along its nearly 1,000 km length from its source, to the
south of Lake Tana up until the Ethio-Sudan border (MoWR Master Plan: Abbay, 1999).
Dabus and Didessa rivers that spring in western Ethiopia are the largest tributaries
accounting for about 10 % and 8.5% of the total flow at the border, respectively.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
10
Figure 1: Elevation map of Abbay basin
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
11
Figure 2: The major soil types of the Abbay river basin
Land use systems and agricultural water management
Although quite diverse land use systems are common, rainfed based agricultural land use
dominates the basin. Over 80% of the populations in the basin drive their livelihood
mainly from small scale rainfed agriculture. Because of hazardous land use and poor land
and water management systems, high population pressure, land degradation, small land
holding and highly variable climate, agricultural productivity in the basin is increasingly
challenged. High population pressure, lack of alternative livelihood opportunities and
slow pace of rural development are inducing deforestation, overgrazing, land degradation
and declining agricultural productivity.
Poor water and land management in the upstream part of the basin reduces both potential
runoff yields and the quality of water flowing downstream. The result is a vicious cycle
of poverty and food insecurity for over 14 million poverty-stricken people in the uplands,
and for millions of downstream users. It is widely recognized that improved water
management in the Abbay catchments is key to improving both upstream and
downstream livelihoods. Better water and land management will help increase water
availability and alleviate the impacts of natural catastrophes such as droughts and reduce
conflicts among stakeholders dependent on the Nile.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
12
Methodology
Stratification and characterization
The farming system of the basin has been classified into homogenous units based on the
Basin Master Plan Study (BCEOM, 1998). The approaches of Westphal (1974; 1975)
were adopted. Accordingly, the major farming systems of the basin were described, but
additional subsystems have been identified based on the major types of crops grown,
vegetation, altitudinal variation, and cultivation practices. Also, the soil types of the
farming systems were identified based on the basin master plan soil data (Figure 1) and
the farming system data (Figure 2) using ArcGIS. The productivity of the farming
systems under the current management systems have been determined based on district
level CSA reports (CSA, 2007). Potential agricultural water management technologies
suitable for the areas within the basin were identified based on a survey report conducted
earlier in the country (Makonnen et al., 2009).
Data capturing and analytical tools
We used AquaCrop (FAO, 2009) and using SWAT to analyze the impacts of the
technologies on water consumption, crop production, runoff, water balance and land
degradation in the basin. Data on climatic parameters, crop characteristics, soils and land
managements were collected from secondary information and were analyzed under
various assumptions and scenarios.
Preliminary Results
The farming systems
The determinant factors that compel farmers to decide for one farming system or another
could be a matter of further investigation. Apparently, environmental factors such as soil
and climate play a vital role, while socio-economic factors including access to market for
inputs and outputs, and exposure to productive technologies are also essential.
Broadly, the farming systems in the basin can be categorized into the mixed farming of
the highlands and pastoral/agro-pastoralism of the lowlands. However, about nine distinct
farming systems have been identified in the basin (Figure 4) although only four of them
cover about 70% of the area (Figure 5). The cereal based crop cultivation, coffee and
other tree crops complex together with enset and other root crops complex constitute the
mixed farming system. Covering the largest portion of the area (over 90%), the cereal
based crop cultivation can be further sub divided into the single cropping, double
cropping and shifting cultivation sub systems, which cover about 60%, 10% and 20 % of
the area. A smaller section of the area is under the double cropping cereal cultivation,
which represents a system where two rainfed cropping seasons per annum is possible.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
13
While tef, maize and sorghum account for about 50% of the single cropping system,
barley dominates the double cropping system. Shifting cultivation systems which are
practiced in the western and southern lowlands of the basin are persistently diminishing.
Figure 3: The major farming system of the basin
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
14
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
Tef
bas
ed s
ing
le c
rop
pin
g
Mai
ze b
ased
sin
gle
cro
pp
ing
So
rgh
um
bas
ed s
hif
tin
g c
ult
ivat
ion
Bar
ley
bas
ed d
ou
ble
cro
pp
ing
Bar
ley
bas
ed s
ing
le c
rop
pin
g
Mai
ze b
ased
sh
ifti
ng
cu
ltiv
atio
n
Co
ffee
-mai
ze c
om
ple
x
So
rgh
um
bas
ed s
ing
le c
rop
pin
g
Wat
er b
od
y
No
t su
itab
le
Fo
rest
Rela
tive a
rea c
overa
ge (
%)
Figure 4: Relative area coverage of the farming systems
Characteristics of the farming systems
Cereal based-single cropping
Covering the largest part of the basin (62%), these farming systems encompass the
cultivation of the major cereals grown in the basin including, tef, maize, sorghum and
barley. The main characteristic of these systems is the production of crops from seeds,
only once a year during the main rainy season. The production system can focus on
production of either small grains such as wheat and tef or large grains such as maize and
sorghum.
The small grain cereals
The production of small seeded cereals such as tef, barley and wheat dominates this
system, but a large variety of other grains such as finger millet, maize, sorghum, pulses,
oil seeds and spices are also grown. The topography of the area where this farming
system prevails varies from almost flat and undulating type in the central and western
parts to steep slope and mountainous in the northern and eastern parts with very scarce
vegetation covers. The areas within this farming system mostly receive adequate rainfall
during the cropping season. Leptosols and Vertisols dominate the tef based single
cropping and barley based double cropping farming systems areas (Table 2). Among the
major potentials of this farming system for agricultural development is the availability of
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
15
vast area of land suitable for mechanized farming (BCEOM, 1998). Besides, a substantial
part of the irrigation potential of the country including small scale irrigation (Table 3) fall
within this farming system. Consequently, developing small, medium and large-scale
irrigation schemes with suitable crop and water management systems is believed to
significantly enhance productivity of the system and improve the livelihood of the
communities. In this regard, low cost agricultural water management technologies which
can be constructed and managed by the local communities can play a vital role, at least in
the short term.
The large grain cereals
Dominated by the maize based system in the south western and sorghum based system in
the north eastern parts of the basin (Fig. 2), the large grain cereal cultivation system
covers about 20% of the basin. While maize and sorghum are the dominant crops, a large
number of other crops like tef, wheat, barley, finger millet, pulses and oil crops are also
widely grown. The maize areas have generally gentle to flat slopes as opposed to the
sorghum areas which are characterized by rough, steep slopes and mountainous regions
that are largely devoid of vegetation cover. Nitisols followed by leptosols dominate both
the maize based and sorghum based systems, with a higher extent of leptosols in the
latter. In contrast to the maize area, which receives ample and dependable rainfall, the
sorghum areas get erratic and unreliable rainfall.
Similar to that of the small grain farming systems, not many farmers use the right type
and quantity of fertilizers and improved seeds. The use of manure is established in maize
areas, but often restricted to backyard farms. Crop rotation in maize areas of the western
part involves legumes, but in the sorghum areas, the rotation is among the cereals. Land
degradation and unreliability and shortage of rainfall are serious threats of the sorghum
part (BCEOM, 1998). Thus, improving the rainfed agriculture through provision of
efficient extension services and inputs, and implementation of suitable agricultural water
management technologies, is believed to significantly enhance the level of production
and productivity.
Table 2 The soil types in the dominant farming systems of the basin
Soil type Tef based single
cropping
Maize based single
cropping
Sorghum based
shifting cultivation
Barley based double
cropping
Area
(km2)
% of
the area
Area
(km2)
% of the
area
Area
(km2)
% of
the area
Area
(km2)
% of the
area
Alisols 266 0.10 11498 8.68 5901 8.28
Cambisols 7701 2.85 4362 3.29 4414 6.20 5211 9.48
Leptosols 140369 51.91 15856 11.97 15263 21.43 42575 77.42
Luvisols 51367 19.00 10998 8.30 6024 8.46 641 1.17
Nitisols 38731 14.32 77099 58.22 34986 49.12 759 1.38
Vertisols 28032 10.37 8838 6.67 4254 5.97 5807 10.56
Total 270393 100.00 131888 99.59 70841 99.45 54993 100.00
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
16
Barley based-double cropping
A bimodal rainfall with the small rain resuming in January or February and extending to
end of May; and the main rain starting in mid July and extending to mid September
characterize the farming system. Although crops can be produced twice a year using the
small and the main rains, both are not reliable due to climatic and edaphic factors. The
onset and secession of the rainfall is highly variable that planning of agricultural
activities is difficult. Besides, shallow soils (Letptosols) with limited water storage
capacity cover over 70% of the area (Table 2). On the other hand, Vertisols, which have
impeded drainage, are the second largest soil type covering over 10% of the area. Barley,
wheat, tef and some pulses are widely grown in the farming system. The use of fertilizers
and improved seeds is minimal, may be due to the unreliable rainfall, the subsistence
nature of the farmers and highly degraded soils.
Despite the limitations, productivity can be enhanced with proper use of improved
technologies. For example, moisture conservation measures and use of short duration
crop varieties can improve the productivity of the crops during two rains on the letptosoil
areas. On the other hand, enhanced drainage and harvesting of the excess water for
supplementary or full irrigation, together with complementary technologies can
significantly boost the productivity of the Vertisols.
Current productivity and limitations of the farming systems
Current productivity
Understandably, the livelihood strategy of the farmers in the basin is focused on
production of food grains such as cereals, pulses and oilseeds, primarily for household
consumption (CSA, 2005). Unfortunately, the productivity of the farming systems
regardless of the crop types is miserably low (Table 3) (CSA, 2007). Evidently, the large
grain crops gave the highest average yield across the farming system which is
comparable to the national average, although that of Sorghum is slightly depressed. The
overall grain productivity of the farming systems in the basin is less than 1ton per
hectare. As the average land holding in the basin is less than 1 hectare per house hold,
with the average household size of about seven, the level of crop productivity depicts the
abject poverty in which the communities are entangled.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
17
Table 3 Average crop productivity of the farming systems (100kg/ha) during the man
cropping season (CSA 2007) Farming system Tef Barley Wheat Maize Sorghum Finger
Millet
Faba
bean
Field
pea
Average
Tef based single
cropping
8.24 9.21 10.4 16.8 9.18 4.98 10.33 6.83 9.5
Maize based single
cropping
7.28 6.25 7.13 22.04 12.92 9.89 6.81 4.18 9.56
Sorghum based shifting
cultivation
7.26 4.89 6.46 20.68 10.93 6.53 6.13 2.66 8.18
Barley based double
cropping
7.31 9.47 9.9 8.23 8.86 1.6 10.3 6.91 7.82
Barley based single
cropping
8.97 14.81 12.23 18.05 12.88 10.97 12.06 8.78 12.34
Maize based shifting
cultivation
5.77 5.18 6.53 20.38 13.72 6.86 5.17 3.69 8.41
Sorghum based single
cropping
8.66 10.28 11.62 14.01 11.96 9.59 11.87 9.09 10.89
Coffee-maize complex 8.21 7.36 8.05 22.05 14.72 9.08 7.77 5.52 10.35
Average 7.71 8.43 9.04 17.78 11.90 7.44 8.79 5.96 9.63
Reasons for low productivity
The poor and declining performance of agriculture can be attributed to many interrelated
factors including high population pressure, soil erosion and land degradation, unreliable
rainfall, low water storage capacity of the soils and the catchments, crop pests and
diseases, soil acidity, water logging, shortage of farm land, lack of improved technologies
such as: improved varieties, soil fertility management (fertilizers, liming), water
management (irrigation and drainage), soil and water conservation as well as farmers
traditions. This calls for a comprehensive external intervention in terms of policy,
institutions as well as technologies. The following session briefly deals with some
priority technological interventions necessary to overcome the daunting challenges of
productivity and sustainability prevailing in the basin.
Possible technological interventions and onsite and offsite impacts
Possible interventions technologies
In order to overcome the constraints and ensure enhanced and sustained crop production
in the basin, integrated technological interventions is necessary. A range of technologies
including improved crop verities and species, appropriate land use, improved land and
water management practices etc. should be used in integration to benefit from their
synergetic effects. The use of suitable agricultural water management technologies such
as, water harvesting, supplementary and full irrigation using different water sources,
drainage of water logged soils, which can also be supplemented with harvesting of the
excess water to be used as supplementary or full irrigation may increase and stabilize the
productivity of the rainfed agriculture with a possibility of growing during the dry
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
18
seasons, which increases the land use intensity. Although a multitude of technologies can
be considered, the most suitable and sustainable ones are those that can be constructed
and managed by the local community with minor technical support. Identification of such
technologies could be achieved through the involvement of the stakeholders including the
farmers in the selection of site specific technologies. In line with this, some suitable
agricultural water management technologies have been identified for scaling up in the
basin and its environs through participation of the farming communities and other
stakeholders (Table 4).
Traditional small scale irrigation from spring, river and other water sources has been
practiced in Ethiopia since generations, but only by few farmers. Although a significant
yield increase and productivity stability could be ensured without much investment and
with less technical support. However, the widespread application was not sufficiently
encouraged until recently. According to the Abbay basin master plan study document, a
large area of land (over 41, 000 ha) can be developed by small scale irrigation using
different sources of water ranging from rainwater harvesting to river diversions in the
four major farming systems. On the other hand, a much larger area of land covered with
vertisols (over 46000 km2) (Table 5) can be developed by draining the excess water
during the rainy season, and harvesting the drained water, which can be used for
supplementary or full irrigation.
Rainwater water harvesting is when the precipitation is collected from a small/large
surface area (catchments) and directed through channels to a storage facility or to a
nearby field or retained at the site itself (in-situ). The rainwater harvesting techniques
most commonly practiced in Ethiopia are run-off irrigation (run-off farming), flood
spreading (spate irrigation), in-situ water harvesting (ridges, micro basins, etc.) and roof
water harvesting (Getachew Alem, 1999), and more recently are ponds. The harvested
water can be used for irrigation of crops, pastures and trees, and for livestock
consumption. Among the goals of rainwater harvesting are increasing productivity of
rainfed agriculture, minimizing the risk of crop failure in drought prone areas, combating
desertification by tree planting, and supplying drinking water for human and animals
(Finkel and Finkel 1986). In order to ensure sustainability by avoiding siltation,
watershed management with reforestation and other erosion control measures are
necessary. Improved watershed management encourages recharging of the groundwater
which may enhance the possibility of shallow well exploitation. Because of their higher
quality and availability during the dry season due to reduced evaporation loss, shallow
wells can be used for prolonged period of time for crops, livestock and domestic
consumption.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
19
Table 4 Some promising agricultural water management technologies practiced in the sub
basin and its environs
Technology Description/merits
Small scale irrigation
from springs and rivers
• Can be built by farmers
• High level of ownership
• Better operation and maintenance
• Make structures permanent + enhance capacity
Shallow well
development
• Provides reliable water- with continued recharge
• Good water quality
• Should be associated with catchments treatment
• Terraces and trenches can allow recharge
• Multiple uses including domestic water supply
Rain water harvesting • Surface and sub-surface storage
• Trapezoidal ponds found most suitable- with evaporation mitigation
measures
• Can be managed at household level
Surface drainage of
Vertisols
• Use Broad bed and Furrows (BBF)
• Constructed by Broad bed maker (BBM) designed and constructed at
ICRISAT in (El-Swaify et al., 1985).
• Introduced by ILCA and was modified to fit to the smallholder
system
• Recommended for successful cropping on Vertisols
• BBM is drawn by a pair of oxen
• It allows early planting and double cropping with/without
supplementary irrigation
• Yield increase of up to 200-300% reported Source: Makonnen et al., 2009
A significant area of land in the basin is covered by the vertisols, which are characterized
by very slow internal drainage with infiltration rates between 2.5 and 6.0 cm day-1
due to
high clay content (Teklu et al., 2004), which leads to water logging, as a result of which
early planting is not possible. Traditionally, many Vertisol crops are planted towards the
end of the rainy season after the water is lost mainly to evaporation, to grow on residual
moisture (Abate Tedla et al, 1988), which does not only significantly reduce the length of
effective growing period, but also water productivity as much of the water is lost due to
evaporation. However, several studies have shown that surface drainage allows early
sowing enabling the full utilization of the potentially available growing period. Besides,
the early-established surface cover may reduce soil erosion (El-Swaify et al. 1985; Abate
Tedla et al, 1988; Astatke, A. and Kelemu, F. 1993; Teklu et al., 2004; Teklu et al. 2006)
leading to ecological sustainability. Among the various alternatives, surface drainage
technology, known as broad bed and furrow (BBF) constructed by broad bed maker
(BBM) which was developed at ICRISAT in India (El-Swaify et al. 1985) and was later
modified to fit to the smallholder system in Ethiopia (Astatke, A. and Kelemu, F. 1993)
has been popularized in the major Vertisol areas of the country. The advantage of this
technology can be amplified by harvesting the excess water, which can be used later on
as supplementary or full irrigation of the subsequent crops, allowing multiple cropping
per year on a piece of land leading to a better land use intensity.
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
20
Table 5 Estimated suitable area for small scale irrigation (ha) and surface drainage in the
dominant farming systems
Farming system Small scale irrigation (ha) Surface drainage (km2)
Tef based single cropping 27,480 28,000
Maize based single cropping 8,025 8,800
Sorghum based shifting
cultivation
725 4,000
Barley based double cropping 4,850 5,800
Total 41,080 46,600
Possible impact of the technologies
The envisaged impacts of the selected agricultural water management technologies to be
implemented in the upper part of the Blue Nile sub basin could be economical and
environmental. The impacts are expected be revealed both in the upstream and
downstream parts (Table 6). The technologies can potentially allow double or triple
cropping in the upstream part of the basin, contributing to the food security and poverty
reduction effort of the communities. Besides, the integrated watershed management
interventions coupled with the technologies is believed to result in increased infiltration,
reduced runoff, improved ecosystem functioning and a better human health and
habitation. The concomitant effect on the downstream part could be flow regulation, with
reduced peak flow and increased base flow; reduced sedimentation and a better water
quality due to soil conservation at the upstream part; and increased surface runoff caused
by surface drainage of the Vertisols since the water that was otherwise would have been
lost as evaporation would contribute the surface flow.
Table 6 Possible impacts of the technologies
Technology Expected Impacts
Upstream Downstream
Shallow well +
WSM
1. Reduced surface runoff and erosion
2. Double cropping possible
3. Increased crop productivity
1. Increased sub flow
2. Reduced peak flow
3. Improved water quality
RWH + WSM 1. Reduced surface runoff and erosion
2. Double cropping possible
3. Increased crop productivity
1. Increased sub flow
2. Reduced peak flow
3. Improved water quality
Surface drainage of
Vertisols (BBF) +
(WH)
1. Reduced evaporation
2. Increased ETc
3. Double cropping possible
4. Increased crop productivity
1. Increased runoff
WSM= watershed management; WH = water harvesting; BBF = Broad bed and furrows
Impacts of Improving Water Management of Smallholder Agriculture in the Upper Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
21
Reference
Abate Tedla, Jutzi S C and Getenet Gebeyehu. 1988. Performance of improved bread
wheat varieties on some Ethiopian highlands Vertisols under enhanced surface
drainage. Paper presented at the First Annual Conference of the Crop Science
Society of Ethiopia, Addis Ababa, 8–9 February 1988. 14 pp
Abiye, A., Muhamed-Saleem, M.A., ElWakeel, A., 1995. Soil water dynamics under
cereal and forage legume mixtures on drained Vertisols in the Ethiopian
highlands. Agric. Water Manage. 27,17.24.
Astatke A. and F. Kelemu. 1993. Modifying the traditional plough-maresha for better
management of Vertisols. In T. Mamo, A. Astatke, K.L. Srivastava y A. Dibabe,
eds. Improved management of vertisols for sustainable crop-livestock production
in the Ethiopian highlands. synthesis report 1986-1992. Technical Committee of
the Joint Vertisol Project, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia ILCA (International Livestock
Centre for Africa). 1990. Annual research report. ILCA. Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
BCEOM - French Engineering Consultants (1998) Abbay River Basin Master Plan
Project - Phase 2 – Agriculture
Central Statistical Agency (CSA) (2005) Agricultural Sample survey 2004/2005 Vol. I,
Report on Area and Production of Crops (private peasant holdings, meher
season), Statistical Bulletin 331, Addis Ababa
Central Statistical Agency (CSA) (2007) Agricultural Sample survey 2005/2006, Vol. II,
Livestock and livestock characteristics (Private peasant holdings) Statistical
bulletin 361, Addis Ababa
El-Swaify, SA, Pathak P, Rego TJ and S. Singh.1985. Soil Management for Optimised
Productivity under Rained Conditions in the Semi-Arid Tropics. In: Advances in
Soil Science, Volume 1, 1-64, (Ed B.A. Stewart). Springer-Verlag, New York
Berlin Heidelberg Tokyo
Teklu E., K. Stahr and T. Gaiser (2006) Soil Tillage and Crop Productivity on a Vertisol
in Ethiopian Highlands, Soil & Tillage Research 85, 200-211
Teklu E., A. Gizaw and K. Stahr (2004) Land preparation methods efficiency on the
highland Vertisols of Ethiopia. Irrigation and Drainage, Vol. 53:69-75
Westphal, E., 1974. Pulses in Ethiopia, their Taxonomy and Agricultural Significance.
Centre for Agric. Publ. and Documentation. Wageningen, The Netherlands, pp:
246-276
Westphal, R.: Agricultural systems in Ethiopia. Wageningen, 1975.
World Bank, 2006. Ethiopia: managing water resources to maximize sustainable growth.
World Bank Agriculture and Rural Development Program. Washngton D.C. USA.
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
22
Session II: Water Demand Modeling
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
23
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
Tadesse Alemayehu1, Matthew McCartney2 and Seifu Kebede3
1 P. O. Box 20763, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
2International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 3 Addis Ababa University, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
Lake Tana is a natural reservoir for the Blue Nile River which has huge potential for hydropower and irrigation development. Water resource development is being encouraged by the government to stimulate economic growth and reduce poverty. In this study, the Water Evaluation And Planning (WEAP) model was used to simulate planned hydropower and irrigation development scenarios. Simulation of water demand and estimated downstream environmental flows was conducted for a 36-year period of varying flow and rainfall. Based on the simulation results, water availability for the different proposed irrigation and hydropower schemes was determined. The likely impact of future water resource development on water levels of the lake was assessed based on the simulation results of three development scenarios. The simulation results revealed that, if the full future development occurs, on average, 2,207 GWhy-1 of power could be generated and 548 Mm3y-1 of water could be supplied to irrigation schemes. However, the mean annual water level of the lake would be lowered by 0.33 meters (m) with a consequent decrease of 23 km2 in the average surface area of the lake. Besides having adverse ecological impacts, this would also have significant implications for shipping and the livelihoods of many local people.
Key words: Ethiopia, Lake Tana, water level, lake surface area, water resources
development, modeling, and water demand
Introduction
The Tana-Beles area has been identified as an economic ‗growth corridor‘ by the
government of Ethiopia and the World Bank. The intention is to stimulate economic
growth and reduce poverty through the development of hydropower and a number of
irrigation schemes (MoFED 2006). However, the likely environmental implications of
these developments and specifically the impact on lake water-levels have not been fully
evaluated. An evaluation is crucial because the lake is important to the livelihoods of
many people in a number of different ways including domestic water supply, fisheries,
grazing and water for livestock, as well as reeds for boat construction. In addition, the
lake is important for water transport and as a tourist destination.
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
24
This paper describes the use of the Water Evaluation And Planning (WEAP) model to
investigate scenarios of future water resource development in the Lake Tana catchment.
The model was used to investigate both the reliability of water availability for the
planned schemes and their impact on lake water levels and consequently, lake surface
area. For each scenario, the implications of maintaining environmental flows downstream
of the lake to the Tis Issat Falls (a major tourist attraction) were also ascertained.
The Lake Tana subbasin
Lake Tana occupies a shallow depression (mean depth 9 m and maximum depth 14 m) in
Ethiopian plateau located at an altitude of 1786 masl (Figure 1). It is the largest
freshwater lake in Ethiopia with catchment area of 15,321 km2 at its outlet.
Figure 1: Location map of Lake Tana catchment showing catchment area, major
inflowing rivers and planned irrigation and hydropower sites as well as Bahir Dar and
Gondar towns (inset map shows location in Ethiopia)
Natural characteristics
The climate of Lake Tana region is ‗tropical highland monsoon‘ with a single rainy
season between June and September. The mean annual rainfall over the catchment is
1,326 mm, with slightly more rain falling in the south and south-east than in the north of
the catchment (SMEC 2008). Average annual evaporation over the lake surface is
approximately 1,675 mm (SMEC 2008).
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
25
Although the lake is fed by more than 40 rivers and streams, 93% of the water comes
from just four major rivers: Gilgel Abbay, Ribb, Gumara and Megech (Fig. 1). A recent
study on the lake‘s hydrology estimated the mean annual inflow to the lake to be 158 m3s
-
1 (i.e. 4,986 Mm
3y
-1). Moreover, the mean annual outflow is estimated to be 119 m
3s
-1
(i.e. 3,753 Mm3y
-1) (SMEC 2008). Under natural conditions, discharge from the lake is
closely linked to rainfall and there is considerable seasonal and inter-annual variability
(Kebede et al. 2006). Naturally, the annual water level fluctuations varied between
1785.75 and 1786.36 masl. Analyses of mean annual water levels reveals longer wet and
dry cycles of approximately 6-7 years, during which mean annual water-levels rise and
fall respectively.
The Dembiya, Fogera and Kunzila plains form extensive wetlands in the north, east and
southwest, respectively of the lake during the rainy season. As a result of the high
heterogeneity in habitats, the lake and surrounding riparian areas support high
biodiversity and are listed in the top 250 lake regions of global importance for
biodiversity. About a quarter of the 65 fish species found in the lake are endemic. The
lake contains eighteen species of barbus fish (i.e. of the Cyprinidae family) and the only
extended cyprinid species flock in Africa (Eshete 2003). A three day survey in March
1996 indentified 217 bird species and the lake is estimated to hold a minimum of 20,000
water birds (EWLNHS 1996). In some places, close to the lake shore there is extensive
growth of papyrus (Cyprus papyrus). The littoral zone (depth 0-4 m) of the lake, which
comprises water-logged swamps, the shallow lake margins and the mouths of rivers
feeding the lake, is relatively small, covering about 10 % of the total surface area (Eshete
2003).
Current socio-economic situation
The total population in the lake catchment was estimated to be in excess of 3 million in
2007 (CSA 2003). The largest city on the lake shore, Bahir Dar, has a population of over
200,000 and at least 15,000 people are believed to live on the 37 islands in the lake. The
majority of the population lives in rural areas and their livelihoods are mainly dependent
on rainfed agriculture. Recession cropping, mainly for maize and rice, is carried out in
the wetlands adjacent to the lake shore.
Lake Tana is an important source of fish both for the people immediately around the lake
and elsewhere in the country. Though the current fish production of Lake Tana is only
about 1,000 tons per year, the potential for production is estimated to be 13,000 tons per
annum (Berhanu et al. 2001).
The Lake Tana region is endowed with historical cultural and natural heritages which
have high tourist attractions. Consequently, the area is an important tourist destination in
the country. It is estimated that close to 30,000 people (both domestic and foreign) visit
the area each year (EPLAUA 2006).
Outflow from Lake Tana is regulated by the Chara Chara weir. This was constructed in
1996 to regulate flow for a hydropower stations located at Tis Abbay, 35km downstream.
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
26
Prior to construction of the weir, the Tis Abbay I power station (capacity 11.4 MW)
relied entirely on diversion of the natural flow of the river immediately upstream of the
Tis Issat Falls.
The Chara Chara weir regulates water storage in Lake Tana over a 3 m range of water
levels from 1784 masl to 1787 masl. The active storage of the lake between these levels
is about 9,100 Mm3, which represents approximately 2.4 times the average annual
outflow. The regulation for power production has modified the natural lake-level regime,
resulting in reduced seasonal but greater inter-annual variability (Fig. 2). The lowest level
ever recorded was in June, 2003. This was a drought year in much of Ethiopia and
hydropower production was constrained in many places. In an attempt to maintain
electricity supplies production at Tis Abay was maximized and as result lake levels
declined sharply (Gebre et al. 2007). As a consequence of the low lake levels in 2003,
navigation ceased for approximately four months (i.e. when lake levels dropped below
1785 masl, the minimum level at which ships can currently operate), large areas of
papyrus reed were destroyed, there was significant encroachment of agriculture on the
exposed lake bed and there was a decrease in fisheries production (EPLAUA 2004).
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
Jan-6
0
Jan-6
2
Jan-6
4
Jan-6
6
Jan-6
8
Jan-7
0
Jan-7
2
Jan-7
4
Jan-7
6
Jan-7
8
Jan-8
0
Jan-8
2
Jan-8
4
Jan-8
6
Jan-8
8
Jan-9
0
Jan-9
2
Jan-9
4
Jan-9
6
Jan-9
8
Jan-0
0
Jan-0
2
Jan-0
4
Time
Lake l
evel
(masl)
Before regulation After regulation
Figure 2: Water level fluctuations of Lake Tana before and after regulation (Source:
plotted using data provided by the Ministry of Water Resources)
Planned irrigation and hydropower schemes
These days, Lake Tana region is at the centre of Ethiopia‘s plans for water resource
development owing to its huge water resource potential. Consequently, a number of
schemes are under development and planned for the future (Fig. 1). Construction of the
Tana-Beles project is close to completion (August 2009). This scheme involves the
transfer of water from Lake Tana to the Beles River via a 12 km long, 7.1 m diameter
tunnel (Salini and Mid-day 2006). The aim of the inter-basin transfer is to generate
hydropower by exploiting the 311 m elevation difference between the lake and the Beles
River. A power station, with generating capacity of 460MW, is being built on the upper
Beles River. This will enable far more electricity to be generated than is currently
produced in the Tis Abbay power stations. Approximately 2,985 Mm3 will be diverted
through the tunnel each year to generate 2,310 GWh of electricity (SMEC 2008). Both
the Tis Abbay power stations will be moth-balled and only used in emergencies.
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
27
As well as the hydropower development, a number of irrigation schemes (up to
approximately 60,000 ha) are planned on the main rivers flowing into Lake Tana (Table
2). Of these only the Koga irrigation project (6,000 ha) is currently under construction.
However, for several of the other schemes detailed feasibility studies have been
undertaken and planning is at an advanced stage. It is anticipated that construction of
several of the dams and irrigation schemes will commence in the near future.
Table 2: Planned irrigation development in the Lake Tana catchment (source: BCEOM
1998; Mott MacDonald 2004; WWDSE and ICT 2008; WWDSE and TAHAL 2008a, b)
Note: + demands estimated though crop water modeling and presented in feasibility study reports. Where a
range of demands is presented this reflects alternative cropping patterns.
Methodology
To simulate the future water demand in Lake Tana region along with the environmental
flows the water allocation component of WEAP model was used. WEAP was developed
by the Stockholm Environment Institute (SEI) in Boston and provides an integrated
approach to simulating water systems associated with development (SEI, 2007). A
detailed description of the model can be found in SEI (2007) and Yates et al. (2005).
WEAP configuration to the Lake Tana sub-basin
The modeling of the Lake Tana catchment with WEAP encompassed the major
tributaries to the lake, upstream of the proposed dams (i.e. flows that will be affected by
the future construction of dams), estimates of flows downstream of the proposed dams
and total inflows on other rivers (i.e. flows that will be unaffected by the future
development) as well as Lake Tana itself. Lake Tana was simulated as a reservoir (Fig.
3). In addition, because environmental flow requirements downstream of the Chara Chara
weir are influenced by flows in the unregulated Andassa River (catchment area 683 km2),
which joins it approximately 17 km downstream of the weir, flows in this river were also
incorporated in the model. The model was configured to run on a monthly-time step.
Irrigation
scheme
Irrigable
area (ha)
Estimated
annual gross
water
demand
Mm3)
+
Large dam storage
(Mm3)
Stage of development
Gilgel Abbay
B
12,852 104 – 142 563 Feasibility studies ongoing
Gumara A 14,000 115 59.7 Feasibility studies completed
Ribb 19,925
172 – 220 233.7 Feasibility studies completed
Megech 7,300 63 – 98 181.9 Feasibility studies completed
Koga 6000 62
78.5 Under construction
NE Lake
Tana
5745 50 – 62 Withdrawals from the
lake
Pre-feasibility studies completed
NW Lake
Tana
6720 54 Withdrawals from the
lake
Identification
SW Lake
Tana
5132 42 Withdrawals from the
lake
Identification
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
28
As primary input to WEAP, the inflow series at the planned dam sites were obtained from
the relevant feasibility studies for the period 1960-2004. Where necessary, inflow data
were augmented using area-weighted estimates from the nearest available flow gauging
station. To simulate the current situation, the Tis Abbay hydropower plants were included
as a demand node on the Abbay River, downstream of the lake. To estimate the
diversions to the power stations the turbine discharge data from 1964-2006 were obtained
from EEPCO.
Each development scenario was run for the 36 years (i.e. 1960-1995). This period was
selected both because data are available and it represents a wide range of hydrological
variability. Furthermore, it represents years before construction of the Chara Chara weir
and so the impact of each development scenario could be compared with the natural
water-level regime of the lake.
Figure 3: Schematic of existing and planned development schemes in the Lake Tana sub-
basin as simulated in WEAP
Summary of irrigation and hydropower development scenarios
Lake Tana
Regulated flows Unregulated flows
(downstream of proposed
dams and unregulated
rivers)
Lake
pumping
schemes
246
1925
Abbay (Blue Nile)
Tis Issat FallsTis Abbay
power plants
116
Koga
Gilgel AbbayMegech
Gondar town
Ribb Gumara
Intermediate
flow
Beles hydropower
transfer
Legend
Irrigation Scheme
116 Mean annual
inflow (Mm3)
270Andassa
Dam
Withdrawals
Return flow
176 216 244
Rivers
2180
Lake Tana
Regulated flows Unregulated flows
(downstream of proposed
dams and unregulated
rivers)
Lake
pumping
schemes
246
1925
Abbay (Blue Nile)
Tis Issat FallsTis Abbay
power plants
116
Koga
Gilgel AbbayMegech
Gondar town
Ribb Gumara
Intermediate
flow
Beles hydropower
transfer
Legend
Irrigation Scheme
116 Mean annual
inflow (Mm3)
270Andassa
Dam
Withdrawals
Return flow
176 216 244
Rivers
2180
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
29
The data underpinning the various scenarios were obtained mainly from the Abbay River
Basin Integrated Development Mater Plan and the feasibility studies conducted for each
of the planned schemes. These indicate how the water demand for both irrigation and
hydropower is likely to change in the catchment in the future. Four scenarios were
developed based on the current stage of scheme development and hence the likelihood of
full implementation (Table 3). Water demands for the irrigation schemes were entered
into WEAP as monthly time series of net demands (i.e. gross demand minus the
estimated return flows).
For the proposed new dams no operating rule curves are currently available.
Consequently, no operating rules were incorporated within the WEAP model. This meant
that the reservoirs were not drawn down to attenuate wet season floods and no restrictions
were applied on abstractions as the reservoirs emptied. The one exception was Lake Tana
itself where the operating rule was derived from the calibration process. In this case
parameters were set using the pattern of operation in recent years. Thus, restrictions on
draw-down were applied to reduce abstractions as lake levels dropped below 1786 masl
and to ensure levels did not drop lower than the current physical minimum of 1784 masl.
Since it provides the highest economic returns hydropower production was designated a
higher priority than irrigation. With the exception of the water demand for the city of
Gondar, which in future will be abstracted from the Megech River, the water demand for
domestic, municipal and industrial use, were not considered. This is because their impact
on the water resources of the lake, both now and in the future, is insignificant (SMEC
2008). For each scenario the WEAP model was used to predict: i) the impacts on both
lake water-levels and lake area for each month over the 36 years simulated and ii) the
unmet demand for hydropower and each irrigation scheme.
Table 3: Summary of development scenarios (Source: BCEOM 1998; EEPCO database
and SMEC 2008) Scenario Hydropower
developed
Irrigation schemes
developed
Total mean annual water
demand (Mm3)
+
Baseline (BS) Tis Abbay I and
II
- 3,469
Ongoing development (ODS) Tana Beles
transfer
Koga 3,047
Likely future development
(LDS)
Tana Beles
transfer
Koga, Megech, Ribb,
Gumara and Gilgel Abbay
3,621
Full potential development
(FDS)
Tana Beles
transfer
Koga, Megech, Ribb,
Gumara, Gilgel Abbay and
3 schemes pumping directly
from the lake
3,768
Note: + water demand has been calculated using the highest crop water estimates for each of the irrigation
schemes.
An environmental impact assessment was conducted for the Tana Beles transfer scheme.
To maintain the ecosystem of the upper reaches of the Abbay River this recommends an
average annual release from Chara Chara of 17 m3s
-1 (536 Mm
3) with an absolute
minimum of 10 m3s
-1 (Salini and Mid-day 2006). This environmental flow requirement,
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
30
hereafter referred to as the minimum maintenance flow (MMF), was included in all the
scenarios. Moreover, the proposed minimum instream flows downstream of each of the
proposed dams (as identified in the feasibility studies) were also included in each
scenario.
Recently, a more detailed evaluation of the environmental flow requirements needed to
maintain the ecosystem of the Tis Issat Falls has been conducted (McCartney et al. 2008).
This study allowed for the natural seasonal and inter-annual variability of flow and
estimated environmental flow requirements on a monthly time-step for the period 1960-
2004. The study found that to maintain the basic ecological functioning of the reach
containing the Falls, variable flows are necessary, with an average annual allocation of
864 Mm3
(i.e. 64% more than previously estimated) (McCartney et al. 2008). To ascertain
the effect of the variable environmental flow (VEF) requirement, over and above the
minimum maintenance flow, each scenario was run again with the variable environmental
flow included. All environmental flows were given higher priority than the hydropower
production.
Results
Figure 4 presents a comparison of the time series of simulated lake levels for all scenarios
with the natural condition, both with the downstream MMF and the VEF included. Table
4 summarizes the results of each scenario both with the MMF and VEF. The results
indicate the decline in mean annual lake levels, and consequently lake area, as the water
resource development in the catchment increases. This is manifested particularly by the
increasing periods of time when lake levels are below 1785 masl, the minimum required
for ships to navigate on the lake. Even without the VEF releases, in the full potential
development scenario, water-levels exceed 1785 masl just 78.0% of the time (Table 4)
and in some years hardly exceed this level in any months (Fig. 4d). This would have a
very significant impact on shipping in the lake.
As would be expected, the greatest impact of the water resource development occurs
during dry cycles in particular years 8-14 and most significantly from years 20- 28 of the
simulation. During these periods, even without variable environmental flow releases, lake
water levels are, depending on the development scenario, up to 0.82 m and 1.76 m lower
than natural levels in the dry and wet season, respectively (Fig. 4).
The VEF requirements exacerbate the drop in lake water-levels in all scenarios. For the
full development scenario the water level exceeds 1785 masl just 60% of the time and the
mean lake area is reduced from 3,080 km2 to 3,023 km
2 (Table 4). Furthermore, the
amount of power produced and the amount of water diverted to irrigation are reduced by
between 1% and 3% for hydropower and 2% to 5% for irrigation, depending on the
scenario.
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
31
a)
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1 3 6 8 11 13 16 18 21 22 25 27 30 32 35
Year
Lake l
evel
(masl)
Natural BS with MMF BS with VEF
b)
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1 3 6 8 11 13 16 18 21 22 25 27 30 32 35
Year
Lake l
evel
(masl)
Natural ODS with MMF ODS with VEF
c)
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1 3 6 8 11 13 16 18 21 22 25 27 30 32 35
Year
Lake l
evel
(masl)
Natural LDS with MMF LDS with VEF
d)
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1 3 6 8 11 13 16 18 21 22 25 27 30 32 35
Year
Lake l
evel
(masl)
Natural FDS with MMF FDS with VEF
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
32
Figure 4: Comparison of simulated and natural (observed) lake levels over 36 years with,
for each scenario, MMF and VEF. Scenarios are: 4a) baseline scenario (BS), 4b) ongoing
development scenario (ODS), 4c) likely future development scenario (LDS) and 4d) full
potential development scenario (FDS).
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
33
Table 4: Summary of simulation results for each scenario with minimum maintenance flow and variable environmental flows
Note: + 1785 masl is the minimum level required for shipping
* hydropower produced by Tis Abay I power station by diverting unregulated flow
++ increase in average lake water level and lake area occurred as a consequence of regulation which slightly increased dry season water level and area
Scenario MMF VEF
Mean
water levels
(masl)
Mean
lake area
(km2)
Mean
power
generated
GWhy-1
Mean
irrigation
Water
Supplied
Mm3y
-1
% time that
mean water
level
exceeds
1785 masl+
Mean
water
levels(masl)
Mean
lake area
(km2)
Mean
power
generated
GWhy-1
Mean
irrigation
water
supplied
Mm3y
-1
% time
mean water
level
exceeds
1785 masl
Natural 1786.05 3080 15.7* 0.0 100.0 1786.05 3080 15.7* 0.0 100.0
BS 1786.11++
3084++
356.7 0.0 93.5 1785.55 3045 332.8 0.0 75.2
ODS 1786.01 3077 2247.0 55.2 90.1 1785.86 3067 2225.1 53.9 88.7
LDS 1785.72 3057 2207.1 548.3 81.0 1785.39 3034 2177.8 537.0 66.4
FDS 1785.61 3049 2197.6 676.9 78.0 1785.24 3023 2134.2 644.2 59.7
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
34
Table 5 presents the average annual shortfall (as a percentage of the annual demand) for both
irrigation and hydropower in each of the scenarios with both the MMF and the VEF. As
would be expected, shortfalls occur mainly in dry years. In the model hydropower was given
higher priority than irrigation, so shortfalls in hydropower production are less than in
irrigation. Nevertheless, shortfalls in hydropower significantly increase as the irrigation
development in the basin increases. Hence, even without allowing for the VEF average annual
hydropower production declines from 2,247.0 GWh to 2,207.1 GWh and 2197.1 GWh if all
the planned and all the possible irrigation schemes are developed respectively (Table 4). If the
VEF is included unmet hydropower and irrigation demands both increase significantly (Table
5).
Table 5: Unmet demands for irrigation and hydropower in each scenario with minimum
maintenance flow and variable environmental flows
Discussion and conclusion
The analyses conducted in this study quantify some of the possible impacts arising from
future development of the water resources of the Lake Tana catchment. The modeling results
indicate that the water level of Lake Tana will be influenced by upstream development on the
inflowing rivers, the diversion to the Beles catchment and the release of flow downstream of
the Chara Chara weir. As would be expected, the effects on lake levels will be more
pronounced during dry periods. In the past, the water level of the lake was controlled more by
rainfall variation than by human activities (Kebede et al. 2006). In future, as a result of
infrastructure development, anthropogenic activities will be the major control.
A recent assessment of Lake Tana and its associated wetlands identified a number of human
induced ecological threats, including siltation, over fishing, recession agriculture and water
level disturbance due to water withdrawals (EPLAUA 2006). In the absence of careful
management all these threats are likely to be aggravated by the planned future development.
Approximately 3,400 Mm3y
-1 of water will be diverted for hydropower and irrigation schemes
if the likely future development scenario in the Lake Tana sub-basin is implemented.
Consequently, the mean annual water level will be lowered by 0.33 m and there will be
prolonged periods, of several years, during which water levels will be much lower than they
would be naturally. Due to this the average surface area of the lake will decrease by 23 km2
(i.e. 2,300 ha). This is likely to have significant impacts on the ecology of the lake,
Scenarios Irrigation Hydropower
MMF VEF MMF VEF
Unmet
demand
%
Maximum
unmet
demand %
(year)
Unmet
demand
%
Maximum
unmet
demand
%(year)
Unmet
demand %
Maximum
unmet
demand
%(year)
Unmet
demand %
Maximum
unmet
demand
%(year)
BS 0.0 0.0 0.0 0.0 0.6 8.1(29) 7.3 41.4(24)
ODS 10.4 83.9(25) 12.5 90.2(25) 2.6 22.4(26) 3.5 33.3(24)
LDS 13.8 70.9(26) 15.6 72.9(24) 4.3 34.9(24) 5.6 36.5(24)
FDS 13.5 71.0(26) 17.7 72.6(24) 4.7 34.9(24) 7.5 38.8(24)
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
35
particularly the littoral zone and in the wetlands around the shoreline. The desiccation of
currently wet areas will certainly cause the loss of aquatic vegetation, including papyrus
reeds. As a result the breeding habitat for aquatic fauna, including fish is likely to be reduced.
This could have a significant impact on the productivity of the lake fisheries.
In 2003, farmers extended crop production onto about 562 ha of Lake Tana bed following the
lower levels (EPLAUA 2004). This indicates that lower water levels will almost certainly
result in people moving both cultivation and grazing onto the dried lake bed. This would
exacerbate adverse impacts on near-shore vegetation and could greatly increase sedimentation
in the lake.
Lower water-levels, particularly in the dry season, will have a negative impact not only on the
ecology of the lake but on navigation. As a consequence of lower water levels in 2003, Lake
Tana Transport Enterprise lost about 4 million Ethiopian birr (i.e. approximately US$
400,000) because the ships could not sail (Dagne, personal communication). Due to the fact
that the livelihoods of many people are dependent on shipping, strategies need to be
developed to mitigate these impacts. These could include modification of ports as well as the
ships themselves to enable them to operate at lower water-levels.
The WEAP simulations show the water availability for both irrigation and hydropower in
each scenario. The results indicate that as demands rise in future, shortfalls in water supply
will increase during dry periods. Very careful consideration needs to be given to the economic
implications of reduced reliability of supply particularly for hydropower production in the
Beles, resulting from increasing irrigation in the Lake Tana catchment.
In this study consideration was given only to the possible changes arising from future water
resource development in the Lake Tana catchment. However, the water resources of the Lake
Tana catchment are highly vulnerable to changes in rainfall and temperature. In a study of
possible impacts of climate change on the hydrology of the Gilgel Abbay River, it was
estimated that by 2080 mean annual runoff into the lake could be reduced by approximately
3% with much greater reduction in some years (Shaka 2008). However, this estimate makes
no allowance for increased irrigation demand as a consequence of lower rainfall and higher
temperatures. It is also probable that climate change will affect the temporal distribution of
runoff (Deksyos and Abebe, 2006; Shaka, 2008) and this could also affect both water
availability and irrigation demand. Hence, much more detailed studies of the possible impacts
of climate change, including economic and livelihood implications, need to be undertaken.
The simulation results indicate that the allowance for VEF over the Tis Issat Falls reduces the
availability of water for both hydropower and irrigation and causes increased drawdown of
the lake. In the full development scenario the VEF reduce the average lake levels by an
additional 0.37 m and the average surface area of the lake by an additional 26 km2 (i.e. 2,600
ha). This is over and above the reductions resulting from the MMF and will almost certainly
further exacerbate the adverse environmental and social impacts arising from drawdown of
the lake. Therefore, a potential trade-off exists between the lake ecosystem and the ecosystem
of the upper Abbay River and the Falls. Since the livelihoods and well being of many people
are directly dependent on the ecological character of both ecosystems, very careful
consideration needs to be given to determining how the water is best utilized. This requires
much more detailed analyses of both the environmental and social consequences of water
allocation patterns.
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
36
Acknowledgements
We are grateful to the CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food, project number 36:
‗Improved planning of large dam operation‘ and Addis Ababa University, Science Faculty for
research grant to Tadesse Alemayehu. The authors are also grateful to the Federal Ministry of
Water Resources, the Ethiopian Electric Power Corporation and the National Meteorological
Agency for the provision of data.
References
BCEOM (1998). ―Abbay river basin integrated development master plan, section II, volume
V-water resources development, part 1- irrigation and drainage.‖ Ministry of Water
Resources, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Bellier, C., Howard, H., Kennedy, R. and Donkin. (1997). ―Tis Abbay II hydroelectric
project, environmental impact assessment.‖ Federal Democratic Republic of Ethiopia,
Ministry of Water Resources, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Berhanu, T., Ralphe, L. and Girma, Z. (2001). ―Development initiatives and challenges for
sustainable resource management and livelihood in Lake Tana region of Northern
Ethiopia.‖ Proceeding of wetland awareness creation and activity identification
workshop in Amhara Regional State, January 23rd
, 2001, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
Central Statistics Authority (CSA) (2003). ―Ethiopian agricultural sample enumeration,
2001/2002 results for Amhara region, statistical reports on area and production of
crops, part II B‖. Central Statistics Agency, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Dekseyos, T. and Abebe, T., 2006. Assessing the impact of climate change on the water
resources of the Lake Tana sub-basin using the Watbal model, CEEPA Discussion
Paper No.30, CEEPA, University of Pretoria
Environmental Protection Land Administration and Use Authority (EPLAUA) (2004). ―Water
level reduction of Lake Tana and its environmental impacts‖. Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
Environmental Protection Land Administration and Use Authority (EPLAUA) (2006).
―Ecological significances, threats and management options of Lake Tana-associated
wetlands.‖ Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
Eshete, D. (2003). ―The small barbs of Lake Tana‖. Doctoral thesis, Experimental Zoology
Group, Wageningen University, The Netherlands
Ethiopia Wild Life and Natural History Society (EWLNHS) (1996). ―Important bird areas of
Ethiopia, first inventory.‖ Addis Ababa, pp 103-107
Gebre, A., Getachew, D. and McCartney, M.P. (2007). ―Chara Chara stakeholder survey.‖
Project report for CPWF project 36: Improved planning of large dam operation: using
decision support systems to optimize livelihood benefits, safeguard health and protect
the environment. International Water Management Institute (IWMI)
Kebede, S., Travi, Y., Alemayehu, T. and Marc, V. (2006). ―Water balance of Lake Tana and
its sensitivity to fluctuations in rainfall, Blue Nile Basin, Ethiopia.‖ Journal of
Hydrology 316, 233-247
Simulation of Water Resource Development and Environmental Flows in the Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
37
McCartney, M.P, Abeyu, S. and Yilma, S. (2008). ―Estimating environmental flow
requirements downstream of the Chara Chara weir on the Blue Nile River.‖ Paper
presented at Hydrology and Ecology of the Nile River Basin under extreme
conditions, June 16-19, 2008, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
McCartney, M.P. (2007).‖ Decision support systems for large dam planning and operation in
Africa.‖ International Water Management Institute. 47 p. (IWMI Working Paper 119),
Sri Lanka, Colombo
Ministry of Finance and Economic Development (MoFED) (2006). ―A plan for accelerated
and sustained development to end poverty (PASDEP), (2005/06-2009/10), volume I.‖
Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Mott MacDonald (2004). ―Koga irrigation project interim report.‖ Ministry of Water
Resource, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Salini and Mid-day (2006). ―Environmental impact assessment for Beles multipurpose
project.‖ Ethiopian Electric and Power Corporation, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Shaka, A. (2008). ―Assessment of climate change impacts on the hydrology of the Gilgel
Abbay catchment in the Lake Tana Basin, Ethiopia.‖ MSc thesis, ITC, Netherlands 72
pp
SMEC (2008). ―Hydrological Study of the Tana-Beles sub-basins, main report.‖ Ministry of
Water Resource, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Stockholm Environment Institute (SEI) (2007). ―WEAP: Water Evaluation and Planning
system – user guide.‖ Stockholm Environment Institute, Boston, USA
Water Works Design and Supervision Enterprise (WWDSE) and ICT (2008). ―Gumara
irrigation project, final feasibility study report, volume III: water resources (a),
annexure-7: meteorological and hydrological studies.‖ Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Water Works Design and Supervision Enterprise (WWDSE) and TAHAL (2008a). ―Lake
Tana sub-basin four dams project, final feasibility report for Ribb irrigation project,
volume III: hydrological report.‖ Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Water Works Design and Supervision Enterprise (WWDSE) and TAHAL (2008b). ―Lake
Tana sub-basin four dams project, final feasibility report for Megech irrigation project,
volume III: hydrological report.‖ Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
World Bank (2004). ―The water resources sector strategy: an overview.‖ The World Bank,
Washington D.C.
Yates, D., Sieber, J., Purkey, D., and Huber-Lee, A., 2005. WEAP 21 a demand, priority and
preference driven water planning model, part 1: model characteristics. Water
International 30, 487-500
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
38
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
Kamalddin E. Bashar1 and Mohanad O. Mustafa2
1UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources, Khartoum, Sudan 2 Ministry of Irrigation and Water Resources, Sudan
Abstract
Roseires Reservoir on the Blue Nile River was completed in 1966 to serve the purposes of hydropower generation, irrigation and flood retention. During its lifetime, the reservoir suffered from serious sedimentation, to the limit that its present capacity is less than 2 cubic kilometers (km3). Operation of the reservoir is maintained closely together with the Sennar Dam according to the operation policy. Operation of reservoirs depends on rules set for that purpose, which is based mainly on the water balance of the system among other factors. Such rules are rarely revised during the lifetime of the reservoirs. Roseires is not an exception. This paper presents an attempt to look closely at the different aspects of the operation and water balance parameters to gain an insight into the whole operation of the reservoir. In addition, an attempt is also made to find an accurate balance formula for the system, taking into account the part of the intervening catchment (14,578 km2) that is totally ungauged. The flow from the Ethiopian Highlands is monitored at Eddeim Station. The mean annual rainfall in the area amounts to approximately 700 mm. The daily evaporation rates were derived from monthly data available in the operation rules of the Blue Nile reservoirs. The change in reservoir storage (∆s), and surface area were computed from the bathymetric surveys conducted during 1985, 1992 and 2005. Water balance computations were carried out for 1985, 1995 and 2005, corresponding to the availability of data. The ten years bathymetric data survey intervals give enough time for changes in water balance to take place, if any. Daily and 10-day water balances were computed using Eddeim flow data as the only inflow to the reservoir for the whole year, and for the dry and rainy periods. It was found that outflow from the reservoir can be reproduced with an efficiency of 97% R2, indicating that the contribution of the intervening catchment to the inflows is negligible.
Introduction
The Nile River, which is shared between (10) countries, is the primary source of Sudan water.
The Blue Nile sub system in this respect accounts for 76% of the total irrigated agriculture on
the three Nile tributaries (Atbara, White Nile and Blue Nile). A major characteristic of the
Blue Nile discharges is the remarkable seasonality of its flow. More than 80% of the river
discharge flows during the flood months, (June – October). Two Dams were built across the
river (Sennar, 1925 and Roseires, 1966) to partially control the flows. The two dams serve
about 2.7 million feddan of the Sudan irrigated area, as well as more than 40% of the total
hydropower generation of the country.
The Roseires dam, which spans the Blue Nile 630 km upstream of Khartoum, is a 1000 m
long and 68 m high concrete dam with the crest at 482.2 m. The dam was completed in 1966
to be used for irrigation water supply and hydropower. The dam contains 5 deep sluices and a
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
39
gated spillway, consisting of 7 units, with a maximum discharge capacity at level 480 m of
16500 m3/s. The hydro-electrical potential amounts to 212 MW.
The volume of the reservoir was originally 3.0 milliard m3 at a level of 480 m with a surface
area of 290 Km2 extending over a length of 75 Km. The storage capacity has considerably
been affected by siltation and is now about 30 percent less. The recent capacity is estimated to
be about 2.1 milliard m3. A special operation strategy, maintaining low reservoir level and
high flow velocities during the passage of the flood, is applied to reduce the siltation.
The main inflow to the reservoir is monitored at eddeim station 102 km south-east of Roseires
dam on the Ethiopian/Sudanese border. This allows for an intervening catchment of 14,578
Km2 which is totally ungauged. As well the rainfall over the reservoir lake is monitored at
Damazin stations. The significance of the contribution of the intervening catchment and the
direct rainfall over the reservoir is alleged to be negligible.
Operation of reservoirs depends on rules set for that purpose, which is mainly based on water
balance of the system among other factors. Such rules are rarely revised during the life time of
the reservoirs and Roseires is not an exception.
This study is an attempt to closely look at the different aspects of the operation and water
balance parameters to have an inside about the whole operation of the reservoir. In addition,
to attempt finding accurate balance formula for the system, bearing in mind the part of the
intervening catchments and the direct rainfall over the reservoir.
The Study area
Roseires Dam was completed in 1966 with an initial capacity of 3.024 Km3 at level 480 m
level. The main objective to supply irrigation demands as first priority, and hydropower
generation comes secondly. During its lifetime, the reservoir suffered from serious
sedimentation to the limit that, its present capacity is less than 2.0 Km3.Operation of the dam
is maintained closely with Sennar dam, according to the operating policy. Discharge in
Roseires dam through gates (deep sluices and spillways) is computed by the dam operation
engineer using flow charts prepared from a physical model before dam construction in 1965.
The deep sluices with sill levels of 435.5m amsl are used to pass the main volume of the
flood, and to flush the sediment as much as possible. The deep sluices are always closed in
low flow seasons to reduce the possibility of cavitations damage on the downstream apron at
low tail water levels. The spillways with sills at 463.7m amsl are used to pass the peak of
major floods and also, if necessary, to augment the downstream flows in the low flow season
to provide the releases required for irrigation and other down stream water utilizations. At the
extremities of the concrete section on each bank provision has been made for gravity supplies
for future irrigation canals. On the west bank the head works would supply a future scheme in
the Kenana area and on the east bank; supplies could be made for a future irrigation scheme in
the Rahad, Dinder or Rosaries areas.
When the existing Rosaries dam was constructed provision was made for the future
construction of a power station with seven generating units. In 1971 three units, each with a
name plate rating of 30 MW were installed. The other four units were installed and
commissioned later in January 1979. These sets have turbines similar in size to those of the
first three units, but the generator name plate rating has been increased to 40 MW.
According to the design, the maximum retention level of the reservoir is 480.0m amsl.;
however a study in 1973 ( Sir Alexander Gibb & Partners, 1973.) came to the conclusion that
the reservoir could probably be filled to 481m each year for a limited number of years without
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
40
incurring an unacceptable degree of risk. Nevertheless the operating range of the reservoir is
kept between 467m and 480m.The live storage volume between these two levels is about
2386 million m³, which is released for use downstream between November and June. The
reservoir is held at the lower level through the flood season to minimize sediment deposition
and is filled to 480m on the falling flood when the sediment load is much lower. A recent
bathymetric survey has indicated that since the dam was built some 1.408 milliard m³of the
sediment has been deposited in the reservoir (HRS 2006), this definitely will affect the storage
characteristics of the reservoir.
The design of the present dam made provision for a subsequent increase in height of ten
meters. The limitation on the extent of the heightening was dictated by the necessity to avoid
creating adverse effects in Ethiopia. The foundations and first few meters of buttress
deepening required for the ultimate height were provided for in the initial construction and the
sections of the concrete dam adjoining the earth dam were built to the ultimate profile. Dam
heightening will be accompanied with extension in earth embankment bringing the total
length of the dam to about 25km. Figure (1) shows the location of the reservoir together with
the eddeim station. Figure (2) shows the longitudinal profile along the Blue Nile.
Figure 1: The Location of Roseires Dam and the Eddeim station within the Blue Nile in Ethiopia and Sudan
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
41
Figure 2: Longitudinal Profile of the Blue Nile
The data The data required for this study comprises flow data at eddeim, the dam releases, rainfall data,
evaporation data, reservoir characteristics and operation rules. These data is collected from
the Nile Waters Directorate (NWD) of the MoIWR and Hydrological Year Books published
by NWD.
The historical records of daily flows and water levels at Ed Deim and Roseires measuring
stations were available from 1965 to 2007. Table (1) shows the availability of the collected
data.
Table 1 The gauging sites under study
Gauging Site Date of
Erection
Latitude
X°Y N
Longitude
X°Y E
G a u g e
Z e r o
( m )
Data
Type
Period
Covered
Eddeim
1966 11 14 34 59 481.2 H, Q
1966-2007 U/S Roseires
dam 1966 - - 3.0 H 1966-2007
D/S Roseires
dam 1966 11 50 34 23 3.0 H, Q 1966-2007
Evaporation data is available from Table (2) of the Blue Nile Waters Study, Volume 3. In this
table the annual average Penman-evaporation is given in mm/day for the hydrological years
1962/63 to 1972/73. The project area was divided in five climatic zones of which the Roseires
dam lies in the Southern Zone. The average annual evaporation for this Zone varies from 5.7
to 6.3 in the considered period.
More recent climate data including values up to 1990 are available from database of
CROPWAT of the Food and Agriculture Organization of the United Nations (FAO). Climate
data is taken from the Damazin station which is located close to the Roseires dam. This data
base provides long term average values for e.g. rainfall and evapotranspiration for each
month. From this data base the monthly distribution of annual evapotranspiration can be
obtained.
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
42
For consideration of the evaporation from the reservoir the evapotranspiration needs to be
reduced to the evaporation by application of the formula ET0 = Kp * E0. The factor Kp can
be obtained from Table 5 of the FAO Irrigation and Drainage Paper No. 56 - Crop
Evapotranspiration.
Table 2 Reservoir evaporation values of Roseires reservoir
Methods
Water balance computation was done for years 1985, 1995 & 2005. The selection of these
years was due to the facts that during these years bathymetric surveys were done in the
reservoir. It can be seen from the selection that the interval is ten years which gives good time
for changes in water balance to take place and a period of 20 years can be covered.
During the period January to May, the gates are completely closed and water passes through
power turbines only. The discharge through the turbines was used to be monitored by gauges,
erected on the penstock of the turbines. However, since 1980's, those gauges were out of order
and the discharge was then computed indirectly from the amount of generated energy.
The calculations of the inflow-outflow water balance were carried out to illustrate the
relationship between the annual flows of the upstream and downstream measuring stations
within each system, taking into account the inter-flows, local abstractions and other related
factors.
This has clearly showed the deviations that might have occurred throughout these systems
over the years.
The water balance equation of the Blue Nile at Roseires Reservoir can be written as:
QEd +Runoff = QRos + losses +Δs
Where
QEd = Discharge from Ed Deim
QRos = Release from Roseires
Runoff = Runoff from catchment between Ed Deim and Roseires
Losses = evaporation and seepage losses if any
Δs = change of storage content of Roseires reservoir
Month Mean daily
evapo-
transpiration
Kp Mean monthly
evaporation *)
Mean monthly
evaporation
Mean monthly
rainfall
Mean monthly
net
evaporation
Percent
mm/day mm/day mm/month mm/month mm/month %
January 5.43 0.70 6.98 216.4 0.0 216.4 12.9
February 6.04 0.70 7.77 217.4 0.0 217.4 13.0
March 6.67 0.70 8.58 265.8 1.0 264.8 15.8
April 6.89 0.70 8.86 265.8 19.0 246.8 14.7
May 6.70 0.70 8.61 267.0 40.0 227.0 13.5
June 5.75 0.75 6.90 207.0 119.0 88.0 5.2
July 4.37 0.85 4.63 143.4 181.0 -37.6 -2.2
August 4.09 0.85 4.33 134.2 203.0 -68.8 -4.1
September 4.48 0.85 4.74 142.3 129.0 13.3 0.8
October 4.85 0.80 5.46 169.1 41.0 128.1 7.6
November 5.09 0.80 5.73 171.8 3.0 168.8 10.1
December 5.34 0.70 6.87 212.8 0.0 212.8 12.7
Total/Average 5.48 6.62 2,413.3 1,677.3 100.0
*) attanuation factor of 0.9 to adjust values to those of the southern zone in table 2.5 of the Blue Nile Waters Study
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
43
Results and Discussion
The application of water balance on daily basis was performed. The results for the three years
namely (1985, 1995 and 2005) are given respectively in figure (3) to figure (5).
Figure 3: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge of Rosieres
Dam - Daily 1985
Figure 4: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge of Rosieres Dam – Daily 1995
Comparison Between the Measured & Calculated Discharge of Rosieres Dam - Daily 1985
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
700
800
900
1/1
1/3
1
3/2
4/1
5/1
5/3
1
6/3
0
7/3
0
8/2
9
9/2
8
10/2
8
11/2
7
12/2
7
Time (Days)
Dis
ch
arg
es (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Computed
Balance
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge Release from Roseires Dam 1985 - (all year, Jan – Dec)
y = 1.0121x
R2 = 0.9718
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
700
800
0 100 200 300 400 500 600 700 800
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
ch
arg
es (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Comparison Between the compured & balane Calculated Discharge of Rosieres Dam - Daily 1995
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
1/1
1/3
1
3/2
4/1
5/1
5/3
1
6/3
0
7/3
0
8/2
9
9/2
8
10/2
8
11/2
7
12/2
7
Time (Days)
Dis
ch
arg
es (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Computed
Balance
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge Release from Roseires Dam 1995 - (all year, Jan – Dec)
y = 0.9838x
R2 = 0.9731
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
0 100 200 300 400 500 600
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
44
Figure 5: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge of Roseires
Dam - Daily 2005
The over all performance of the water balance on daily basis is relatively high which accounts
for 97% of the initial variance. It should be noted that the calculation of water balance does
not take into consideration the contributions of the intervening catchment and direct rainfall
over the reservoir. This indicates that these contributions are insignificant.
10-Days water balance at Ed Deim Station (Back Routing):
The water balance is performed at 10 days time step at Ed Deim station.
Ed Deim station was chosen because of its stable river section (deep gorge) at the site.
Although discharge measurements using cable at Ed Deim was ceased since1972, the
recorded flow by staff gauge is believed to be reliable up to date.
As the balance of the river and the reservoir is greatly affect by season, in this work two
periods were considered. These are:
Flood period from 1st June to 31 November (with rain fall),
Dry period from 1st December to 31 May (without rain fall).
Dry Period (December – May):
During the low flow period, December to May, usually, the dam gates are completely closed
and flow is entirely through the power turbines. Leakage through spillways and deep sluices is
negligible, which means validation of dam releases during low flow period, is actually
validation of the discharge through power station. The discharge through the turbines is
computed from the power equation P=γQH, knowing the power P, head H and efficiency γ,
the discharge Q is calculated.
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge Release from Roseires Dam 2005 - (all year, Jan – Dec)
y = 0.9579x
R2 = 0.9693
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
0 100 200 300 400 500 600
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
ch
arg
es (
Mm
3/D
ays)
-
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
1/1 1/31 3/2 4/1 5/1 5/31 6/30 7/30 8/29 9/28 10/28 11/27 12/27
Time (Days)
Day
s D
isch
arge
(M
M3
) Computed
Balance
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
45
The water balance results for years 1985, 1995 and 2005 were obtained for the dry season of
ten days interval and compared with the observed discharge at Ed Deim. The results are
shown in figure (6) to figure (8).
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Dry (Jan 1985-May 1985)
y = 1.0232x
R2 = 0.5782
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Figure 6: Relationships between the Computed and Observed Discharge at Ed Deim Station -
Dry (Jan-May 1985)
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Dry (Dec 1994-May 1995)
y = 1.0277x
R2 = 0.8296
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Figure 7: Relationship between the Computed and Observed Discharge at Ed Deim Station -
Dry (Dec 1994-May 1995)
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
46
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Dry (Jan-May 2005)
y = 1.1016x
R2 = 0.8498
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce D
isch
arg
es
(Mm
3/D
ays
)
Figure 8: Relationships between the Computed and Balance Discharge at Ed Deim Station -
Dry (Dec 2004-May 2005)
Flood Period (June – November):
The water balance for the wet season was also done for Ed Diem station. The results are
shown in figure 9 to figure 11 respectively for the three years 1985, 1995 and 2005.
Figure 9: Comparisons between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge at Ed Deim
Station - Flood (June-November 1985)
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Flood (Jun -Nov 1985)
y = 0.9673x
R2 = 0.9973
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
0 100 200 300 400 500 600
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
47
Figure 10: Comparisons between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge at Ed Deim
Station - Flood (June-November 1995)
Figure 11: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated Discharge at Ed Deim
Station - Flood (June-November 2005)
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Flood (Jun -Nov 1995)
y = 1.0071x
R2 = 0.9941
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
0 100 200 300 400 500 600
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge of Ed Deim Station - Flood (Jun -Nov 2005)
y = 1.0304x
R2 = 0.9818
0
100
200
300
400
500
600
0 100 200 300 400 500 600
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
cha
rge
s (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
48
Daily water balance at Ed Deim – Dry Period (December – May):
The water balance for daily basis for the dry season in Ed Diem was performed the results are
shown in figure 12 to figure 14.
Figure 12: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated daily Discharge at Ed
Diem –Dry (Jan 1985 – May 1985)
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge at Ed Deim Station daily- Dry (Dec 1994-May 1995)
y = 1.0068x
R2 = 0.8744
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Bal
ance
Dis
char
ges
(Mm
3 /Day
s)
Figure 13: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated daily Discharge at Ed
Diem –Dry (Dec 1994 – May 1995)
It is observed that the balance discharge for 1985 is always higher than the computed
discharge. The error in the water balance in this period is not systematic compared with water
level downstream Roseires dam. These errors in the balance calculated discharge occurred
due to the storage as shown in figure 12. It is observed that the result of the balance in 1995 is
almost symmetric expect for the period after 20 April as shown in figure 13
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge at Ed Deim Station daily- Dry (Jan 1985-May 1985)
y = 1.024x
R2 = 0.5081
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Bal
ance
Dis
char
ges
(Mm
3 /Day
s)
Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
49
Figure 14: Comparison between the Computed & Balance Calculated daily Discharge at Ed
Diem –Dry (Dec 2004 – May 2005)
The result of the balance in 2005 is not good at all and this may be due to the quality of data
(the bathymetric survey of 2005 is not accurate).
Conclusion and Recommendations
References
Relationship between the Computed and Balance Discharge at Ed Deim Station daily- Dry (Dec 2004-May 2005)
y = 1.0995x
R2 = 0.6013
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
35
40
45
0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 45
Computed Discharges (Mm3/Days)
Ba
lan
ce
Dis
ch
arg
es (
Mm
3/D
ays)
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
50
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
Yosif A. Ibrahim1, Moudathir S. Ramdan Elnil2 and Abdalla A. Ahmed3
1 Associate Professor, UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources (UNESCO-CWR), Khartoum, Sudan 2Postgraduate Student, UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources (UNESCO-CWR), Khartoum, Sudan
3 Director, UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources (UNESCO-CWR), Khartoum, Sudan
Abstract
This study aims to investigate and develop proper operational water management tools for the Rahad irrigation scheme. The Rahad project is considered as being among one of the schemes that could have a huge potential for expansion in the near future after the heightening of the Roseires Dam. The water supply sources for the Rahad scheme are the Blue Nile River and the Rahad seasonal river. The study explores options of augmenting the supply from the Rahad River during the wet season with the goal of minimizing sedimentation problems on the supply canals, reducing operation and maintenance costs associated with the Mena pumping station. Crop water requirements for the Rahad scheme were computed based on the historical cultivated areas of the different crops for the period 2000-2004. The Water Delivery Performance (WDP) Indicator for the scheme was evaluated. Frequency analysis and flow duration curves for the historical records of the Rahad seasonal stream were conducted in order to establish the yield of the Rahad River at different assurance levels. It is found that the yield from the Rahad seasonal river with 90% assurance level could be adequate to maintain an optimum performance of the irrigation system. Such proposed water management tools would improve the WDP by more than 25%. The dependence on the Rahad River during the wet season to meet the project irrigation water demands is anticipated to significantly minimize the maintenance and operation cost of diverting water from the Blue Nile.
Introduction
Studies of irrigation systems particularly in the developing countries always reveal a wide gap
between expectation and reality. Several researchers in Sudan studied the deterioration and
the low performance in Gezira scheme within the context of inadequate irrigation
management and the need for institutional reforms. Baily and Lenton (1984) outlined a
procedure for gathering and assessing information on water delivery performance of the
Gezira scheme. The Rahad Irrigation project is considered among one of the scheme that
could have a huge potential of expansion in the near future. The water supply sources for the
Rahad scheme are the Blue Nile River and the Rahad seasonal river. Mena pumping station
diverts water from the Blue Nile River to the Rahad scheme through the Rahad Supply canal.
During the flood or wet season that is between August and October, the supply to the Rahad
scheme is augmented from the Rahad Seasonal River. Water management and irrigation
efficiency of the Rahad Scheme was studied by a number of researchers. Hamad (2006)
investigated the performance oriented management approach for the Rahad irrigation system
using remote sensing and GIS. The broader objective of Hamad work was to achieve a
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
51
performance oriented attitude in managing irrigation systems through the development of a
decision support tool that help to evaluate the in-season and overall season performance. The
International Water Management Institute (IWMI) in Sudan, during the early nineties, carried
out performance evaluation study for the Rahad Scheme (Shafique, 1994).
Despite such effort, there is no system based management style in the Rahad scheme and
management relies on long experience of the staff. Consequently, operation decisions are
observed to be fully determined by ad hoc request, personal experience, urgencies of the
water users, and releasing more and probably unwanted water to minimize complaints and
conflicts with politician. Such style of water management poses a huge burden and stresses on
the scheme infrastructures in terms of maintenance and operation cost. As a result of poor
water management, sedimentation is considered one of the most serious problems in the
Rahad scheme. The carrying capacity of the irrigation system is decreased. The quantities of
sediments entering the scheme during the period July to October 1996 was estimated to be 0.6
million ton. The total amount of sedimentation along the supply canal is reported to be 4.2 M
m3. It affect very much bed level slope, being reduced from 4.1 cm/km to 3.5 cm/km and the
carrying capacity from 8.6 to 4.1 M m3/day . The supply canal is subjected to continuous
breaching whenever the discharges supplied by the pumps exceed 4.1 M m3/day (Ahmed at
al., 1996).
This study aims to investigate and develop proper operational water management tool for the
Rahad irrigation project that could potentially improve the irrigation efficiency of the scheme
and minimize the maintenance and operational cost of the water supply infrastructures. The
study explore options of augmenting the supply from the Rahad seasonal river during the wet
season (August-October) in order to minimize the sedimentation problems in the supply canal
and the operation and maintenance cost of the pumping units.
Performance of Irrigation Systems: Concept and Assessment
There is almost a consensus that a good irrigation water supply system must be judged by
three primary criteria, adequacy, timelines and equity. These characteristics will provide an
understanding of the management capacity to allocate, schedule, and distribute water in an
irrigation system. Other important criteria by which the health of an irrigation water supply
can be judged include an efficiency measure, which is widely used in assessing the
performance of the conveyance system. Generally the performance indicators of the irrigated
agricultural system can be categorized into three (Bos et al., 1993): the water supply indicator;
the agricultural performance indicators; and the economic, social and environmental
indicators. Table 1 describes briefly the main performance indicators for an irrigation delivery
system.
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
52
Table 1 Some Indicators of Irrigated Systems Performance (Hamad, 2006)
Water Supply Indicator Agricultural Indicators Socio-economic and
Environmental
1. Efficiency
Water Use
Efficiency
Conveyance
Efficiency
System
Efficiency
2. Adequacy
3. Reliability
4. Dependability
5. Maintenance Indicator
1. Yield
2. Production
3. Land use
1. Sustainability
2. Productivity
3. Profitability
4. Users Participation
5. Cost
Irrigation Efficiency
The irrigation efficiency can be defined at different levels in an irrigation system. These are
the conveyance efficiency, distribution efficiency, field application efficiency, and the overall
project efficiency (BOS 1979, 1997):
1
32
3
1
2
PrVV
VVVeEffiencyOveralloject
V
VeefficiencynApplicatioField
V
VVeefficiencyonDistributi
VV
VVeefficiencyeConcveyanc
c
mp
f
m
a
d
f
d
c
d
c
where: V1= inflow from other sources, V2= non-irrigation deliveries from conveyance system,
V3= non-irrigation deliveries from distribution system, Vd= volume delivered to distribution
system, Vc= volume diverted or pumped from the river or source, Vf= volume furnished to the
field, Vm= volume needed to maintain soil moisture above a minimum level required for the
crop. If the flow from other sources V1, and the non-irrigation deliveries V2 & V3 are
insignificant compared with the volume of water delivered to maintain soil moisture at the
required stage of the crop, the project overall efficiency can be expressed as:
adc
c
m
p exexeV
Ve
Adequacy
A fundamental concern of water delivery systems is to deliver irrigation water to adequately
irrigate the crops, and its measure will reflect the ability of the irrigation system to supply
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
53
enough water for satisfactory growth of the irrigated crops. This amount of water is a function
of the irrigated area, the crop consumptive use requirements, water application losses, and the
actual practices such as land preparation and salt leaching. On the other hand, the adequacy of
water delivered is dependent on the availability of water supplies, specified delivery schedule
or demand, the capacity of hydraulic structures to deliver water according to the schedules,
and the operation and maintenance of hydraulic structures. An instructive measure of
adequacy was first by Levine (1982), namely the Relative Water Supply (RWS):
SeepagePercET
RainIrrigation
requiredWaterDemand
SuppliedWaterRWS
)(
Oad & Levine (1985), Oad and Padmore (1989) address the issue of the adequacy of water
supplies to evaluate how well water was managed in irrigated rice fields under various supply
levels. They slightly modified the RWS defined by Levine (1982), by using the effective
rainfall instead of actual rainfall.
El Awad (1991) pointed out that, this definition however, neglects the fact that although the
total supply during the whole season may be satisfactory, some periods of water stress may be
experienced. A measure of the adequacy of water supplies must therefore reflect how the
water supply pattern matches the evapotranspiration needs of the crops. To cater for this
variation Lenton (1984) studied the adequacy of water supplies to non-rice irrigation systems,
and defined a measure which is called the Water Delivery Performance (WDP). The measure
takes into consideration the timing of water supply in relation to crop development:
T
t
tt
V
VKWDP
*
Where:
Vt=actual volume of water delivered to the irrigation area during period t of the crop growing
season
V*= target volume of water to be delivered to the irrigation area during period t of the
cropping season.
Kt= a weighing factor indicating the relative importance of the different crop stages during the
period t. The values of Kt are normalized so that they sum up to unity over the whole season.
T= number of time periods in the season.
Clearly the WDP may take values between zero and unity or greater than unity in which case
Lenton‘s suggested to take the reciprocal. According to Baily (1984) , the WDP can be
mathematically defined as:
n
t
ten
WDP1
)(1
)()()(
)(
)()()(
)(
)(*
*
*
*
tVtViftV
tV
tVtViftV
tV
te
Where: V(t) is the total volume of water entering the irrigation system during period t, V*(t) is
the total target volume of water to be supplied to the system during time t, and n is the number
of periods in the cropping season. WDP would equal 1.0 if the water delivered during each
watering is equal to the crop water requirement for that watering. It would equal to zero if no
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
54
water is delivered at all. The index could register both under-supply and over-supply within
the 0-1 range. In their effort to capture the problem of adequacy variation with respect to time
and location, particularly in large irrigation systems, Molden and Gates (1990) defined system
performance relative to adequacy as the spatial and temporal average of the ratio of delivered
or required amount of water:
R
RD
R
DA QQ
Q
Q
RTP
11
Where: PA= adequacy index, QD= delivered amount of water, QR= required amount of water,
R= region or sub region served by the system at time T. The index is calculated from the
average of discrete quantities of QD and QR defined at discrete locations of the water delivery
system in a region or a sub-region R, and for finite times t over T. When QD>QR, delivery is
considered adequate regardless of the magnitude of the excess. Weighted averages could be
used when it is desired to design water delivery priorities to a certain region in the system.
Description of Rahad Scheme
The Rahad Agriculture scheme was planned during the mid 1960s. Execution period began in
1973 up to 1977 when part of the Rahad Scheme was put under cultivation and the whole
scheme fully operated in 1981. All the studies done on Rahad scheme revealed the area
suitability for diversified pattern of cropping. The area of the scheme is well leveled and it
extends on the eastern bank of the Rahad River. The total area is 126000 hectares (300,000
Fed) extending from South to North with a gentle slope of 10 cm per km, with total length of
120 km and an average width of 10-25 km. 95% of the soils in the area are heavy clay. Soils
are classified as a very fine clay soils with clay percentage of 75% in the south and decreases
towards the north. The infiltration rates of Rahad soil is moderately low (0.8-1.9 cm/hr). The
hydraulic conductivity range from 1.7 – 4 cm/hr and the dry bulk density values range from
1.6 – 1.9 g/cm3. Effective soil depth is (100-120 cm) approximately. The scheme lies in the
semi dry zone with short rainy season from July to October. Annual rainfall increases
southwards from 300 mm in the north to 400 mm in the South. Peak rainfall is in August.
Evaporation from open water (E0) is estimated to range from 3000 mm/annum (Wad Medani)
in the North to 2450 mm/annum (Sennar) in the South. Highest daily evaporation was 10
mm/day in the North and 8 mm/day in the South during May. Maximum daily air temperature
is 41.6 oC in the North during May and 41.3
oC in the South during April while minimum
daily air temp is about 14.3 oC during January. Relative humidity (RH) is maximum during
August reaching 67% and minimum during April about 18%. Maximum wind speed is during
June and July reaching 4.9 m/sec. Table 2 summarize the climate in the Rahad Scheme.
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
55
Table 2 Climate Average in Rahad Scheme
Climate Variable North of
Scheme
South of
Scheme
Month
Rainfall (mm) 300-350 350-400 July-October
Maximum daily air temperature (oC) 41.6 41.3 May & April
Minimum daily air temperature (oC) 14.3 14 January
Maximum Relative Humidity (RH) % 67 64 August
Minimum Relative Humidity (RH) % 18 21 April
Maximum Wind Speed (m/s) 4.9 3.6 June
Minimum Wind Speed (m/s) 2.2 2.2 October
Maximum Daily Evaporation (mm/day) 10 8 May
Total Evaporation (mm/year) 3000 2450 January-December
Crop rotation in the Rahad scheme began in 1977 with two course rotation and main the crops
are cotton and groundnuts up to 1981. Tenancy holding in the Rahad Scheme is 22 Feddan for
field crops, five Fed. For Vegetable crops and 10 Fed. For fodder crops. In the season 1981/82
sorghum (Dura) was introduced in the scheme for some local socio-economic reasons and the
rotation become three course rotation: Cotton 11 Fed., Groundnut 6.5 Fed., and Dura 5.5 Fed.
That rotation continued up to 1989 when wheat was introduced for national food security
reasons and the rotation became a four course rotation: Cotton, wheat, groundnut and Dura
5.5 fed each. Vegetables, fodder and forestry are introduced in the rotation to satisfy the needs
of inhabitants in the scheme. The adoption of free market economy in the scheme (1994) had
its own implication on the Rahad rotation. The current situation for the future policy is to
react positively to the market signals (i.e. supply, demand and prices) and the rotation in the
scheme may include new crops such as Sugar cane, Maize, Sesame and Sunflower. The
recommended Sowing Dates of the Main Crops in the Rahad Scheme for Groundnut is from
June 1st to June 20
th ; Cotton from early July to mid of August; Sorghum (Dura) between 1
st to
10th
of July; and Wheat between November 3rd
to December 12th
.
Scheme Management Organization
The scheme runs by the Rahad Agricultural Corporation (RAC), Irrigation Water Corporation
and Farmers Union. The Rahad scheme is divided into nine divisions. Each division called
group and administered by Agricultural Group Manager. The group manager is assisted by
five field inspectors, an agricultural engineer and one plant protection specialist. Thirty water
watchmen assist in supervising and operating the intermediate regulators of the minor canal
and field outlet pipes and oversee the progress of irrigation and other agricultural activities in
the field. The Irrigation Water Corporation is responsible of operating the main system of
irrigation from the Blue Nile where the pumps are situated up to and including the off-take
structures of the minor canals. Minor operation is done by the Rahad Agricultural
Administration.
Water Supply Infrastructure of the Scheme
Figure (1), below shows schematic of the major water supply infrastructures of the scheme
which consist of: (a) Mena Pumping station which divert water from the Blue Nile to the
scheme; (b) Abu-Rakham barrage which serve as the major regulator of both the supply from
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
56
Rahad river and the Blue Nile River; (c) Supply canal from Mena to Abu Rakham; (d) a
canalization system of main, major and minor canals which distribute water from Abu-
Rakham to the field.
Figure 1: Schematic of the Water Supply Infrastructure (Rahad Scheme)
Mena Pump Station
Eleven electrical centrifugal pumps are suited 200 km downstream Roseries Dam on the
eastern bank of the Blue Nile River for the purpose of irrigating the Rahad Agricultural
Scheme. Operation head is between elevation 421.7m and 417.8m below which cavitations
will take place and may cause damage to the pumps. The capacity and number of pumps was
determined according to the maximum Crop Water Requirements (CWR) during the growing
season. The peak CWR in the Rahad Scheme is 28 m3/Fed/day and that figure is used in the
design of all irrigation networks. The Capacity of Main Canal=228 m3/Fed/day x 300,000 Fed
= 8.4 Million m3/day. The Capacity of the pumps is 9.55 m
3/sec per pump. The total
discharges given by operating 10 pumps for 24 hrs (design capacity) are given as follows:
Total Discharge pump capacity = 10 pumps x 9.55 m3/sec per pump x 24 hrs/day x
3600 sec/hr = 8.25 Million m3/day. While at low head it may reach up to 9.0 M m
3/day
(10.5 m3/sec per pump). One pump is left as a reserve.
After 38 years of work, pumps situation has been deteriorated. Three pumps are out of work
and the remaining eight pumps need urgent maintenance and repairs. Current operation of
pumps does not exceed 20 hours per day due to power outage and lack of proper maintenance.
Original design was based on 24 hrs continuous operation.
The inlet channel to Mena pumping station is 100 m long and 80 m wide. Its main function is
to link the pump station to the Blue Nile River. Bed Elevation is at 413 m. Contribution of the
Abu
Rakham
Barrage
Supply Canal
from Mena
Rahad River
U.S. Inflow
Rahad Main Canal
Diverted Flow to RAS
Rahad River
Return Flow
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
57
Blue Nile through the inlet channel and pump station is about 55% of the total seasonal
consumptive use of the RAS. Seasonal sedimentation occurring during the flood was and still
the main constraints which limit water availability in the RAS.
Supply Canal
The Supply canal is setup to convey discharges from pump station to the Rahad River one km
upstream of Abu Rakham Barrage. It extends for 81 km from west to east with a design
capacity of 105 m3/s, water slope of 4.5 cm per km, water velocity of 0.619 m/s, bed width of
40 m and water depth of 3.6 m. The section of the can is of trapezoidal shape with side slopes
2:1, critical command of 1.72 m and full supply level maintained at elevation 432.0 m
downstream the pumps. Eight bridges are set up along the supply canal. Small pumps are
installed along the supply canal to irrigate some area of the Blue Nile Corporation (Total
discharges of 2,000 m3/d). Two siphons are constructed to drain rain water during the rainy
season at Kilo 43 and 77. The supply canal crosses Dinder River through a Siphon at Kilo 23.
Abu Rakham Barrage
This is a diversion structure set up across the Rahad River to divert water from its normal
channel into the Rahad main canal (Figure 2). Fifteen vertical sluice gates are constructed for
the operation of the barrage across the Rahad natural stream. There are nine gates operated on
the natural stream of the Rahad River while six gates are operated on the main canal system.
Dimensions of the gates are 6m in length and 4m in width.
Figure 2: Regulators at Abu Rakham Barrage
The discharge is computed using the following equation:
Where: Q is the discharge in Mm3/day, Ot is the total underneath opening in (m) of the sluice
gate and h is the head difference in (m).
mhhOQ
mhhOQ
mhhOQ
t
t
t
264.0)012.0182.1
25.011.0)378.0(178.1
10.0169.0431.1
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
58
Main Canal System
It extends for 101 km with a carrying capacity of 8.64 M m3/day. The network system which
is connected to the main canal consist of 215 km length of majors, 780 km of minors, 350 km
of tertiary canals (Abu Ishreen) length is 4500 km. The main canal problems are the same as
those of the supply canal (sedimentation).
Analysis and Results
The data collected for Rahad scheme consist of (a) historical monthly demands both requested
(water indents) and actual supplied to the scheme for the Period 1987-2006; (b) Historical
monthly Rahad seasonal flows and Rahad return flow after abstraction for the period 1980-
2006; (c) Historical data of cultivated areas for each crop on 10-days basis for the period
2000-2004; (d) Climatological data which consist of rainfall and evaporation data on 10-days
basis for the period 2000-2005; (e) Published data on crop coefficient for all the crops
cultivated in the Rahad scheme; (f) Sowing dates for the crops in the Rahad scheme and (g)
Capacity of the existing water supply and conveyance infrastructure of the scheme. This
includes the capacity of the pumping unit at Mena, supply canal and main canals. Physical
characteristics of Abu-Rakham regulators and stage-discharge relationship.
Data Pre-Screening: Supply versus Demand Analysis
To investigate the adequacy of the two water supply sources in meeting the historical
irrigation demand of the scheme, the monthly supplied and requested demands (indent) were
plotted and analyzed for the period 1987 to 2006 (Figures 3 to 5). It could be noted from the
Figures, that the supply in some years exceed the requested demands (excess supply) and in
other seasons there is a water shortage or deficit problems. The period between January 1st,
1994 to December 1999 (Figure 6), showed a continuous trend of water deficit problems in
the scheme where the historical water indent or requested demand exceeds the supply at Abu-
Rakham. The months of June , September, October and November are considered to be the
water demand period for the crops (Figure 8). The water shortage or water stress problems
normally start in the months of September, October and November. This indicate that the
major water shortage is associated with the operation of Abu Rakham barrage and Mena
Station, during the period which start in august and end the last week of September.
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
59
Figure 3: Supply versus Requested Demand: Abu-Rakham Station (Jan 1987 – Dec. 1991)
Figure 4: Supply versus Requested Demand: Abu-Rakham Station (Jan 1994 – Dec. 2000)
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
60
Figure 5: Supply versus Requested Demand: Abu-Rakham Station (Jan 2000 – Dec. 2006)
Estimation of Irrigation & Crop Water Requirements
To examine the water shortage problems the actual water requirements of the scheme for the
years 2000-2004 were estimated based on a simple mass balance method. The mass balance
equation, takes into consideration effective rainfall and actual crop water requirements or crop
water uses rather than anticipated or requested demands which are based on planned irrigation
areas.
The water balance method used to assess the irrigation requirements could be expressed as
follows:
SLRDPlantedAreaRFKETCWR co )()(
where: CWR represent irrigation or Crop Water Requirement, RF effective rainfall, ETo is the
reference Crop Evapotranspiration, Kc is the crop coefficient which depend on the type of
crop and also varies with time, D deep percolation, R runoff, L leaching requirements and ∆S
change in soil moisture storage. The central clay plane of the Sudan, where Rahad scheme is
part of it, is characterized by being free from salts, flat and with high clay content. For these
characters of Rahad soils, the leaching requirements, runoff and deep percolation is
insignificant on water application. During each irrigation soil moisture is brought to its
original level, then ∆S=0 and thus the formula becomes:
)()( PlantedAreaRFKETCWR co
An Excel-Spreadsheet was developed to compute the crop water requirements for the Rahad
scheme on monthly basis. The CWR calculations are tabulated for the Years 2000-2004 as
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
61
shown in Table 3. It can be noted from the Table that, the months of August, September,
October and November form the period of maximum demand and water shortage or water
stress problems, with September and October considered to be the peak demand months for
the growing season. On average annual basis about 45% of the water supplied to the scheme
is diverted from the Rahad River at Abu-Rakham Barrage during the wet season of July to
October and 55% is diverted from the Blue Nile River through Mena Pumping station. As
could be realized from the Table, the total annual release from Abu-Rakham to the main canal
of the project, always exceeds the net crop water requirements of the scheme with an average
factor of 1.43 (i.e. Average Annual Release to the main Canal of the scheme = 1.43 x Average
Net Annual Crop Water requirement). This includes the water requirements for the forested
areas. Considering conveyance losses and deep percolation losses such annual quantity of
supplied water should be adequate to meet scheme water demands and account for more than
30% losses. This implies that, the total annual water supplied to the scheme is adequate but
the timing and management of water supply sources are the main causes of water deficit and
water stresses problems during the growing seasons of the crop. It could also be noted from
the table that the total annual yield of the Rahad river alone exceed the water demand for the
scheme by a factor than ranges from 1.4 to 3.2. This indicate that through proper management
of the regulators at Abu-Rakham Barrage the supply from Rahad seasonal river could be
augmented during the months of August, September and October to meet the majority of the
water demand of the scheme with minimum dependence from Mena Pump station which
could possibly be functioning during the dry season only and/or as a backup to supplement the
Rahad during low yield years. Such proposed operational rule for the scheme, would decrease
the operation and maintenance cost of the pumping station and could potentially reduce the
siltation and sediment dredging operation on the supply canal. Considering the fact that, the
Blue Nile River carries high concentration of sediment during the months of August to
October, minimizing the Mena Pumping operation during this period, could potentially reduce
the quantity of sediments entering the supply canal of the Rahad scheme.
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
62
Table 3 Crop-Water Requirements Computations and Comparison of Supply versus Demand
Rahad Irrigation Scheme for the Period 2000-2004
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
63
Yield Frequency Analysis for the Rahad Seasonal River
To estimate the reliable yield for the Rahad River, frequency analysis for daily time series
data (1980-2006) is conducted. Flow duration curves for each day of the period July 1st to
October 31st is constructed. The corresponding yields at different assurance levels were
estimated from the flow duration curve for each day of the wet period. The decadal yield is
then estimated by adding the up the daily yields for the 10 days period. Figure 6 shows the
computed Rahad yields at different assurance level. Summary of the results are shown in
Table 4.
Table 4 Yield Analysis Results for the Rahad River
Decedal Period Average 80% 85% 90% 95% 100% Yr. 2000 Yr. 2001 Yr. 2002 Yr. 2003 Yr. 2004 Yr. 2005 Average
July 1st -July 10th 38.5 2.9 0.0 0.0 0.0 0.0 21.3 10.7 10.7 18.6 15.4 19.1 16.0
July 11th- July 20th 65.6 22.5 0.0 11.4 9.0 0.0 30.3 21.9 21.9 25.4 23.2 27.6 25.0
July 20th - July 31st 120.2 58.3 0.0 42.5 34.9 0.0 39.0 38.6 38.6 30.3 31.7 34.1 35.4
Aug. 1st -Aug.10th 107.0 81.2 76.1 70.0 62.6 47.8 47.6 50.4 50.4 35.4 46.3 40.1 45.0
Aug. 11th - Aug. 20th 120.8 103.2 99.6 94.4 88.5 71.0 51.6 54.3 54.3 38.0 49.8 43.3 48.6
Aug. 21st - Aug. 31st 143.9 136.3 132.7 123.0 114.0 64.9 56.8 61.3 61.3 43.3 56.7 48.8 54.7
Sept. 1st -Sept. 10th 133.0 126.5 116.5 107.7 91.3 58.2 64.4 68.6 68.6 47.9 62.8 54.0 61.1
Sept. 11th - Sept. 20th 130.7 114.5 109.2 95.9 81.7 52.4 66.7 69.9 69.9 49.4 64.7 56.0 62.8
Sept. 21st - Sept. 30th 113.0 90.6 80.6 71.6 59.7 37.6 67.3 70.8 70.8 51.2 67.0 57.3 64.1
Oct. 1st- Oct. 10th 94.2 70.7 62.4 56.6 43.5 34.8 62.6 62.9 62.9 47.7 62.2 52.7 58.5
Oct. 11th - Oct 20th 64.6 35.1 31.5 27.7 24.7 18.8 59.9 59.1 59.1 46.3 60.3 50.3 55.8
Oct. 2oth - Oct. 31st 49.5 20.6 16.3 13.3 12.6 0.9 56.0 55.0 55.0 45.7 59.5 47.9 53.2
Yield From Rahad River at Different Assurance Levels (MCM) Net Water Requirement for Rahad Scheme (MCM)
As could be realized from the Table, Based on 90% assurance level, the yield of the Rahad
seasonal river is adequate to meet the irrigation demand for the Rahad scheme for the period
Figure 6: Rahad Yield at Different Assurance Levels
0.0
20.0
40.0
60.0
80.0
100.0
120.0
140.0
Ju
ly 1
st
-Ju
ly 1
0th
Ju
ly 1
1th
- Ju
ly 2
0th
Ju
ly 2
0th
- J
uly
31st
Au
g.
1st
-Au
g.1
0th
Au
g.
11th
- A
ug.
20th
Au
g.
21st
- A
ug.
31st
Se
pt.
1st
-Se
pt.
10th
Se
pt.
11th
- S
ept.
20th
Se
pt.
21st
- S
ept.
30th
Oct.
1st-
Oct.
10th
Oct.
11th
- O
ct
20th
Oct.
2oth
- O
ct.
31st
Period
Yie
ld (
MC
M)
90% Assurance Level
95% Assurance Level
Firm Yield
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
64
August 1st to Sept 30
th. For 80% Assurance level the Rahad yield is adequate to meet the
demand for the period July 20th
to October 10th
. For the purpose of this study the 90%
assurance level is selected as the design criteria for the proposed operation rule of the scheme.
The analysis of irrigation water supply adequacy is applied to evaluate if enough quantity of
water is delivered when it is required. The WDP is an index for evaluation of water delivery
performance (Baily 1984). The WDP takes into account both the actual and the target quantity
and timing of water supply. The weighted method of computing WDP (Lenton -1984) is
implemented to evaluate the adequacy of Rahad Irrigation scheme. The weighted factor Kt is
taken as the ratio of CWR during the time period under consideration to the total annual
CWR. The results of Irrigation Adequacy analysis are shown in Table (5) below.
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
65
Table 5 Water Delivery Performance Computation Existing Condition for the Period 2000-2004
Coulmn (1) Column (2) Column (3) Column(4) Column (5) Colum (6)
Month
Million Cubic Meters Million Cubic Meters Million Cubic Meters MCM MCM MCM
June 31.0 5.6 30.1 98.9 0.03 1.0
July 90.6 30.4 73.8 157.2 0.08 3.7
August 156.1 48.0 131.5 103.9 0.14 11.0
Sept 198.4 23.4 204.7 125.3 0.22 13.3
October 178.5 13.8 191.6 178.6 0.20 18.9
November 114.5 0.0 131.6 108.2 0.14 11.4
Dec. 45.6 0.0 52.4 58.5 0.06 5.0
Jan 43.8 0.0 50.3 35.5 0.05 3.7
Feb 33.2 0.0 38.2 32.5 0.04 3.4
March 14.8 0.0 17.0 21.1 0.02 1.4
April 7.4 0.0 8.5 27.6 0.01 0.3
May 13.6 0.0 15.6 21.3 0.02 1.2
Year 2000 927.5 121.2 945.4 968.4 1.00 74.3
June 14.6 1.5 15.3 87.4 0.02 0.3
July 71.2 26.1 55.7 185.1 0.07 2.0
August 166.1 66.7 124.3 74.2 0.15 8.9
Sept 209.3 29.6 211.2 166.8 0.25 20.0
October 177.0 7.3 196.2 169.8 0.24 20.4
November 106.9 0.0 123.0 86.6 0.15 10.4
Dec. 23.4 0.0 26.9 56.6 0.03 1.5
Jan 21.2 0.0 24.4 40.7 0.03 1.8
Feb 20.3 0.0 23.3 49.0 0.03 1.3
March 15.3 0.0 17.6 36.8 0.02 1.0
April 2.8 0.0 3.3 26.6 0.00 0.0
May 9.4 0.0 10.8 42.1 0.01 0.3
Year 2001 837.5 131.2 831.9 1021.4 1.00 68.2
June 14.6 4.4 12.4 62.3 0.02 0.4
July 71.2 54.4 27.4 116.8 0.04 0.9
August 166.1 134.2 56.8 68.5 0.08 6.9
Sept 209.3 38.0 202.7 96.7 0.30 14.2
October 177.0 1.6 202.0 146.0 0.30 21.4
November 106.9 0.0 123.0 93.6 0.18 13.7
Dec. 23.4 0.0 26.9 93.5 0.04 1.1
Jan 21.2 0.0 24.4 45.5 0.04 1.9
Feb 2.3 0.0 2.6 25.9 0.00 0.0
March 0.5 0.0 0.6 28.3 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 17.4 0.00 0.0
May 2.4 0.0 2.8 26.6 0.00 0.0
Year 2002 795.6 232.5 682.4 820.9 1.00 60.6
June 11.9 5.1 8.6 61.4 0.01 0.2
July 74.2 41.9 43.4 101.9 0.07 2.9
August 116.7 99.4 34.9 1.7 0.05 0.3
Sept 148.6 28.1 142.7 50.5 0.22 7.8
October 139.7 1.2 159.4 170.9 0.25 22.9
November 105.7 0.0 121.5 119.1 0.19 18.3
Dec. 46.8 0.0 53.9 102.4 0.08 4.4
Jan 41.8 0.0 48.0 56.2 0.07 6.3
Feb 26.0 0.0 29.9 55.7 0.05 2.5
March 2.8 0.0 3.2 46.2 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 17.5 0.00 0.0
May 2.4 0.0 2.8 17.1 0.00 0.1
Year 2003 717.3 175.7 649.2 800.6 1.00 65.6
June 17.2 5.7 14.0 104.5 0.02 0.2
July 70.4 43.6 37.3 149.7 0.04 1.1
August 152.8 129.7 46.1 73.9 0.05 3.4
Sept 194.4 36.7 186.9 193.7 0.22 21.1
October 182.0 1.6 207.8 173.7 0.24 20.3
November 149.1 0.0 171.4 128.5 0.20 15.0
Dec. 71.6 0.0 82.3 77.5 0.10 9.1
Jan 52.3 0.0 60.2 80.3 0.07 5.3
Feb 36.2 0.0 41.6 62.3 0.05 3.2
March 3.1 0.0 3.5 65.0 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 5.3 0.00 0.0
May 2.3 0.0 2.6 24.9 0.00 0.0
Year 2004 932.1 217.4 854.6 1139.2 1.00 78.8
n
Co JcropAreaxJcropKET1
)()( RF x Total Monthly Planted Area CWR =1.15x Column(1)
- Column(2)
Actual
SupplyWDP
12
1i
i
i
CWR
CWRw
i
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
66
Proposed Operational Rule for Improving the Water Management of the Scheme
The proposed water management and operational rule entirely relay on the Rahad seasonal
river to supply the irrigation demands during the month of July, August and September. From
Table (4), the yield from the Rahad river at 90% assurance level for the months of July,
August and September are 53.4, 287.4 and 275.2 MCM respectively. Such quantity of water
would be available to meet the irrigation demands during this period. Any surplus or excess
water could be returned to the Rahad River through the regulators at Abu Rakham Barrage. In
the proposed scenario, the supply from Mena pumping station would be ceased during the
months of July to September (season of high sediment concentration at the Blue Nile River).
For the Month of October, it is anticipated that Mena pumping station would be operational
with half capacity (that is 5 pumps for 20 Days continuous operation). Such a supply from
Mena station would add 80 MCM to the 90% assurance yield of 97.6 MCM from the Rahad
River making a total supply of 178 MCM for October. Summary of the proposed operational
rules for the scheme is described in Table (6) below.
Table 6 Revised Operational Rule for the Scheme during the period July to October
Month Rahad Yield Supply from Total supply Remarks
90% Assurance (MCM) Mena (MCM) (MCM)
July 53.4 0 53.4 No supply from Mena station to the scheme
August 287.4 0 287.4 No supply from Mena station to the scheme
Sept. 275.2 0 275.2 No supply from Mena station to the scheme
October 97.6 80 177.6 Operate 5 pumps for 20 days
Based on the revised operational rules, the WDP for the scheme is computed for the period
2000 to 2004 as shown in Table (7) and the WDP under both existing conditions and
proposed scenario are then compared as presented in Figure (7).
Year WDP % Existing WDP% Proposed % Improvement
2000 74.3 87.6 17.8
2001 68.2 84.9 24.6
2002 60.6 85.3 40.7
2003 65.6 87.9 34.0
2004 78.8 85.3 8.3
Average 69.5 86.2 25.1
Figure (7): Comparison of Water Delivery Performance for Existing and Proposed Operational Rules
60.0
65.0
70.0
75.0
80.0
85.0
90.0
95.0
100.0
2000 2001 2002 2003 2004
Year
WD
P%
Existing Condition
Proposed Scenario
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
67
Table 7 Water Delivery Performance Computation Proposed Operation Rule
Coulmn (1) Column (2) Column (3) Column(4) Column (5) Colum (6)
Month
Million Cubic Meters Million Cubic Meters Million Cubic Meters MCM MCM MCM
June 31.0 5.6 30.1 98.9 0.03 1.0
July 90.6 30.4 73.8 53.9 0.08 5.7
August 156.1 48.0 131.5 131.5 0.14 13.9
Sept 198.4 23.4 204.7 204.7 0.22 21.7
October 178.5 13.8 191.6 177.6 0.20 18.8
November 114.5 0.0 131.6 108.2 0.14 11.4
Dec. 45.6 0.0 52.4 58.5 0.06 5.0
Jan 43.8 0.0 50.3 35.5 0.05 3.7
Feb 33.2 0.0 38.2 32.5 0.04 3.4
March 14.8 0.0 17.0 21.1 0.02 1.4
April 7.4 0.0 8.5 27.6 0.01 0.3
May 13.6 0.0 15.6 21.3 0.02 1.2
Year 2000 927.5 121.2 945.4 968.4 1.00 87.6
June 14.6 1.5 15.3 87.4 0.02 0.3
July 71.2 26.1 55.7 53.9 0.07 6.5
August 166.1 66.7 124.3 124.3 0.15 14.9
Sept 209.3 29.6 211.2 211.2 0.25 25.4
October 177.0 7.3 196.2 177.6 0.24 21.3
November 106.9 0.0 123.0 86.6 0.15 10.4
Dec. 23.4 0.0 26.9 56.6 0.03 1.5
Jan 21.2 0.0 24.4 40.7 0.03 1.8
Feb 20.3 0.0 23.3 49.0 0.03 1.3
March 15.3 0.0 17.6 36.8 0.02 1.0
April 2.8 0.0 3.3 26.6 0.00 0.0
May 9.4 0.0 10.8 42.1 0.01 0.3
Year 2001 837.5 131.2 831.9 1021.4 1.00 84.9
June 14.6 4.4 12.4 62.3 0.02 0.4
July 71.2 54.4 27.4 27.4 0.04 4.0
August 166.1 134.2 56.8 56.8 0.08 8.3
Sept 209.3 38.0 202.7 202.7 0.30 29.7
October 177.0 1.6 202.0 177.6 0.30 26.0
November 106.9 0.0 123.0 93.6 0.18 13.7
Dec. 23.4 0.0 26.9 93.5 0.04 1.1
Jan 21.2 0.0 24.4 45.5 0.04 1.9
Feb 2.3 0.0 2.6 25.9 0.00 0.0
March 0.5 0.0 0.6 28.3 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 17.4 0.00 0.0
May 2.4 0.0 2.8 26.6 0.00 0.0
Year 2002 795.6 232.5 682.4 820.9 1.00 85.3
June 11.9 5.1 8.6 61.4 0.01 0.2
July 74.2 41.9 43.4 43.4 0.07 6.7
August 116.7 99.4 34.9 34.9 0.05 5.4
Sept 148.6 28.1 142.7 142.7 0.22 22.0
October 139.7 1.2 159.4 177.6 0.25 22.0
November 105.7 0.0 121.5 119.1 0.19 18.3
Dec. 46.8 0.0 53.9 102.4 0.08 4.4
Jan 41.8 0.0 48.0 56.2 0.07 6.3
Feb 26.0 0.0 29.9 55.7 0.05 2.5
March 2.8 0.0 3.2 46.2 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 17.5 0.00 0.0
May 2.4 0.0 2.8 17.1 0.00 0.1
Year 2003 717.3 175.7 649.2 800.6 1.00 87.9
June 17.2 5.7 14.0 104.5 0.02 0.2
July 70.4 43.6 37.3 37.3 0.04 4.4
August 152.8 129.7 46.1 46.1 0.05 5.4
Sept 194.4 36.7 186.9 186.9 0.22 21.9
October 182.0 1.6 207.8 177.6 0.24 20.8
November 149.1 0.0 171.4 128.5 0.20 15.0
Dec. 71.6 0.0 82.3 77.5 0.10 9.1
Jan 52.3 0.0 60.2 80.3 0.07 5.3
Feb 36.2 0.0 41.6 62.3 0.05 3.2
March 3.1 0.0 3.5 65.0 0.00 0.0
April 0.7 0.0 0.9 5.3 0.00 0.0
May 2.3 0.0 2.6 24.9 0.00 0.0
Year 2004 932.1 217.4 854.6 1139.2 1.00 85.3
n
Co JcropAreaxJcropKET1
)()( RF x Total Monthly Planted Area CWR =1.15x Column(1)
- Column(2)
Proposed
SupplyWDP
12
1i
i
i
CWR
CWRw
i
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
68
Summary and Conclusion
The results of the water demand versus supply for the Rahad irrigation scheme indicates water
shortage and water stress problems during the growing season of August to October. Such
water stress problems are mainly due to poor water management. It is found that the annual
yield of the Rahad River at 90% assurance level could be adequate to meet the water demand
of the scheme during the period of July to October. The Water Delivery Performance of the
irrigation system under both existing and future proposed operational rules were evaluated.
On average the WDP under existing conditions for the period 2000-2004 is found to be 69%.
The proposed operational rules relies entirely on the yield from the Rahad river during the
period July 1st to September 30
th during which the Mena pumping station would be non-
operational and the pumps would only be scheduled to operate during the month of October
with half capacity (5 pumps) for a period of 20 days. Based on the proposed operational rule,
the WDP for the period 2000-2004 is recalculated and the average WDP for the period is
found to be 86% which reflects an improvement of about 25% over the existing situation.
Such a proposed operation rule would relieve the burden on the stressed pumping unit and
could potential reduce the maintenance cost of the pumping units and dredging operation on
the supply canal.
References
Ahmed, S. E., A/Alla E. E. and Hamid S. E. (1996). Survey results of Rahad phase I supply
canal, Volume 1 . Ministry of Irrigation and Water Resources, Hydraulic Research
Station, Wad Medani, Sudan
Baily, C. and Lenton, R. (1984). A management tool for the Gezira irrigation systems.
Conference paper on water distribution in Sudanese Irrigated Agriculture Productivity
and Equity. University of Gezira, Wad Medani
Bos, M.G., Murray D.H., Merry D.J., Johnson H.G., and Snellen W.B. (1993).
―Methodologies for assessing performance of irrigation and drainage management‖.
Paper presented at the workshop on Irrigation and Drainage Performance at the 15th
International Congress of ICID, The Hague, Netherlands
Bos, M.G. (1979). ―Standards for Irrigation Efficiencies in ICID‖. Journal of Irrigation and
Drainage Division. ASCE, (105), No. IR1, 1979, pp 37-43
Bos, M.G. (1997). ―Performance Indicators for Irrigation and Drainage‖. Journal of Irrigation
and Drainage Systems (11): 119-137
EL Awad, O.M.(1991). Amulticriterea Approach to the evaluation of irrigation system
performance, A thesis submitted for the degree of Doctor of philosophy. University of
Newcastle upon type department of Civil Engineering
Hamad, S. H.(2006). Large Scale Irrigation Systems Management in Sudan: A performance
Oriented Approach Using RS & GIS, Ph.D. Thesis. Water Management and Irrigation
Institute- University of Gezira, July (2006)
Lenton, R.,(1984). ―A note on monitoring productivity and equity in irrigation systems‖. In:
Productivity and equity in irrigation systems by Niranjan Pant (ed.). Ashish Publishing
House
Levine, G. (1982). ―Relative water supply: An explanatory variable for irrigation systems‖.
Technical Report No. 6. Ithaca, New York, USA, Cornell University
Molden, D., and Gates T.K. (1990). ―Measure of Evaluation of Irrigation Water Delivery
Systems‖. Journal of Irrigation & Drainage Engineering. Vol. 116, No. 6, pp. 804-823
Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
69
Oad, K., and Levine G., (1985). ―Distribution of water in Indonesian irrigation systems‖.
Transaction of the American Society of Agriculture Engineering. Vol. (28), No. 4, pp
1166-1172
Oad, K., and Padmore K., (1989). ―Irrigation management in rice based agriculture: Concept
of Relative Water supply‖. ICID Bulletin Vol. 38, No. 1, pp 1-12
Shafique, M.S., (1994). ―Hydraulics and Agricultural Performance of Rahad Irrigation
Scheme‖. IWMI-Sudan, FOP News, May-June 1994
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
70
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE
BASIN Model - A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
F. D. Wubet1, Seleshi Bekele Awulachew2 and S. A. Moges 3
1 Arba Minch University, Arba Minch, Ethiopia 2 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
3 School of Postgraduate Studies, Arba Minch University, Arba Minch, Ethiopia
Abstract
The purpose of this study is to simulate water allocation for major activities (existing and planned) in the Abbay Basin using up-to-date water allocation and simulation models. The model, MIKE BASIN, is used to gain an insight into the potential downstream consequences of the development of physical infrastructure and water abstraction in a number of different future development scenarios. Seventeen irrigation projects covering an area of 220,416 hectares (ha) of land have been selected from different gauged catchments of the subbasin in addition to 4,800 megawatt (MW) hydropower projects on the main stream of the study area (Ethiopian part of Blue Nile). From the analysis, the total water extracted for these irrigation projects was estimated to be 1.624 billion cubic meters (BCM) annually. A reduction in the border flow volume as a result of the implementation of these irrigation projects under the reservoir scenario is 3.04% of the estimated mean annual flow of 50.45 BCM. Similarly, from the analysis, the total power generated due to the development of the major hydropower projects on the main stream, having an installed capacity of 4,800 MW, is 18,432 gigawatt hours (GWh) per year. This implies, while these interventions provide significant opportunities with respect to interventions and energy generations, their impact on downstream water availability is minimal.
Key words: Irrigation and hydropower Development, Blue Nile River Basin, MIKE BASIN Model
Introduction
Pressure on water resources in the Blue Nile basin is likely to increase dramatically in the near future
as a result of high population growth in all the riparian states, and increasing development-related
water needs in Ethiopia and Sudan. However, in spite of the national and international importance of
the region, only a relatively few studies have been conducted and there is only limited understanding
of the basin‘s detailed climatic, hydrological, and topographical and hydraulic characteristics (Johnson
& Curtis, 1994; Conway, 1997).
In this paper a water allocation model will be used to ascertain the downstream implications of
proposed water resources development in Ethiopia and Sudan. The model will used to gain insight in
to the potential downstream consequences of the development of physical infrastructure and water
abstraction in a number of different future development scenarios. Each scenario will provide a
consistent and plausible description of possible future water demand in the catchment.
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
71
Description of the study area
Blue Nile River Basin lies in the western part of Ethiopia between latitudes of 7o 45`N and 12o 46`N;
and longitudes of 34o 05‘E and 39o 45‘ E (Figure 1). The basin has an estimated area of 199,812 sq.
km. About 46 % of the basin area falls in Amhara State, 32% falls in Oromia and the rest of about
22% in Binishangul-Gumuz States. It covers about 17.5 per cent of Ethiopia‘s land area BCEOM
phase3, part1 (1998). The location of the basin has been shown on figure 1-1 with respect to the other
major basins of the country.
Figure 1: Location Map of the study area with respect to other basins.
Objective of the study and methodology
The main objective of this study is to simulate water allocation for major production activities
(existing and planned) in the Abbay basin and to assess the impacts of upstream water allocation on
downstream users.
MIKE BASIN is well suited to water resource modeling in the Abbay basins. The model specializes in
assessing the potential for water resources development, particularly hydropower and irrigation by
determining likely impacts of different water resources development scenarios and optimization of
water allocation schemes.
The methodology adopted in the study follows data collection, organization, pre-processing and
analysis based on the requirement of MIKE BASIN model.
Data
To achieve the goal of the research most of the data have been collected from the various phase of the
Abbay basin master plan document and MOWR.
The data used in the study includes the streamflow data of 3 main river course and 14 tributaries
gauges were used to estimate the flow at the project site and computation of Border flow volume.
The other important data includes the demand data for irrigation and hydropower, location of project
sites, relevant reservoir data, precipitation and potential evaporation.
Schematization
MIKE BASIN is a network model in which the rivers and their main tributaries are represented by a
network of branches and nodes. The river system is represented in the model by a digitized river
network that can be generated directly on the computer screen in Arc Map 9.1 (a GIS software
package) or for our case by a traced river network that can be delineated from the DEM after
calculating the flow direction by the mike basin model as shown in the Figure 2.
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
72
Figure 2: location of different water users and reservoirs
Border flow estimation
The streamflow data of 3 main river course and 14 tributaries gauges were utilized for the computation
of border flow volume. The mean monthly flows obtained from the historical records that are
converted in to specific discharges for suitability of the model. Bahir Dar, Kessie, and Border and 14
gauged tributaries were utilized. Based on these data, the overall streamflow volume at each gage sites
on the mainstream and tributaries was computed by MIKE BASIN. As indicated on Figure 3 below
the mean annual flow of Abbay was found to be 50.45 BCM at the border and 3.8 BCM at Bahir Dar
below the outlet of Lake Tana. The value of border flow obtained from this analysis is almost equal to
the one which is estimated on the master plan, which is 50.6BCM.
Mean monthly flow volume
0
2
4
6
8
10
12
14
16
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
months
Vo
lum
e (
BC
M)
Bahir Dar
Kessie
Border
Mean Annual f low volume
0
10
20
30
40
50
60
stat io ns
Flo
w (
BC
M)
Mean Annual f low
volume
M ean Annual flow volume 3.8 18 50.45
Bahir Dar Kessie Border
Figure 3: Mean monthly & annual flow volume of Abbay at each gage
Both Graphical and numerical performance measures should be applied in the comparison. The
graphical evaluation includes comparison of the simulated and observed hydrograph, and comparison
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
73
of the simulated and observed accumulated runoff. The numerical performance measures include the
overall water balance error (i.e. the difference between the average simulated and observed runoff),
and a measure of the overall shape of the hydrograph based on the coefficient of determination or
Nash-Sutcliffe coefficient
………………………………………….1
Where Qsim,I is the simulated discharge at time i, Qobs,I is the corresponding observed discharge, and
is the average observed discharge. A perfect match corresponds to R2=1.
Table 1 Nash-Sutcliffe coefficient at the three main gauging stations
Stations R2
Bahir Dar 0.99
Kessie 0.97
Border 0.996
Flow hydrograph at Border
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
months
Flo
w (
m^3/s
)
Qobs
Qsim
Flow volume at Border
0.00
10.00
20.00
30.00
40.00
50.00
60.00
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Months
vo
lum
e (
BC
M)
Qobs
Qsim
Figure 4: Comparison of Observed and Simulated Figure 5: Comparison of accumulated observed
Flow Hydrographs in m3/s at Border. & simulated flow volume in BCM at Border
Analysis of scenarios
The results of the analyses of the scenarios are showing the water demand deficits and relative deficits
for irrigation. And also show the impact on the Abbay River flow and mainly at the Sudan Border
Reference Scenario
The average monthly discharge and accumulated volume at Sudan Border as computed by MIKE
BASIN model for the Reference scenarios it illustrates the tremendous difference between peak flows
between 2,500 and 5,500 m3/s during the period July to October and base flow of less than 500 m
3/s
during a prolonged period of 5 months. The average volume flowing out of the Abbay Basin is close
to 50.45 BCM; 72% of which flow is the 4 months from July to October included and 6.3% during the
4 months from February to May.
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
74
Mean monthly discharge at Border
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Months
Dis
ch
arg
e (
m63/s
)
Reference
Figure 6: Mean monthly discharge at Sudan Figure 7: Cumulated Volume at Border during
Border in m3/s during reference scenarios the reference scenario in BCM
A. All identified irrigation projects on the tributary of Abbay River with out reservoir In this scenario, using the optimized irrigable areas of the Abbay master plan study, we can calculated
the water demand of the 17 irrigation projects on the tributary of Abbay River basin. Using this, the
water demand deficits of the irrigation projects without reservoir are obtained. The results of the
modeling are presented in the graph for irrigation water demand deficits in MCM.
In this simulation there is a project that doesn‘t get water demand deficits to satisfy the irrigation water
demand for the proposed irrigable area. Lower Dabus project as recommended on the Abbay master
plan it doesn‘t require reservoir. In this Scenario, Finchaa irrigation project having a command area of 6,205 ha has also doesn‘t need
reservoir. But for further expansion (i.e. for irrigating more command area) providing a reservoir is
compulsory.
0.00
4.00
8.00
12.00
16.00
20.00
De
ma
nd
in
MC
M
JAN MAR MAY JUL SEP NOV
months
low er
Dabusupper
didessaDabena
Negeso
Nekemte
Anger
Neshi A
Fincha
Upper
Gudermiddle Birr
TIS Abbay
Jema
G.Abbay
Koga
Gumera
Ribb
Megech
0.00
1.00
2.00
3.00
4.00
5.00
6.00
7.00
8.00
9.00
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Months
Dem
an
d &
su
pp
ly (
MC
M)
Demand
Supply
Relative
Deficits
Figure 8: Water demand deficits in MCM On without Figure 9: water demand, supply and relative
reservoir scenario for identified irrigation projects deficits of Lower Dabus in MCM
B. All identified irrigation projects on the tributary of Abbay with reservoir scenario Based on the analysis of the above simulation (i.e. without reservoir) and recommendation of the
Master plans, we simulate the model with reservoirs. The water shortage problem should now be
alleviated. About 1.624 BCM of water extracted annually but the total water demand is 1.699 BCM. It
doesn‘t satisfy 0.07452BCM amount of water for all projects under consideration.
As indicated on figure 1-10 in the presence of the proposed reservoirs still there are projects in
shortage of water to satisfy their monthly demand. The degree of shortage varies among projects and
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
75
months. But for water users except Tana basin projects such as Ribb & Jema projects and Negesso
&Neshi A, it shows almost no deficit after reservoir as shown in figure 1-10 below. To detect major
failures; defined as a monthly failures grater than a threshold that has been set to 25% over a full
month. Such failures are considered as able, not only to reduce the yields, but to destroy the irrigated
crops completely. A table of values of the relative deficits (irrigation failures) defined by the
difference between the discharge required and the discharge delivered, expressed in percent of the
requirement is shown above.
Table 2: percentage reliability and number of months below the threshold
Threshold Koga M_Bir Neshi Jema Gumera Megech Negeso Rib
>25% 0 0 6 1 0 0 2 1
From the above table Special consideration should be given while implementing Neshi A and Negesso
projects.
0.00
4.00
8.00
12.00
16.00
20.00
De
ma
nd
in
MC
M
JAN MAR MAY JUL SEP NOV
months
low er
Dabusupper
didessaDabena
Negeso
Nekemte
Anger
Neshi A
Fincha
Upper
Gudermiddle Birr
TIS Abbay
Jema
G.Abbay
Koga
Gumera
Ribb
Megech
0.00
4.00
8.00
12.00
16.00
20.00
De
ma
nd
in
MC
M
JAN MAR MAY JUL SEP NOV
months
low er
Dabusupper
didessaDabena
Negeso
Nekemte
Anger
Neshi A
Fincha
Upper
Gudermiddle Birr
TIS Abbay
Jema
G.Abbay
Koga
Gumera
Ribb
Megech
Figure 10: Average monthly demand deficits Figure 11: Average monthly water extracted
in MCM for each water Users in MCM
All identified irrigation projects on the tributary of Abbay with reservoir and Karadobi
hydropower projects on the main stream of Abbay. Results of this scenario are presented as follows:
Installed hydropower and energy production amounts to 1,600MW and 5,644 GWh per year
respectively.
Better Abbay river flow distribution through out the year at Sudan border with 76% of the
annual volume being discharged during the period from July to October.
The hydrograph at the border station is smoothed again with low discharge increased by
14.63% in April and high discharge decreased by 14% in August. This is illustrated by graph
below.
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
76
After Karadobi development
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Time (months)
Flo
w (
m^3
/s)
reference
after
Figure 12: Flow hydrograph at Sudan Border in m
3/s after Karadobi hydropower
development
Discharge before and after the project condition on the tributaries
The over all flow condition of the tributaries utilized for irrigation development and that of the main
stream used for hydropower development was computed for conditions of before and after project
case. The flow after the confluence of a main stream with a tributary is the sum of the upstream flow
in the main stream and the flow of the tributary below the withdrawal node.
Based on the above procedure, MIKE BASIN has computed the whole tributaries and main stream
flow before and after the implementation of the projects. Based on the results of the model, the
following comments are given below.
The flow in the natural stream becomes zero for a month or consecutive months. The
condition needs due consideration for projects of Rib, Neshi A, Negesso, Gumera, Jema, Bir
and Megech.
Unless other downstream tributaries of the above rivers with nil streamflows augment the
ecological and down streams water users demand, it will be difficult to implement the
proposed irrigation potential.
Flow Hydrograph at Dabus
0
500
1000
1500
2000
2500
3000
3500
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Months
Dis
ch
arg
e (
m^3/s
)
Before
After
Figure 13: Mean monthly flow of Abbay before and after the projects condition just below
Dabus & Beles confluence
Analysis of Water Use on a Large River Basin Using MIKE BASIN Model – A Case Study of the Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
77
Conclusion
From the analysis performed in this study, the total water extracted to irrigate 220,416 ha of land was
1.624BCM per year, inducing for Abbay an average annual flow reduction of about 3.04% at Sudan
Border. The over all mean annual flow from the mean monthly data of the main stream gauges was
estimated as 50.45 BCM at the Sudan border. As compared to the result of scenario 1 of the master
plan to irrigate a command area of 440,804 ha and to generate 9,519 GWh,, the border flow reduction
which was 7% as indicated on table 2-4 is compatible with the out put of this study. On the other hand
the mean annual flow 50BCM given on the master plan is almost equal to the recent result 50.45BCM.
References ACRES International and Shawel consultant (1995) Feasibility Study of the Bir and Koga
Irrigation Project, Bir catchment and irrigation studies p. 75 Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Awulachew S. B, Denekew A. Loulseged M., Willibald L., Ayana M. and Alamirew T, Water
Resources And Irrigation Development In Ethiopia, a working paper 123
Demissie Endale (2006) Assessment of Water Demand for Irrigation Development in Abbay
Basin (A Case of Tributaries Development Scenario) in partial fulfillment of the
requirements for the degree Master of Science (Engineering).
BCEOM (1998) ARBIDMP project, Infrastructure, phase 2, section II, Volume XVIII, part 4 and
5, p 4-44, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
BCEOM (1998) ARBIDMP project Data Collection and Site Investigation Survey and Analysis
section III Annexes volume II Dams project profile and section I volume 6 Dams and
Reservoirs, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
BCEOM (1998) ARBIDMP Water Resource Development Irrigation and Drainage, phase 2
Appendix B section 4, Table 2, 3 and 4 pp 40-42, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
BCEOM (1998) ARBIDMP project Data Collection and Site Investigation Survey and Analysis
Section II sectoral studies volume VI Water Resource Development part I Large Dams
and Hydropower Schemes, part 3 Dams and Reservoir Sites, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
BCEOM (1998) ARBIDMP project Water resource studies part 1 Main report, phase 3 Addis
Ababa, Ethiopia
CONWAY D. (March 2000),Climate and Hydrology of the Upper Blue Nile River, the
Geographical Journal, Vol. 166, No. 1, , pp. 49-62
Dereje Tadesse (2005) Evaluation of Selected hydropower potential sites a case study of Abbay
River Basin- Ethiopia, a thesis submitted in partial fulfillment of the requirement for the
degree Master of Science of Arba Minch University p.33, Arba Minch University,
Ethiopia.
DHI (2007), MiKE BASIN users guide
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
78
Application of the Water Evaluation And Planning (WEAP)
Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the
Blue Nile
Matthew McCartney1, Yosif A. Ibrahim2, Yilma Sileshi3 and Seleshi Bekele Awulachew1
1International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 2 Omdurman Islamic University, UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources, Khartoum, Sudan
3 Department of Civil Engineering, Addis Ababa University, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
The riparian countries of the Nile have agreed to collaborate in the development of its water resources for sustainable socioeconomic growth. Currently there is significant potential for expansion of hydropower and irrigation in the Blue Nile River in both Ethiopia and Sudan. However, the likely consequences of upstream development on downstream flows have not been fully assessed and the water resource implications of development in both countries are unclear. Against this background, the Water Evaluation And Planning (WEAP) model was used to provide an assessment of both the current situation and a future (2015) scenario. The future scenario incorporated new irrigation and hydropower schemes on the main stem of the Nile and its principal tributaries. Data for all existing and planned schemes were obtained from the basin master plans as well as from scheme feasibility studies. Water use was simulated over a 32-year period of varying rainfall and flow. Preliminary results indicate that currently irrigation demand in Sudan is approximately 8.5 Bm3y-1 for 1.16 million hectares (mha). This compares to a total irrigation demand in Ethiopia of just 0.2 Bm3y-1. By 2015, with many existing schemes being extended in Sudan and new schemes being developed in both countries, irrigation demand is estimated to increase to 13.4 Bm3y-1 for 2.13 mha in Sudan and 1.1 Bm3y-1 for 210 thousand hectares (tha) in Ethiopia. The flow of the Blue Nile is estimated to decline from an average of 46.9 Bm3y-1 to 44.8 Bm3y-1 at the Ethiopia-Sudan border and from a current average of 43.2 Bm3y-1 to 36.2 Bm3y-1 at Khartoum (including evaporation from all reservoirs). Although total flows are reduced, greater regulation results in higher dry season flows at both locations.
Introduction
The Blue Nile River (known as the Abay in Ethiopia) is the most important tributary of the
Nile River, providing over 62% of the Nile‘s flow at Aswan (World Bank, 2006). Both Egypt,
and to a lesser extent Sudan, are almost wholly dependent on water that originates from the
Nile. This dependency makes the challenges of water resources management in this region an
international issue (Waterbury, 2002).
The Blue Nile rises in the Ethiopian highlands in the region of West Gojam and flows
northward into Lake Tana, which is located at an elevation of just under 1,800 m (Figure 1). It
leaves the southeastern corner of the Lake, flowing first south-east, before looping back on
itself, flowing west and then turning north-west close to the border with Sudan. In the
highlands, the basin is composed mainly of volcanic and Pre-Cambrian basement rocks with
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
79
small areas of sedimentary rocks. The catchment is cut by deep ravines in which the major
tributaries flow. The valley of the Blue Nile itself is 1,300 m deep in places. The primary
tributaries in Ethiopia are the Beshio, Jema, Muger, Guder, Finchaa, Anger, Didessa and
Dabus on the left bank and the Chemoga, Timochia, Bir and Beles on the right bank. The
Blue Nile enters Sudan at an altitude of 490 m.a.m.s.l and just before crossing the frontier, the
river enters a clay plain, through which it flows to Khartoum. The average slope of the river
from the Ethiopian frontier to Khartoum is only 15 cm km-1
. Within Sudan, the Blue Nile
receives water from two major tributaries draining from the north, the Dinder and the Rahad,
both of which also originate in Ethiopia. At Khartoum the Blue Nile joins the White Nile to
form the main stem of the Nile River.
Figure 1: Map of the Blue Nile basim showing elevation, the main tributaries and key
geographic features (Source: Awulachew, 2008)
Within the basin rainfall varies significantly with altitude and is considerably greater in the
Ethiopian highlands than on the Plains of Sudan. Within Sudan, the average annual rainfall
over much of the basin is less than 500 mm. In Ethiopia, it increases from about 1,000 mm
near the Sudan border to between 1,400 and 1,800 mm over parts of the upper basin and
exceeds 2,000 mm in some places. The flow of the Blue Nile is characterized by extreme
seasonal and inter-annual variability. At the Sudan–Ethiopia border total annual flow varies
from approximately 31 Bm3 to 70 Bm
3. Typically, more than 80% of the flow occurs during
the flood season (July to October) while only 4% of the flow occurs during the dry season
(February to May).
Currently Ethiopia utilizes very little of the Blue Nile water, partly because of its
inaccessibility and partly because the major centers of population lie outside of the basin. To
date only two relatively minor hydraulic structures have been constructed in the Ethiopian
part of the catchment (Table 1). These two dams (i.e., Chara Chara weir and Finchaa) were
built primarily to provide hydropower. The combined capacity of the power stations they
serve (218 MW) represents approximately 30% of the total currently installed power capacity
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
80
of the country (i.e., 731 MW of which 90% is hydropower) (World Bank, 2006). The Chara
Chara weir regulates outflow from Lake Tana for the downstream Tis Abay power stations.
Agriculture, which is the main occupation of the inhabitants in the basin is primarily rainfed
with almost no irrigation. Although there is some informal small-scale irrigation, currently the
only formal irrigation scheme in the Ethiopian part of the catchment is the Finchaa sugar cane
plantation (8,145 ha), which utilizes water after it has passed through a hydropower plant
(Table 1).
In contrast to Ethiopia, Sudan utilizes significant volumes of Blue Nile water both for
irrigation and for hydropower production. Two dams (i.e., Sennar and Roseires) have been
constructed on the main river approximately 350 km and 620 km south-east of Khartoum
(Table 1). These provide hydropower (primarily for Khartoum) as well as water for several
large irrigation schemes, including the Gezira scheme (882,000 ha), which is one of the
largest in the World. As well as irrigating land immediately adjacent to the Blue Nile River,
some water is diverted from the Blue Nile downstream of the Roseires reservoir to the Rahad
River, where it is used to supplement the irrigation of the Rahad irrigation scheme (168,037
ha). The total irrigated area in the Sudanese part of the Blue Nile is estimated to be 1,305,000
ha, for a variety of crops including cotton, sugar cane and vegetables. The installed power
capacity at the two dams is 295 MW which represents 25% of the country‘s total generating
capacity (i.e., 1,200 MW from both thermal and hydro power stations).
Table 1 Existing dams in the Blue Nile catchment
+ this is the active storage of Lake Tana that is controlled by the operation of the weir (i.e. lake levels between
1784 masl and 1787 masl). It represents 2.4 times the average annual outflow of the lake.
* a small dam located on the Amerty river (storage 40 Mm3) diverts water from the Amerty into the Finchaa
reservoir
Both Ethiopia and Sudan, plan to increase development of the Blue Nile water resources
significantly in the near future. This paper describes the use of the Water Evaluation And
Planning (WEAP) model to investigate scenarios of water demand in the basin and to evaluate
the likely implications of upstream development on downstream water availability. Water use
was simulated over a 32-year period of varying rainfall and flow. The results reported here are
preliminary results derived from initial model runs.
Method
Developed by the Stockholm Environment Institute (SEI), the WEAP model is intended to be
used to evaluate planning and management issues associated with water resource
development. The WEAP model essentially performs a mass balance of flow sequentially
down a river system, making allowance for abstractions and inflows. The elements that
Dam River Storage
(Mm3)
Built Purpose
Chara
Chara
Abay 9,100+ 2000 Regulation of lake Tana outflows for hydropower production at Tis
Abay I and Tis Abay II power stations (installed capacity – 84MW)
Finchaa* Finchaa 2,395 1971 Regulation for hydropower production (installed capacity 134 MW)
and also sugar cane irrigation (8,145 ha)
Roseires Blue
Nile
3,024 1964 Regulation for hydropower production (installed capacity 280 MW)
and supply to irrigation schemes ( 1,305,000 ha)
Sennar Blue
Nile
930 1925 Regulation to for hydropower production (installed capacity 15
MW) and supply to irrigation scheme (1,093,502 ha)
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
81
comprise the water demand-supply system and their spatial relationship are characterized
within the model. The system is represented in terms of its various water sources (e.g., surface
water, groundwater and water reuse elements); withdrawal, transmission, reservoirs, and
wastewater treatment facilities, and water demands (i.e. user-defined sectors, but typically
comprising industry, mines, irrigation and domestic supply) (SEI, 2007; Yates et al., 2005).
Typically the model is first configured to simulate a ―baseline‖ year, for which the water
availability and demands can be confidently determined. It is then used to simulate alternative
scenarios to assess the impact of different development and management options. The model
optimizes water use in the catchment using an iterative Linear Programming algorithm, the
objective of which is to maximize the water delivered to demand sites, according to a set of
user-defined priorities. When water is limited, the algorithm is formulated to progressively
restrict water allocation to those demand sites given the lowest priority.
In this study, the model was set-up to simulate three scenarios: i) the natural situation with no
abstractions, ii) the current situation and iii) future demand in approximately 2015. Time
series of monthly naturalized flow data for the period 1960-1992, obtained from the Abay
Basin Master Plan (BCEOM, 1998), were used as input data. Estimates of current irrigation
and hydropower demand were derived from data provided by government ministries and
agencies or from previous studies. This included information on water passing through the
turbines of the power stations and water diverted for irrigation. It was necessary to make a lot
of assumptions, particularly about return flows from irrigation schemes. In some cases
demand estimates were derived based on demand at similar irrigation schemes, and simply
weighted by the ratio of the scheme areas. Irrigation demand was allowed to vary slightly
depending on rainfall determined for the rain gauge located closest to the scheme. Hence, in
higher rainfall years, irrigation demand was reduced slightly. Net evaporation from Lake Tana
and the reservoirs was estimated using data from the nearest meteorological station. Figure 2
shows the model configuration for the current situation.
For the 2015 scenario, the size of planned hydropower and irrigation development was
derived from the basin master plans for Sudan and Ethiopia. This included both new schemes
and proposed extension of existing schemes (Table 2). In Sudan it is planned to raise the
height of the Roseires dam by 10m, to increase the area irrigated at several locations and to
construct several new irrigation schemes. It is estimated that the total irrigated area will
increase to approximately 2,126,000 ha. In Ethiopia it is planned to transfer water from Lake
Tana to the Beles River (a tributary of the Blue Nile) for hydropower generation, to extend the
Finchaa irrigation scheme and to develop several new irrigation schemes, in the vicinity of
Lake Tana as well as in other sub-basins. It is estimated that the total formally irrigated area
will increase to approximately 210,000 ha. In addition, it is planned to construct a very large
dam (storage capacity 40.2 Bm3) on the main stem of the Abay, at Karadobi, for hydropower
(Table 2). Although the exact dates of completion of many of these schemes is unknown,
these are the highest priority schemes in each country and, for the purposes of this study, it
was assumed that they would all be completed by approximately 2015.
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
82
Lake Tana
Bosheilo
Welaka
Jemma
North Gojam
Muger
Guder
Finchaa
South Gojam
Didessa
Reservoir
Dabus
Beles
Dinder
Rahad
Khartoum
Roseries
SennarOutlet Lake Tana
SUDAN
ETHIOPIA
Border
Wonbera
Finchaa
Irrigation 8,000 ha
Rahad 168,037 ha
Upstream Sennar 117,626 ha
Suki 32,767 ha
Gezira and Managil
882,195 ha
Downstream
Sennar 211,307 ha
Diversions
Irrigation scheme
Tis Abbay Hydropower
Figure 2: Schematic of the model configuration for the current situation
The water demand for new schemes was derived from basin master plans and, where
available, feasibility studies. Where it is planned to extend irrigation schemes the demand was
estimated based on current demand, but weighted by the new area. Again for the irrigation
schemes some variability was simulated to allow for differences in rainfall. Figure 3 shows
the model configuration for the 2015 scenario.
Lake Tana
Bosheilo
Welaka
Jemma
North Gojam
Muger
Guder
Finchaa
South Gojam
Anger
Didessa
Reservoir
Dabus
Beles
Dinder
Rahad
Khartoum
Roseries
Sennar
Outlet Lake Tana
SUDAN
ETHIOPIA
Border
Wonbera
2,424
Upper Beles 30,731 ha
Lower Beles
85,000 ha
Finchaa
Irrigation 20,000 ha
Karadobi
Rahad 168,037 ha
Upstream Sennar 117,626 ha
Suki 32,767 ha
Gezira and Managil
882,195 ha
Downstream
Sennar 211,307 ha
Diversions
South Dinder 84,000 ha
Rahad II 210,000 ha
Kenana I & II 420,000 ha
Irrigation scheme
Anger
14,450 ha
Irrigation upstream of
Lake Tana 68,077 ha
Figure 3: Schematic of the model configuration for the 2015 scenario
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
83
Table 2 Planned water resource development in the Blue Nile River basin, that it is assumed
will be completed by 2015 Scheme Sub-basin Description Completion
date
Ethiopia
Tana-Beles transfer Tana and
Beles
Transfer of water from Lake Tana to Beles catchment for
hydropower production and irrigation.
Average annual transfer: 2,424 Mm3
2009/10
Irrigation in the Lake
Tana sub-basin
Lake Tana Dams to be constructed on the major inflows to Lake Tana
(i.e. Megech, Ribb, Gumara and Gilgel Abay).
Total storage: 1028 Mm3
Irrigation area: 61,853 ha
Average annual demand: 516 Mm3
2012/14
Irrigation in the Beles
sub-basin
Beles Upper Beles scheme 30,731 ha
Lower Beles scheme 85,000 ha
Average annual demand: 1,554 Mm3
Unknown
Extension of the
Finchaa irrigation
scheme
Finchaa Extension from the west bank to the east bank using flow
regulated by the existing Finchaa dam
Additional irrigation area: 12,000 ha
Average annual demand: 512 Mm3
Unknown
Karadobi hydropower
scheme
Blue Nile
main stem
250 m high dam
Total storage: 40,220 Mm3
Live storage: 17,300 Mm3
Unknown
Angar irrigation and
hydropower scheme
Angar Maximum irrigated area: 14,450 ha
Average annual demand 202 Mm3
Hydropower Capacity: 1.8 – 9.6 MW
2012(?)
Sudan
Raising Roseires dam Blue Nile
main stem
Roseires dam raised by 10m to provide total (gross)
storage of 7,400 Mm3
2012(?)
Extension of Rahad
irrigation scheme
Rahad Additional irrigation area: 19,740 ha
Rahad II irrigation scheme: 210,000 ha
Total average annual demand: 2,432 Mm3
2015
Extension of Suki
irrigation scheme
Blue Nile
main stem
Additional irrigation area: 2,940 ha
Total average annual demand: 202 Mm3
2015
Extension of
Upstream Sennar
Blue Nile
main stem
Additional irrigation area: 39,910 ha
Total average annual demand: 749 Mm3
2015
Extension of
Downstream Sennar
Blue Nile
main stem
Additional irrigation area: 44,110 ha
Total average annual demand: 1420 Mm3
2015
Kenana II and III Blue Nile
main stem
Additional irrigation area: 420,000 ha
Average annual demand: 2,352 Mm3
2015
South Dinder Dinder Additional irrigation area: 84,000 ha
Average annual demand: 541 Mm3
2015
Results
Figure 4 shows the simulated and observed flows at the Ethiopia-Sudan border and at
Khartoum for the current situation. These results indicate that the WEAP simulation is
reasonably good. At Khartoum, observed data (obtained from the Global Data Runoff Centre)
were only available for the period 1960-1982. Over this period the percentage error in the
simulated mean annual flow was 3.7%. As a result of current abstractions, primarily for
irrigation in Sudan, the flow at Khartoum is estimated to be approximately 7.5 Bm3y
-1 less
than would occur naturally (i.e. 41.7 Bm3y
-1 rather than 49.3 Bm
3y
-1). At the border there are
two flow gauging stations. One is operated by the government of Ethiopia and just a few
kilometers downstream another is operated by the government of Sudan. Possibly because of
differences in periods of missing data, observed flows at these two stations differ and there is
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
84
0
2000
4000
6000
8000
10000
12000
14000
16000
18000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Me
an m
on
thly
flo
w (
Mm
3)
Measured border flow WEAP simulated border flow Measured flow at El Diem
Measured MAF by Ethiopia = 50.6 Bm3
Measured MAF by Sudan = 45.5 Bm3
WEAP Simulated MAF = 45.8 Bm3
a 10% difference in mean annual flow; 50.6 Bm3 measured by Ethiopia and 45.6 Bm
3
measured by Sudan. Without detailed analysis, which was beyond the scope of the present
study, it is not possible to know which of the two flow series is the more accurate. The
WEAP model simulation actually lies between the two, but is closest to the Sudanese estimate
with a mean annual discharge of 45.8 Bm3.
a)
0
5,000
10,000
15,000
20,000
25,000
30,000
35,000
40,000
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Flo
w (
Mm
3)
Observed Flow at Khartoum Simulated Flow at Khartoum
b)
0
5,000
10,000
15,000
20,000
25,000
30,000
35,000
40,000
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Flo
w (
Mm
3)
Observed Flow at the border Simulated Flow at the border
Figure 4: Simulated and observed flow series and mean monthly flows for the Blue Nile at: a)
Khartoum and b) the Ethiopia-Sudan border
Figure 5 shows the simulated water levels in the Roseires and Sennar reservoirs for the
current situation. Although there are no available observed data to compare with these
simulated results, they do indicate how both reservoirs are operated to fill and empty each
year in an attempt to reduce siltation. In some low flow years the Roseires reservoir does not
fill completely.
0
2,000
4,000
6,000
8,000
10,000
12,000
14,000
16,000
18,000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Me
an M
on
thly
Flo
w (
Mm
3)
Observed Flow at Khartoum Simulated Flow at Khartoum
Measured MAF at Khartoum = 41.6 Bm3
WEAP Simulated MAF = 43.2 Bm3
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
85
a) b)
465
467
469
471
473
475
477
479
481
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Sim
ula
te
d w
ate
r l
ev
el
(ma
sl)
TOI = 467 masl
Figure 5: Simulated water levels under current conditions in a) the Roseires reservoir and b)
the Sennar reservoir, Sudan
Currently irrigation water demand in Sudan greatly exceeds that in Ethiopia. Although there is
some inter-annual variation, reflecting differences in rainfall, total irrigation demand in Sudan
is currently estimated to average 8.5 Bm3y
-1 (Figure 6). This compares to an average of just
0.20 Bm3y
-1 in Ethiopia. With the planned irrigation development, demand in Sudan is
estimated to increase to 13.4 Bm3y
-1 and in Ethiopia to 3.7 Bm
3y
-1 by 2015 (Table 3).
Hydropower generated in Ethiopia is currently estimated to be 1,298 GWhy-1
. With the
construction of the Tana Beles transfer and the Karadobi dam this is estimated to increase to
9,930 GWhy-1
. A significant proportion of the additional electricity produced is likely to be
sold to Sudan. Hydropower generated in Sudan is currently estimated to be approximately
1,000 GWhy-1
, but there are no publicly available data to confirm this estimate. Because of
the additional head and increased storage, the raising of the Roseires dam will result in a very
small increase in this amount.
416
417
418
419
420
421
422
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Sim
ula
te
d w
ate
r l
ev
el
(ma
sl)
TOI = 417.2 masl
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
86
Figure 6: Estimated annual water demand for the main irrigation schemes in Sudan
Table 3 Comparison of current and future (2015) irrigation and hydropower in the Ethiopian
and Sudanese parts of the Blue Nile Current 2015
Ethiopia Sudan Ethiopia Sudan
Formal irrigation
area (ha)
water demand (Bm3y
-1)
<10,000
0.20
1,305,000
8.49
210,00
3.69
2,126,000
13.43
Hydropower Installed capacity (MW)
Production (Gwhy-1
)
218
1,298
295
c.a. 1,000
2,194
9,930
295
ca 1,000
Comparison of the mean monthly flows at Khartoum for the simulated natural condition,
current situation and the 2015 scenario indicates how the mean annual runoff is progressively
reduced as a consequence of greater upstream abstractions. Wet season flows are reduced
significantly but flows in the months January to May are increased as a consequence of flow
regulation (Figure 7a). At the Ethiopia-Sudan border the current situation is almost identical
to the natural condition so this not shown. However, in the 2015 scenario mean annual flow is
reduced from 45.7 Bm3 to 43.5 Bm
3. Similar to Khartoum there is a significant reduction in
wet season flows, but increases in dry season flows as consequence of flow regulation (Figure
7b).
The 2015 scenario illustrates the benefit for Sudan of increased upstream regulation in
Ethiopia. This is highlighted by the simulated water-levels in the Roseires Reservoir which
show that it is possible to fill and empty the reservoir in all years (Figure 8). This contrasts
with the current situation when in some years there is insufficient flow to fill the reservoir
(see above) and is despite the fact that raising the dam will substantially increase the reservoir
storage and irrigation demands will also have increased greatly.
a) b)
0
1,000
2,000
3,000
4,000
5,000
6,000
7,000
8,000
9,000
10,000
19
60
19
62
19
64
19
66
19
68
19
70
19
72
19
74
19
76
19
78
19
80
19
82
19
84
19
86
19
88
19
90
19
92
Wat
er
Ab
stra
cte
d (
Mm
3)
Downstream Sennar Gezira and Managil Rahad Suki Upstream Sennar
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
87
0
2,000
4,000
6,000
8,000
10,000
12,000
14,000
16,000
18,000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Me
an
Mo
nth
ly F
low
(M
m3)
Simulated natural flow at Khartoum
Simulated 2015 scenario flow at Khartoum
Simulated current flow at Khartoum
Simulated natural MAF = 49.3 Bm3
Simulated current MAF = 41.7 Bm3
Simulated 2015 scenario MAF = 36.4 Bm3
Figure 7: Comparison of simulated mean monthly flow derived for different scenarios at: a)
Khartoum and b) the Ethiopia-Sudan border
a) b)
465
470
475
480
485
490
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Sim
ula
ted
wat
er
leve
l (m
asl)
TOI = 467 masl
Height increased to 490 masl
Figure 8: Simulated water levels for the 2015 scenario in a) the Roseires reservoir and b) the
Sennar reservoir, Sudan
Concluding Remarks
The WEAP model has been configured to simulate the impacts of water resource development
in the Blue Nile basin. Currently Ethiopia utilizes very little water but does regulate some
flow for hydropower production. In contrast Sudan uses some water for hydropower
production but also abstracts large volumes for irrigation. Both countries plan to develop
water resource infrastructure substantially in the near future. By approximately 2015 it is
estimated that the total annual consumptive demand is likely to be 17.12 Bm3y
-1 (i.e. 35% of
the natural flow at Khartoum). Of this 3.69 Bm3y
-1 will be consumed in Ethiopia and 13.43
Bm3y
-1 in Sudan.
The results in this paper are preliminary and based on many assumptions. Where it has been
possible to verify the simulations the model results are reasonable. Nevertheless, the current
results must be treated with caution. In the coming months, the model will be refined using
improved estimates of streamflow on the major tributaries and better estimates of irrigation
0
2,000
4,000
6,000
8,000
10,000
12,000
14,000
16,000
18,000
Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec
Me
an
Mo
nth
ly F
low
(M
m3)
Simulated natural flow at the border
Simulated 2015 scenario flow at the border
Simulated natural MAF = 45.7 Bm3
Simulated 2015 scenario MAF = 43.5 Bm3
416
417
418
419
420
421
422
Jan
-60
Jul-
61
Jan
-63
Jul-
64
Jan
-66
Jul-
67
Jan
-69
Jul-
70
Jan
-72
Jul-
73
Jan
-75
Jul-
76
Jan
-78
Jul-
79
Jan
-81
Jul-
82
Jan
-84
Jul-
85
Jan
-87
Jul-
88
Jan
-90
Jul-
91
Sim
ula
ted
wa
ter
lev
el (
ma
sl)
TOI = 417.2 masl
Application of the Water Evaluation and Planning (WEAP) Model to Simulate Current and Future Water Demand in the Blue Nile
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
88
demand at all schemes. In addition, it is planned to simulate another scenario based on
anticipated water resource development in 2025.
References
Awulachew, S.B., McCartney, M.P., Steenhuis, T.S., Ahmed, A.A. 2008. A review of
hydrology, sediment and water resource use in the Blue Nile Basin, Colombo, Sri
Lanka: International Water Management Institute.
BCEOM. 1998. ―Abbay river basin integrated development master plan, section II, volume V-
water resources development, part 1- irrigation and drainage.‖ Ministry of Water
Resources, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
Stockholm Environment Institute (SEI). 2007. ―WEAP: Water Evaluation and Planning
system – user guide.‖ Stockholm Environment Institute, Boston, USA.
Waterbury, 2002. The Nile basin: National Determinants of Collective Action. Yale
University Press, New Haven, USA.
World Bank, 2006. Ethiopia: managing water resources to maximize sustainable growth.
World Bank Agriculture and Rural Development Program. Washington D.C. USA.
Yates, D., Sieber, J., Purkey, D., and Huber-Lee, A. 2005. ―WEAP 21 a demand, priority and
preference driven water planning model, part 1: model characteristics.‖ Water
International 30, 487-500.
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
89
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
Kamalddin E. Bashar1 and Eltayeb Ahmed Khalifa2
1UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources, Khartoum, Sudan 2 University of the Blue Nile, Khartoum, Sudan
Abstract
Sedimentation is a serious problem faced by natural and man-made reservoirs. It is a major problem which endangers and threatens the performance and sustainability of reservoirs. It reduces the effective flood control volume, presents hazards to navigation, changes water stage and groundwater conditions, affects operation of low-level outlet gates and valves, and reduces stability, water quality, and recreational benefits. Reservoirs are often threatened by loss of capacity due to sedimentation. While there being many causes of reservoir sedimentation watershed, sediment and river characteristics are among the main natural contributing factors. Other important factors are reservoir size, shape and reservoir operation strategy. Man-made activities also play a significant role particularly in land use patterns. This paper is an attempt to assess sediment accumulation as well as the rate of sedimentation in the Roseires Reservoir. The basis for the study is the previous bathymetric surveys carried out on the reservoir in the years 1976, 1981, 1985, 1992, 2005 and 2007. Analysis and comparative studies were carried out between the different surveys to quantify the amount of sediment deposited as well the rate at which sedimentation took place. The design storage capacity of 1967 for the different reservoir levels was taken as a baseline. The sediment accumulation rates for the different bathymetric surveys are obtained as the difference between baseline capacity and the computed capacity at the respective levels during the specific survey. It was found that sedimentation in the Roseires Reservoir resulted in the reduction of the reservoir capacity from design storage of 3.0 Bm3 in 1966 to 1.9 Bm3 in 2007, i.e., a loss of approximately 1.1 Bm3 during 41 years of operation. The sedimentation rate varies with both time and levels in the reservoir.
Introduction
Reservoirs are often threatened, by loss of capacity due to sedimentation. Causes of reservoir
sedimentation are many however; watershed, sediment and river characteristics are among the
main natural contributing factors. Other important ones are reservoir size, shape and reservoir
operation strategy. Manmade activities also play significant role particularly inland use
pattern (Nazr, 2006).
Sedimentation is a complex hydro-morphological process which is difficult to predict. It has
been underestimated in the past and perceived as a minor problem which can be controlled by
sacrificing certain volume of the reservoir for accumulation of the sediment (dead storage).
However, today‘s experience revealed that it is of paramount importance in design and
implementation of sediment control measures as well as in the planning, operation and
maintenance phases of the reservoirs (Siyam, 2005).
Considering Reservoir sediment problem, surveys are necessary to get more realistic
estimated data regarding the rate of siltation to provide reliable criteria for studying the
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
90
implications of annual loss of storage over a definite period of time. This loss should be
associated with particular reference of intended benefits in the form of irrigation potential,
hydropower, flood absorption capacity and water supply for domestic and industrial uses
including periodic reallocation of available storage for various pool levels. It will also help in
proper estimation of loss of storage at the planning stage itself besides evaluating the
effectiveness of soil conservation measures carried out in the catchments area of Blue Nile
River (Agarwal, K.K. 2000).
Since the major cause of storage capacity change is sediment deposition the monitoring
program can determine depletion caused by sediment deposition since closure of storage dam,
annual sediment yield rates, current location of sediment deposition, sediment densities,
lateral and longitudinal distribution of deposited sediment and reservoir trap efficiencies.
The Study Area
Roseires reservoir is located in Sudan and situated along the Blue Nile reach between the dam
site and the Ethiopian border. The dam is located in the vicinity of the formerly Damazin
Rapids, approximately 6 km upstream the Roseires and some 500 km south of Khartoum.
This dam was built in the year 1966 for multi-propose irrigation, fisheries and hydropower
(Gibb, 1996).
The watershed of the Roseires reservoir is located between longitudinal lines (11°-14°) north
and longitude lines (33°-35°) east. The soil properties of the study area are clay layers covered
with hilly forest at Eldeim then surround by poor Savanna in Roseires and Damazin. The
climate is hot in summer with rains but is cold in winter. The temperature is between (27° -
46°c). The annual average rain fall is 700 mm and usually falls between June to October in
Damazin and 1500 mm in Eldeim. Rainfall increases gradually upon going South and
decreases towards the North till it is almost dry (Ministry of agriculture in Blue Nile State,
2008). Figure (1) shows the location of the reservoir within the Blue Nile system.
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
91
Figure 1: The Location of Roseires Dam and the Eddeim station within the Blue Nile in
Ethiopia and Sudan
The Data
This study uses secondary data available from the dams‘ operation unit in the Ministry of
Irrigation and Water Resources. The bathymetric surveys carried at Roseires reservoir (1976,
1981, 1985, 1992, 2005 and 2007) were collected and used to estimate the sediment
accumulation, sedimentation rate and trap efficiency. The 1966 data was used as the base line
information and all other surveys were compared to it for storage and sedimentation
estimation.
Roseires Reservoir Operation
Since the trap efficiency is influenced by reservoir operation, it is important to closely
examine the reservoirs in order to make judgment on their impact on trap efficiency. The
roseires reservoir filling period commences after the flood peak has passed. According to the
reservoir operation rules, filling may start any time between the 1st
and the 26th
of September
each year depending on the magnitude of the flow at El Deim gauging station. From past
experience, filling normally starts within the first ten days of September when the suspended
sediment concentration is still relatively high at about 2500 mg/l. The filling period usually
continues for nearly two months.
There are four main operation periods for Roseires reservoir. During the rising flood, the
reservoir drawdown attains the level of 467 R.L which is the lowest operating level. Over this
operation period, minimum sediment deposition is expected despite the large quantities of
sediment inflow which may approach 3 M ton/day. This is particularly true after many years
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
92
of continuous operation of the reservoir where a well defined channel, capable of transporting
almost the whole sediment inflow past the reservoir during the drawdown period, was
developed naturally (Siyam, 2005).
Due to the gradually rising water level and the relatively high suspended sediment inflow,
significant sediment deposition is expected during the filling operation period. In contrast,
during the third and fourth operation stages (maintaining full retention level and reservoir
emptying), sediment deposition is insignificant due to the exceedingly small sediment and
inflow quantities.
From the above description, only operation filling period is of importance as far as reservoir
sedimentation and trap efficiency are concerned in Roseires reservoir. Therefore this is taken
in consideration when estimating the trap efficiency using either Brune or Churchill method.
Over the filling period, the water level at 474 m R.L is considered for the computation. The
reservoir content at this mean level is used together with an annual inflow of 50x109
m3 to
estimate the trap efficiency using both methods. The results are compared with measured
values for the years when reservoir surveys were made.
Methods
Sediment accumulation
Sediment accumulation in the reservoir is calculated using the bathymetric survey data
collected from the Dams Directorate of the Ministry of Irrigation and Water Resources. The
base line was taken as the design storage capacity of the reservoir at the different levels in
1966. The storage capacity in the different bathymetric surveys compared to that of 1966 at
different level enables estimation of sediment accumulation rates. Thus, the comparison
between accumulated silt volumes deposited between the different surveys is obtained. This
work is done using spreadsheet analysis in excel.
The accumulated volume of deposited sediment Vd can also be calculated Empirically from
the following formula
/*10140*100/. 6 TxVd
Where Vd = accumulative volume of deposited sediment, m3
. = trap efficiency after T years of operation (%)
T = years of operation
= average specific weight of deposited sediment over T years (t/m3) calculated from
Miller, 1953 formula
Siltation rate
The average silt deposit per year for the different reduced levels is calculated by dividing the
sediment accumulated by the corresponding number of years of operation.
The percentage of silt deposited is obtained by the following calculation:
%age silt deposited per year = NdAV /// .
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
93
Where:
V = Volume of silt in the given range in m3
A = Average surface area of the reservoir at the middle of given levels in m2
D = difference between given levels in m.
N = number of years of operation.
Trap Efficiency
Reservoir trap efficiency is defined as the ratio of deposited sediment to total sediment inflow
for a given period within the reservoir economic life. Trap efficiency is influenced by many
factors but primarily is dependent upon the sediment fall velocity, the detention-storage time,
flow rate through the reservoir and reservoir operation. The relative influence of each of these
factors on the trap efficiency has not been evaluated to the extent that quantitative values
could be assigned to individual factors. The detention-storage time in respect to character of
sediment appears to be the most significant controlling factor in most reservoirs (Siyam,
2005).
Trap efficiency estimates are empirically based upon measured sediment deposits in large
number of reservoirs mainly in U.S.A. Brune (1953) and Churchill (1948) methods are the
best known ones.
For a given reservoir experiencing sediment deposition, its trap efficiency decreases
progressively with time due to the continued reduction in its capacity. Thus trap efficiency is
related to the reservoir remaining capacity after a given elapsed time (usually considered from
the reservoir commissioning date).
The measured trap efficiency is computed from the following equation:
6
0
10*140*(%).
VV
Where, T.E. = trap efficiency after T years of operation
V0 = original reservoir volume, m3
V = volume remaining after T year of operation
= average specific weight of deposited sediment over T years (t/m3)
is calculated from the following equation (Miller, 1953)
1*1/434.0 Lni
Where i the initial is value of and is given by: sasaslslclcli
Where Pcl, Psl and Psa are fractions of clay, silt and sand respectively of the incoming sediment
while cl, sl and sa are coefficients of clay, silt and sand respectively which can be obtained
from the tables prepared by USPR, 1982 for normally moderate to considerable reservoir
drawdown (reservoir operation 2) which is the case for Roseires reservoir.
The essence of Churchill‘s method is contained in a graph relating the percentage of sediment
that passes through a reservoir to a so-called sedimentation index SI. This method is given by
S1.
VS
Where T = retention time and V = mean velocity of water flowing through the reservoir
(Taher, A., 1999).
Brune‘s method is certainly the most widely used one to estimate reservoirs trap efficiency.
Siyam (2000) has shown that Brune‘s curve is a special case of a more general trap efficiency
function given by the following equation:
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
94
)/exp(100(%). V
Where, in addition to the already defined terms, is a sedimentation parameter that reflects
the reduction in the reservoir storage capacity due to the sedimentation processes?
Siyam (2000) demonstrated that the above equation with values of = 0.0055, 0.0079 and
0.015 describes well the upper, median and lower Brune‘s curves respectively. Brune‘s semi-
dry reservoirs ( = 0.75), and in the case of a mixer tank where all the sediment is kept in
suspension ( = 1). The Roseires Reservoir data was fitted with = 0.056 which was the
mean of the individual values resulting from fitting the observed trap efficiency data.
Results and Discussions The variations of the reservoir storage capacity and silt contents with elevations calculated
from the bathymetric surveys of the years, 1976, 1981, 1985, 1992, 2005 and 2007 are shown
in the following subsections.
Table 1 Storage capacity
R.L 1966 1976 1981 1985 1992 2005 2007
(Mm3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3)
465 454 68 36 26 23 4.5 6.21
467 638 152 91 80 60 13.71 13.98
470 992 444 350 342 235 72.46 72.38
475 1821 1271 1156 1088 932 517.46 566.85
480 3024 2474 2384 2020 1886 1658.38 1637.56
481 3329 2778 2689 2227 2104 1934.73 1920.89
Table (1) shows the decrease in the storage capacities with time at all reduce levels. Figures 2
a and b show the variation of storage with reduce level in the specific survey years and the
variation of the same with time at specific reduce level. It can be seen that after forty one
years of operation (1966-2007), the total capacity of the reservoir have been reduced to
1920.89 million cubic meters and 13.84 million cubic meters have been lost in the last two
years (2005 – 2007).
Figure 2: Variation of storage with time and reservoir level
a b
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
95
As the initial capacity below reduced level 467 was established to be 638 million cubic meters
the loss of capacity below this level was 97.8% of the initial storage. The expected total
capacity at design stage of the reservoir at level 490 m was 7.4 Mm3. However, due to the
loss of capacity found now at level 481 m which amounted to 1.92 Mm3, the expected
capacity after the heightening project implementation will be 5.48 Mm3.
Table (2) Shows the accumulated silt deposited at the different reduced levels in the different
years of survey. It can be seen that there is an increase in the silt deposit with time at all
reduced levels. After forty one years of operation (1966-2007), the accumulated silt volume
deposit of the reservoir has amounted to 1408.1 million cubic meters. About 14 million cubic
meters have been added in the last two years (2005 – 2007) i.e. about 1%. Figure (3) depicts
the variation of silt deposited with time and reduced level.
Table 2 Accumulated Silt volume deposit for different surveys
R.L 1976 1981 1985 1992 2005 2007
(Mm3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3) (Mm
3)
465 386 418 428 431 449.5 447.79
467 486 547 558 578 624.29 624.02
470 548 642 650 757 919.54 919.62
475 550 665 733 889 1303.5 1254.2
480 640 1004 1138 1365.6 1386.4
481 640 1102 1225 1394.3 1408.1
Figure 3: Variation of storage with time and reservoir level
From Roseires reservoir resurveys summarized above, the observed and computed trap
efficiency values with Brune‘s and Churchill‘s methods are given in table (3). Figure shows
graphically the variation of the trap efficiency with time.
Table 3 Roseires Reservoir Trap efficiency %
Years of re-survey 1976 1981 1985 1992 1995
T (Years) 10 15 20 27 29
Observed 45.5 36 33.2 28 26.2
Brune‘s methods 51 49 46 45 45
Churchill‘s methods 67.7 66 64.4 63.5 62.8
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
96
Figure 4: Variation of trap efficiency of the reservoir with years of operation
From Figure (4) it can be seen that the observed trap efficeincy is inversely proportional to the
square root of operation time. This figure may be used to estimate subsequent trap efficiency
of Roseiers reservoir. From the figure, the projected trap efficiency after 100 years of
continuous operation will be about 14% if conditions remain the same in the mean time.
It is generally believed that the volume of deposited Sediment from the 1992 resurvey as
given in Tables (1, 2) was over estimated. Making use of the results of the later resurvey in
1995, it is expected that the trap efficiency in 1992 to be close but higher than its observed
value in 1995 due to the relatively short time in between the two resurveys.
From Table (3) both Brune‘s and Churchill‘s methods overestimated the trap efficiency
values. The failure of these methods may be attributed to their structures as they consider only
few factors. In the earlier years of the reservoir life, the rate of sediment deposited was high as
reflected in the relatively high observed trap efficiency values. The deposition rate, however,
decreased progressively with time as witnessed from the gradual drop in observed trap
efficiency from 45.5% in 1976 to 26.2% in 1995. This trend was not reflected in the
computed trap efficiency values using both Brune‘s and Churchill‘s methods which remained
fairly constant over the years of observations.
Accumulation rate
Table (4) contains the average silt deposited per year for the different reduced levels. As
depicted in figure (5) it can be seen that there is a decrease in siltation rate with time at all
reduced levels. This phenomenon can be explained by the fact that as time passes a decrease
in the reservoir storage capacity occurs; flow velocities for the same discharges are increased;
the sediment carrying capacity of the flow being the limiting factor of sediment transport is in
turn increased. The siltation rate has dropped from 16.01 million cubic meters per year to
15.22 million cubic meters per year at 467 reduce level and from 35.75 million cubic meters
per year to 34.34 million cubic meters per year at 481 reduce levels.
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
97
Table 4 Siltation Rate for different surveys (Mm3/Year)
R.L 1966-1976 1966-1981 1966-1985 1966-1992 1966-2005 1966-2007
(m) (Mm3/Year) (Mm
3/Year) (Mm
3/Year) (Mm
3/Year) (Mm
3/Year) (Mm
3/Year)
Years 10 15 19 26 39 41
465 38.60 27.87 22.53 16.58 11.53 10.92
467 48.60 36.47 29.37 22.23 16.01 15.22
470 54.80 42.80 34.21 29.12 23.58 22.43
475 55.00 44.33 38.58 34.19 33.42 30.59
480 - 42.67 52.84 43.77 35.02 33.82
481 - 42.67 58.00 47.12 35.75 34.34
Figure 5: Variation of % siltation rate with time and reservoir level
The volume of silt deposited in the area impounded by the given reduced levels, the average
surface area of the reservoir at a given reduced level and the corresponding estimate of % silt
for years 2005 and 2007 are shown in table (5).
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
98
Table 5 Silt deposited per year as a percentage of storage capacity (2005, 2007)
Years 2005 2007
Level (m) Silt Vol.
(Mm)
A(x106m
2) %age
of Silt
Silt
Vol.
(Mm)
A(x106m
2)Area %age of
Silt
465-467 175 4.5 50 176 3.46 62
467-470 295 17.6 14 296 18.11 13.3
470-475 384 84.1 2 335 102.9 1.6
475-480 62 236.1 0.1 132 216.14 0.3
480-481 29 273.4 0.3 22 281.62 0.2
As expected, siltation rate is generally heavy below the minimum draw-down R.L maintained
during the flood period which is 467. Siltation rate is small above this minimum draw-down
level. There is no increase in the percentage silt deposited in the ranges 475- 480. Figure (6)
show the variation of the siltation rate for a given area in the reservoir in 2005 and 2007.
Figure 6: Variation of the siltation rate with area in 2005 and 2007
Conclusion and Recommendations
About 30% of the reservoir storage capacity is silted up. The rate of siltation at all levels is
continually decreasing with time which is an indicator of decrease in storage capacity.
Siltation rate below reduced level 467 dropped from 16 million m3/year in the period 1966-
2005, to 15.22 million m3/year in the period 2005-2007. While below 481 R.L the siltation
rate was dropped from 35.75 million m3/year in the period 1966-2005 to 34.34 million
m3/year in the period 2005-2007. The present reservoir capacity at reduce level 481 is
1920.89 million m3 of which 6.21 million m
3 is a dead storage below R.L 467.
A relationship between observed trap efficiency and years of operation was found. The trap
efficiency for the reservoir follows linearly the square root of time and is inversely
proportional to it. It is projected that the trap efficiency of Roseires reservoir after 100 tears
will be in the order of 14%.
Sediment Accumulation in Roseires Reservoir
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
99
It is recommended that a well-planned program for sediment data collection be established
especially on the characteristics and movement of sediment in the reservoir, and Blue Nile
near the Ethiopian border to monitor the effect of changes and interventions on the upstream
site.
Also regular bathymetric surveys, monitoring of sediment accumulation and reservoir trap
efficiency is recommended to assess the effects of the interventions.
References Agarwal, K.K. and K.C. Idiculla. (2000): ―Reservoir sedimentation surveys using Global
Positioning System‖, Central Water Commission, Ministry of Water Resources,
R.K.Puram, New Delhi-110066.
Nazar, A. R. (2006): ―Exploratory Study of Reservoir Sedimentation by 2D and 3D
Mathematical Modeling‖, MSc Thesis WSE-HERBD 06.11.
Gibb and Coyne ET Bellier (1996): ―Roseires Dam‖, Ministry of Irrigation, Hydro- Electric
power Republic of the Sudan and Gibb and Coyne ET Bellier.
Siyam, A.M. (2005): ―Assessment of the current state of the Nile Basin reservoir
sedimentation problems‖, Nile Basin Capacity Building Network (NBCBN), River
morphology Research Cluster, Group1.
Taher, A. S. and M.R.M. Tabatabai (1999): ―Assessment of Reservoir Trap Efficiency
Methods‖
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
100
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and
Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in
Lake Tana Subbasin
Mequanint Tenaw1 and Seleshi Bekele Awulachew2
1Ministry of Water Resources, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 2 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
Land degradation is a serious threat in the Gumera watershed which is reflected in the form of soil erosion. Erosion is a major watershed problem causing significant loss of soil fertility and productivity. Increased sediment loads that shorten the useful life of the reservoir, the lives of other water-related structures, and increase the cost of maintenance and sediment remediation are off-site impacts of erosion. To develop effective erosion control plans and to achieve reductions in sedimentation, it is important to quantify the sediment yield and identify areas that are vulnerable to erosion. In recent decades, several simulation models have been developed in order to estimate, quantify, enhance understanding of spatial and temporal variability of erosion, and identify areas which are high contributors of sediment at micro-watershed level and over large areas. We used SWAT (Soil and Water Assessment Tool) to predict sediment yield, runoff, identify spatial distribution of sediment, and to test the potential of watershed management interventions in reducing sediment load from ‘hot spot’ areas. The tool was calibrated and validated against measured flow and sediment data. Both, calibration and validation results, showed a good match between measured and simulated flow and suspended sediment. The model prediction results indicated that about 72% of the Gumera watershed is erosion potential area with an average annual sediment load ranging from 11 to 22 tonnes/ha/yr exceeding tolerable soil loss rates in the study area. The model was applied to evaluate the potential of filter strips with various widths to reduce sediment production from critical micro-watersheds. The investigation revealed that implementing vegetation filter strips can reduce sediment yield by 58 to 74%.
Introduction
Ethiopia has huge potential resources which includes total of 122 billion cubic meters of
surface water, 2.6 billion cubic meters of groundwater resources and 3.7 million hectare of
potentially irrigable land that can be used to improve agricultural production and productivity
(Awulachew et al., 2007; MoWR, 2002).
Despite these potential resources base, agricultural production are lowest in some parts of the
country attributed from unsustainable environmental degradation mainly reflected in the form
of erosion and loss of soil fertility (Demel, 2004).Under the prevalent rainfed agricultural
production system, the progressive degradation of the natural resource base, especially in
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
101
highly vulnerable areas of the high lands coupled with climate variability have aggravated the
incidence of poverty and food insecurity (Awulachew et al., 2007).
Sheet and rill erosion are by far the most widespread kinds of accelerated water erosion and
principal cause of land degradation in the country and their combined effect significantly
affect agricultural production and productivity (Contable, 1984).The loss of nutrient-rich top
soil by water leads to loss of soil quality and hence reduced crop yield. Soil erosion by water
and its associated effects are therefore recognized to be severe threats to the national economy
of Ethiopia .Since more than 85% of the country‘s population depends on agriculture for
living; physical soil and nutrient losses lead to food insecurity (Luelseged, 2005).
Rapidly increasing population, deforestation, over cultivation, expansion of cultivation at the
expense of lands under communal use rights (grazing and woody biomass resources),
cultivation of marginal and steep lands, overgrazing, and other social, economic and political
factors have been the driving force to a series of soil erosion in the basin in general and in
Gumara watershed in particular (BCEOM, 1998; MoARD, 2004).
One of the possible solutions to alleviate the problem of land degradation (soil erosion) is
therefore, to understand the processes and cause of erosion at a micro watershed level and to
implement watershed management interventions. Effective watershed planning requires
understanding of runoff and erosion rates at the plot, on hill slopes, and at small watershed
scale and how these vary across the landscape. Next we must have a means to identify areas
that have the potential for high erosion so that corrective actions can be taken in advance to
reduce sediment production from these areas.
In recent decades, several simulation models have been developed in order to estimate,
analyze soil erosion and enhanced understanding of spatial and temporal aspects of the
catchments and assessment of process over large area that enables priority management areas
to be identified
The purpose of this study is therefore, to determine the spatial variability of sediment yield, to
identify critical micro watersheds and evaluate various conservation scenarios in reducing
sediment yield based on the simulation result of a physically based and spatially distributed
SWAT (Soil and Water Assessment Tool) model.
Objective of the study
The overall objective of this study is to characterize the Gumara watershed, predict sediment
yield and runoff and develop management options to control erosion and sedimentation
problem in Gumara watershed.
The specific objectives of the study are:
To characterize the Gumara watershed in terms sediment yield
Assess and evaluate the spatial variability of sediment yield in the watershed
To identify and prioritize hot spot areas for site specific management intervention
To cite and recommend appropriate soil and water conservation measures.
Description of Gumara Watershed
The study area is found in North West part of Ethiopia in Amhara Regional State, south
Gondar Zone (Figure 1). The watershed covers partly four woredas (administrative units)
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
102
namely, farta, Fogera, Dera, Iste. It is situated in the south east of Lake Tana and covers a
drainage area of about 1464 km2 .
ABBAYAW ASH
W ABI SHEBELE
GENALE DAW A
TEKEZE
OGADENOMO G IBE
DENAKIL
BAR O AKOBO
RIFT VALLY
AYSHA
MEREB GASH
40000000 0 40000000 80000000 Kilometers
N
EW
S
GUMARA W ATERSHED
ABAY RIVER BASIN
Figure 1: Major River Basins in Ethiopia and Location Map of Gumara Watershed
The major land form of the watershed includes flat, gently sloping to undulating plains, hills
and mountains. The upper and middle parts of the catchment are characterized by
mountainous, highly rugged and dissected topography with steep slopes and the lower part is
characterized by valley floor with flat to gentle slopes. Elevation in the watershed varies from
1780 to 3678 meter above sea level with a mean elevation of 2200 meter above sea level.
More than three quarter of the watershed is intensively cultivated land and teff, maize, Barley,
and Wheat are the major crops grown in the watershed. Bush or shrub land, grazing land,
forest/wood land and wetland/swap are other land cover types in the watershed (WWDSE,
2007).
Based on FAO classification system, six soil types namely, Haplic luvisol, chromic luvisol,
Lithic leptosol, Eutric vrtisol, Eutric Fluvisol and Chromic Cambisol are common soil types
in Gumara Watershed (BCEOM, 1998; MoARD, 2004; WWDSE, 2007).
Rainfall over the Gumara watershed is mono-modal and most of the rainfall is concentrated in
the season June to September and with virtual drought from November through April. The
four wettest months cover 85 percent of the total annual rainfall. The dry season, being from
October to May has a total rainfall of about 15% of the mean annual rainfall (WWDSE,
2007).
Methodology
SWAT 2005 (Soil and Water Assessment Tool) model integrated with GIS techniques is used
to simulate runoff and sediment yield of this study. SWAT is a physically based and
computationally efficient hydrological model, which uses readily available inputs .It was
developed to predict the impact of land management practices on water, sediment and
agricultural chemical yields in large complex watersheds with varying soils, land use and
management conditions over long periods of time (Neitsch, et al., 2005).
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
103
Digital elevation model (DEM) data, polygon Coverage‘ of soils and land use, and point
coverage of weather stations were used as basic input to the model. Other inputs used
include daily rain fall, minimum and maximum temperature, relative humidity, solar
radiation, and wind speed. We delineated the watershed using a using a 90mx90 m
resolution digital elevation model (DEM) and digitized stream networks of the study area.
After watershed delineation, the watershed was partitioned in to hydrologic response units
(HRU), which are unique soil and land use combinations within in the watershed to be
modeled.
In this study, multiple HRU with 20 percent land use threshold and a 10 percent soil threshold
were adopted.
For modeling surface runoff and sediment yield we used the SCS curve number method (SCS,
1972) and modified universal soil loss equation respectively. In order to identify the most
important or sensitive model parameters before calibration, model sensitivity analysis was
carried out using a built-in SWAT sensitivity analysis tool that uses the Latin Hypercube One-
factor-At-a-Time (LH-OAT) (Van Griensven, 2005).
We used the manual calibration procedure and the model was calibrated and validated using
flow and suspended sediment data measured at gauging station covering about 90 % of the
total watershed. Percent difference between simulated and observed data (D), Correlation
coefficient (R2) and Nash and Sutcliffe simulation efficiency (Ens) (Nash and Suttcliffe 1970)
were used to evaluate the model‘s performance during calibration and validation processes.
Result and discussion
Sensitivity Analysis
We carried out Sensitivity analysis to identify sensitive parameter that significantly affected
surface runoff, base flow and sediment yield. Curve number (CNII), available water capacity
(SOL_AWC), average slope steepness (SLOPE), saturated hydraulic conductivity (SOL_K),
maximum canopy storage (canmx) and soil depth (SOL_Z) and soil evaporation
compensation factor (ESCO) were relatively high sensitive parameters that significantly affect
surface runoff.
Threshold water depth in shallow aquifer for flow (GWQMN), base flow Alpha factor
(ALPHA_BF), and deep aquifer percolation fraction (rchrg.dp) were other parameters that
mainly influence base flow.
We also identified average slope Steepness, USLE cover or management factor, USLE
support Practice factor , average slope length, Linear factor for channel sediment routing
and exponential factor for channel sediment routing as the most sensitive parameters that
significantly affect sediment yield.
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
104
Calibration and validation
Once we have identified the most sensitive parameters, values of selected model parameters
were varied iteratively within a reasonable range during various calibration runs until a
satisfactory agreement between observed and simulated streamflow and sediment data were
obtained. Five years daily flow and measured sediment data were used for flow and sediment
calibration respectively.
Flow Calibration resulted in Nash–Sutt cliffe simulation efficiency (ENS) of 0.76, correlation
coefficient (R2) of 0.87, and mean deviation of 3.29 % showing a good agreement between
measured and simulated monthly flows.
The model with calibrated parameters was validated by using an independent set of measured
flow and sediment data which were not used during model calibration. We used three years
measured flow and sediment data for validation processes. Accordingly, good match between
monthly measured and simulated flows in the validation period were demonstrated by the
correlation coefficient (R2) of 0.83 ,Nash-Sutcliffe simulation efficiency (ENS) of 0.68 and
a mean deviation of measured and simulated flows for the monthly flow was found to be -5.4
Table 1 Calibration and validation statistic for monthly measured and simulated Streamflow
Table 2 Comparison of monthly measured and simulated flows
Period Average flow (m3/s)
Measured Simulated
Calibration (1998-2002) 31.63 32.69
Validation (2003-2005) 33.98 32.15
Parameter Calibrated(1998-2002) Validated (2003-2005)
R2 0.87 0.83
Ens(Nash-Sutcliffe model
efficiencies)
0.76 0.68
D%(deviation of mean
discharge)
3.29 -5.4
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
105
Figure 2: Calibration results of average monthly measured and simulated flow
Figure 3: Validation results of average monthly measured and simulated flow
In calibrating sediment a good agreement between simulated monthly sediment yields with
measured sediment yield was verified by correlation coefficient (R2) of 0.85, Nash-Sutcliffe
model efficiency (ENS) 0.74 and mean deviation (D) of -14.2% . In validating sediment, a
match between simulated and measured sediment was demonstrated by correlation coefficient
(R2) of 0.79, Nash-Sutcliffe model efficiency (ENS) 0.62 and mean deviation (D) of -16.9%.
Table 3 Calibration and Validation results of monthly measured and simulated sediment yield
Table 4 Average Monthly and Annually Measured and Simulated Sediment Yield for
calibration and validation periods
Simulation periods
Average Measured Sediment
Yield
Average Simulated Sediment
Yield
(t/ha/m) (t/ha/yr) (t/ha/m) (t/ha/yr)
1998-2002
(calibration)
1.80
21.6
1.55
18.6
2003-2005
(Validation)
1.91 22.92 1.60 19.2
Parameter Calibrated
(1998-2002)
Validated
(2003-2005)
Correlation coefficient ( R2) 0.85 0.79
Nash-Sutcliffe model efficiencies( Ens) 0.74 0.62
Deviation of mean discharge (D %) -14.2 - 16.9
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
106
Figure 4: Calibration results of monthly measured and simulated sediment yield
Figure 5: Validation results of monthly measured and simulated sediment yield
Spatial pattern of Sediment source areas
After Calibration and validation, the model was run for a period 10 years .From the model
simulation output, sediment source areas were identified in the Watershed.10 years annual
average measured suspended sediment generated from the sediment rating curve was 20.7
ton/ha/yr and the simulated annual average suspended sediment yield by SWAT model was
16.2 t/ha/yr. The spatial distribution of sediment generation for the Gumara watershed is
presented in Figure 6. The spatial distribution of sediment indicated that, out of the total 30
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
107
SWAT sub basins, 18 sub-basins produce average annual sediment yields ranging from 11-22
ton/ha/yr, while most of the low land and wetland areas are in the range of 0-10 ton/ha/yr.
Figure 6: Spatial Distribution SWAT simulated annual sediment yield classes by sub basin
(t/ha/yr), Number (1-30) are sub basin numbers
Scenario Analysis
Once the model has been validated and the results are considered acceptable, the model is
ready to be parameterized to the conditions of interest (e.g., to evaluate impact of land use
change, management and conservation practices). After detail analysis of the problems and
benefits of the existing physical conservation practices in the watershed, we tested the model
with alternative scenario analysis of vegetation filter strip (buffer) with varying width to
reduce sediment production from critical sub watersheds. In evaluating Impact filter strips,
three management scenarios were considered and simulated:
I. Base Case (no filter Strip)
II. Filter strip 5 m wide on all HRUs (hydrologic response units) in
selected sub watersheds; and
III. Filter strips 10 m wide on all HRUs in selected sub watersheds
With implementation of vegetation strips ,an average annual sediment yields can be reduced
by 58 % to 62 % with 5m buffer strip and 74.2 to 74.4 % with 10m filter strips( table 5
,figure 7 and 8)
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
108
Table 5 Average annual change in sediment yield due to implementation of vegetation (filter
strips) of varying widths in selected critical Sub Watersheds.
Selected
critical Sub
Watersheds
Average Annual Sediment Yield t/ha/yr)
(1996-2005)
Percent Reduction in
Sediment Yield
Base Case
(no filter strip )
Field Strip or
Buffer
(5m wide)
Field Strip
or Buffer
(10m wide
Field Strip
or Buffer
(5m wide)
Field Strip or
Buffer
(10m wide)
11 11.800 4.5 3.03 -0.62 -74.35
16 18.200 7.6 4.68 -0.58 -74.30
17 12.100 4.6 3.11 -0.62 -74.29
22 17.600 6.8 4.54 -0.61 -74.23
24 21.300 8.2 5.48 -0.62 -74.29
28 12.700 4.9 3.28 -0.61 -74.19
29 19.200 7.4 4.95 -0.61 -74.23
Figure 7: Reduction in sediment yield (t/ha/y) due to implementation of different width of
filter strips as compared to the base case
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
109
Figure 8: Percent Reduction in simulated average annual suspended sediment yield (t/ha/y)
due to implementation of filter strips
Conclusion and recommendation
Even though the problem of soil erosion is recognized from gross erosion estimates and field
observations, quantitative information and data are required at micro watershed level to
develop alternative watershed management plans and for decision making. In this study,
attempts were made to characterize the Gumera watershed in terms of sediment yield,
identification of potential sediment source areas and evaluation of alternative management
interventions to reduce the onsite and offsite impact of soil erosion in the watershed.
We evaluated the performance of SWAT model using Standard calibration and validation
statistics. A good agreement between measured and simulated monthly streamflow was
demonstrated by correlation coefficient (R2
= 0.87), Nash-Sutcliffe model efficiency (ENS =
0.76) and mean deviation (D = 3.29) for calibration period and R2 =
0.83, ENS = 0.8 and D= -
5.4 % for validation periods. The model over estimated simulated flow by 3.29 % and under
estimated by 5.4 % for calibration (1998 -2002) and validation periods (2003-2005)
respectively.
In simulating sediment yield, correlation coefficient (R2
=0.85), Nash-Sutcliffe model
efficiency (ENS= 0.74.) and mean deviation (D=-14.2%) for calibration period and R2=0.79,
ENS =0.62 and D=-16.9% for validation periods were achieved. In both calibration and
validation periods, simulated sediment yield were under estimated by 14.2% and 16.9 %
respectively. Considering, the acceptable limits of statistical model evaluation criteria; these
result indicate a good a match between measured and simulated sediment.
A good performance of the model in the Validation period indicates that the fitted parameters
during calibration period can be taken as a representative set of parameters for Gumara
watershed and further simulation and evaluation of alternative scenario analysis can be carried
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
110
out for other periods using the SWAT model. The SWAT model prediction verified that about
72 % of the gumara watershed is erosion potential area contributing high sediment yield
exceeding the tolerance limit (soil formation rate) in the study area.
Following calibration and validation of SWAT model, two scenario analyses were tested to
reduce sediment loads from critical sub watersheds. The simulation results of the two scenario
analysis (using vegetation filter strips of 5m and 10 m wide) indicated that implementing filter
strips can reduce sediment yield by 58 % to 74 %. Overall, SWAT performed well in simulating
runoff and sediment yield on monthly basis at the watershed scale and thus can be used as a planning
tool for watershed management. The study can be further extended to similar watersheds in Abay
River basin, other similar areas and can bridge the gap of adequate information between processes at
the micro watershed and large watershed level.
References
Awulachew,S.B.;Yilma,A.D.;Luelseged,M.;Loiskandl,W.; Ayana,M.; Alamirew,
T.(2007).Water Resources and Irrigation Development in Ethiopia. Colombo, Sri
Lanka: International Water Management Institute.78p. (Working paper 123).
BCEOM, (1998). Abbay River Basin Integrated Development Master Plan Project, Volume
Xiii – Environment, Ministry of Water Resource, Addis Ababa.
Bureau of Rural Development (2003). Rural Households and socio-economic Baseline survey
of 56 woredas in the Amhara Region, Bahir Dar.
Constable,M.(1984).Resource of Rural Development in Ethiopia. Ethiopian High lands
Reclamation Study. Working Paper 17, FAO/Ministry of Agriculture, Addis Ababa.
Demel Teketay. (2004). Forestry Research in Ethiopia: Past, Present and Future. In Girma
Balcha, Kumelachew Yeshitela & Taye Bekele (eds.), Proceedings of a National
Conference on Forest Resources of Ethiopia: Status, Challenges and Opportunities,
27-29 November 2002, Addis Abeba, Ethiopia, pp. 1-39.
Dilnesaw Alamirew, (2006). Modelling of Hydrology and Soil Erosion of Upper Awash River
Basin. PhD Thesis, University of Bonn.
Ethiopian Highlands Reclamation Study (EHRS). (1984). Annual Research Report (1983-
1984). Ministry of Agriculture: Addis Ababa.
Haileslassie,A., Peden,D. ,Negash ,F. Gidyelew,T.(2006).Sediment Source and Sinks in the
Gumara watershed, Ethiopia. In Proceedings of Nile Basin Development Form,
Addis Ababa, November 29-Decemeber,Nile Basin Initiative, Addis Ababa.
Hudson, N. (1995). Soil Conservation. B.T. Batsford Ltd., London
Hurni, H. (1983).Soil Conservation Research Project, Vol. 3 Second Progress Report Soil and
Water Conservation Dept. Ministry of Agriculture and University of Berne,
Switzerland in association with UN University, Tokyo, 49 pp
Hurni, H. (1983). ―Soil Formation Rates in Ethiopia, Ethiopian High lands Reclamation
Study.
Hurni, H. (1985). Soil conservation manual for Ethiopía. Ministry of Agriculture. Addis
Ababa, Ethiopia
Lulseged Tamene. D. (2005). Reservoir siltation in Ethiopia: Causes, source areas, and
management options. Ecology and Development Series No. 30.
MoARD (2005). Community Based Participatory Watershed Development: A Guideline. Part
1, first edition, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
MoARD (2004). Woody Biomass Inventory and Strategic Planning Project, A national
strategic plan for Biomass energy sector, final report, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT)-Based Runoff and Sediment Yield Modeling: A Case of the Gumera Watershed in Lake Tana Subbasin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
111
Morgan. P. C., J.N. Quinton, R.E. Smith , G. Govers, J.W.A Poesen, K.A uerswald,
G.Chisci,D.Torri,M.E Styczen(1998). The European Soil Erosion Model
(EUROSED): A Dynamic Approach for Predicting Sediment Transport from Field
and Small Catchment, Earth surface Processes and Land Forms. Volume 23, pp
527- 544.
MoWR (Ministry of Water Resources). (2002). Ethiopian water sector strategy. MoWR,
Addis Ababa.
Nash, J. and Sutcliffe, J. (1970) River flow forecasting through conceptual models part 1 – a
discussion of principles. Journal of Hydrology, 10, 282-290
Nearing ,M.A.,L.J.Lane ,and V.L Lopes .(1994).Modeling Soil Erosion,in R. Lal(ed). Soil
Erosion Research Methods.Soil and Water conservation Society and St.Lucie
press,USA,PP127-156.
Neitsch SL, Arnold JG, Kiniry JR, Williams JR. Soil and Water Assessment Tool, Theoretical
Documentation: Version 2005. Temple, TX. USDA Agricultural Research Service
and Texas A&M Blackland Research Center, 2005.
Santhi, C., J.G. Arnold, J.R. Williams, W.A Dugas, R. Srinivasan, and L.M. Hauck, (2001).
Validation of the SWAT model on a large river basin with point and nonpoint
sources: Journal of the American Water Resources Association 37(5): 1169-1188.
Soil Conservation Service(SCS). (1972). Section 4: Hydrology In National Engineering
Handbook. SCS.
Van Griensven A. Sensitivity, auto-calibration, uncertainty and model evaluation in
SWAT2005
Wischmeier, W. H., and Smith, D. D. (1978). Predicting rainfall erosion losses: A guide to
conservation planning. U.S. Department of Agriculture. Agriculture Handbook No.
537, Washington, D.C., U.S. Government Printing Office
Wischmeier, W.H. and D.D. Smith. (1978). predicting rainfall erosion losses: a guide to
conservation planning. Agriculture Handbook 282. USDA-ARS
WWDSE, (2007). Catchment Development Plan, Gumara Irrigation Project. Ministry of water
resources, Addis Ababa.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
112
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in
the Blue Nile Basin
Fikadu Fetene1, Seleshi Bekele Awulachew2 and Nigusie Teklie3
1 Arba Minch University, Hydraulic and Hydropower Engineering, Arba Minch, Ethiopia 2 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
3 Arba Minch University, Arba Minch, Ethiopia
Abstract
The Blue Nile (Abbay) Basin lies in the western part of Ethiopia between 70 45'-120 45' N and 340 05'-390 45' E. The Blue Nile region is the main contributor to flood flows of the Nile, with a mean annual discharge of 48.5 km3. Soil erosion is a major problem in Ethiopia. Deforestation, overgrazing, and poor land management accelerated the rate of erosion. The SWAT was successfully calibrated and validated for measured streamflow at Bahir Dar near Kessie and at the border of Sudan for flow gauging stations, and for measured sediment yield at Gilgel Abbay, Addis Zemen and near Kessie gauging stations in the Blue Nile Basin. The model performance evaluation statistics (Nash–Sutcliffe model efficiency (ENS) and coefficient of determination (r²)) are in the acceptable range (r2 in the range 0.71 to 0.91 and ENS in the range 0.65 to 0.90). It was found that the Guder, N. Gojam and Jemma subbasins are the severely eroded areas with 34% of sediment yield of the Blue Nile coming from these subbasins. Similarly, the Dinder, Beshilo and Rahad subbasins only cover 7% of sediment yield of the basin. The annual average sediment yield is 4.26 t/ha/yr and the total is 91.3 million tonnes for the whole Blue Nile Basin in Ethiopia.
Introduction
Establishing a relationship among hydrological components is the central focus of
hydrological modeling from its simple form of unit hydrograph to rather complex models
based on fully dynamic flow equations. Models are generally used as utility in various areas
of water resource development, in assessing the available resources, in studying the impact of
human interference in an area such as land use change, climate change, deforestation and
change of watershed management (intervention of watershed conservation practices).
Sediments are all the basin rock and soil particles water carries away by sliding, rolling or
jumping on the bed and suspended in the flow. Very fine particles move in suspension. The
finer the particles and/ or the stronger the flow turbulence, the greater is the transport in
suspension. Once the sediment particles are detached, they may either be transported by
gravity, wind or/ and water.
Sediment transport by flowing water is strongly linked to surface soil erosion due to rain on a
given catchments. Water seeping in to the ground can contribute to landslides (subsurface
erosion) which may become major sources of sediments for rivers.
The whole process can be seen as a continuous cycle of: Soil erosion= detachment + transport
+ deposition.
Problem Statement and Justification
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
113
Flood discharge, and sediment carried assessment and monitoring for the basin using
conventional methods which rely on the availability of weather data, field measurement are
tedious, costly and time consuming. On the other hand, these weather data and field data are
often incomplete and limited in the basin.
Soil erosion is a major problem in Ethiopia. Deforestation, overgrazing, and poor land
management accelerated the rate of erosion. With the fast growing population and the density
of livestock in the basin, there is pressure on the land resources, resulting in forest clearing
and overgrazing. Increasingly mountainous and steeper slopes are cultivated, in many cases
without protective measures against land erosion and degradation. High intensity rain storms
cause significant erosion and associated sedimentation, increasing the cost of operation
&maintenance and shortening lifespan of water resources infrastructure.
Specifically, the problems and constraints in the study area lack of sediment data, difficulty of
gathering this data, variation of land management due to highly increasing deforestation for
search of agricultural land and climate change makes the things difficult and this study with
little effort and cost, continuously can predict sediment yield in the basin and sediment
transported with streams flow.
Objective of the study
The objective of this study was to determine rainfall, runoff and sediment yield relationship in
Blue Nile basins. The specific objectives of the studies are:
determination of spatiotemporal distribution of sediments in the Blue Nile basin,
to evaluate applicability of SWAT model in predicting sediment yield and concentration in
the Blue Nile basin,
To analyze the lag time of Hydrograph, LAG and lag time of sediment graph, LAGs.
Identify sensitive regions for erosion and deposition.
Description of the Study Area
The Blue Nile (Abbay) basin lies in the western part of Ethiopia between 70 45'-120 45' N
and 340 05'-390 45' E. The study area covers about 199,812 square kilometers with a total
perimeter of 2440 Km.
Most of the important tributaries of the Blue Nile are located in the Ethiopian highlands
(North western part of the country) with elevation ranging from about 300 to 4200m above
mean sea level. According to recent study by Conway (2000), in Ethiopia only it comprises
17.1 percent of the total surface area of the country excluding Dindar and Rahad sub basins
(176 000km2, out of 1.1Mkm2) with mean annual discharge of 48.5 Km3.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
114
Figure 1: Ethiopian Major River Basins and sub basins of Blue Nile basin
Concepts and Practices of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Relationship
Hydrological modeling is a great method of understanding hydrologic systems for the
planning and development of integrated water resources management. The purpose of using a
model is to establish baseline characteristics whenever data is not available and to simulate
long-term impacts that are difficult to calculate, especially in ecological modeling (Lenhart et
al. 2002).
Soil erosion models can be separated into models simulating a single hill slope or a single
field and models simulating a watershed. Determination of accurate runoff rate or volume
from the watershed is a difficult task, however, some common runoff estimation methods are
Rainfall-Runoff Correlation, Empirical Methods, Rational Method, Infiltration Indices
method, Hydrograph Method and using different models now a days, like HEC-HMS,
MOWBAL, SWAT model and others.
Several models are available for predicting erosion too, including the Universal Soil Loss
Equation (USLE), Revised Universal Soil Loss Equation (RUSLE), Modified Universal Soil
Losses Equation (MUSLE), Kinematics Runoff and Erosion Model (KINEROS), and Water
Erosion Prediction Project (WEPP).
For this runoff sediment relationship determination we have used SWAT model. SWAT is the
acronym for Soil and Water Assessment Tool, a river basin, or watershed, scale model
developed by Dr. Jeff Arnold for the USDA, Agricultural Research Service (ARS). SWAT
was developed to predict the impact of land management practices on water, sediment and
agricultural chemical yields in large complex watersheds with varying soils, land use and
management conditions over long periods of time. The SWAT model is chosen for physically
-
term impacts, capability for application to large-scale catchments (>100 km2), and capability
for interface with a Geographic Information System (GIS).
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
115
Figure 2: Overview of SWAT hydrologic component (Arnold et.al, 1998)
The hydrologic cycle as simulated by SWAT is based on the water balance equation:
t
i
gwseepasurfdayt QWEQRSWSW1
0
Where: SWt -is the final soil water content, SW0 -is the initial soil water content on day i , t -
is the time (days), Rday -is the amount of precipitation on day I, Qsurf -is the amount of
surface runoff on day i , Ea -is the amount of evapotranspiration on day i , Wseep -is the
amount of water entering the vadose zone from the soil profile on day i, and Qgw -is the
amount of return flow on day i.
The subdivision of the watershed in to HRU enables the model to reflect differences in
evapotranspiration for various crops and soils. Runoff is predicted separately for each HRU
and routed to obtain the total runoff for the watershed. This increases accuracy and gives a
much better physical description of the water balance.
The climatic variables required by SWAT consist of daily precipitation, maximum/minimum
air temperature, solar radiation, wind speed and relative humidity.
Surface Runoff Volume is computed using a modification of the SCS curve number method
(USDA Soil Conservation Service, 1972) or the Green & Ampt infiltration method (Green
and Ampt, 1911).
The SCS curve number equation is (SCS, 1972):
)SIR(
)IR(Q
a
2
aday
surf
Where: Qsurf: is the accumulated runoff or rainfall excess, Rday is the rainfall depth for the
day, Ia is the initial abstractions which includes surface storage, interception and infiltration
prior to runoff, and S is the retention parameter.
10
1000*4.25
CNS
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
116
Where, CN- is the curve number for the day.
The initial abstractions, Ia, is commonly approximated as 0.2S and becomes:
)8.0(
)2.0( 2
SR
SRQ
day
day
surf
Erosion
Transport of sediment, nutrients and pesticides from land areas to water bodies is a
consequence of weathering that acts on landforms. Soil and water conservation planning
requires knowledge of the relations between factors that cause loss of soil and water and those
that help to reduce such losses.
Erosion caused by rainfall and runoff is computed with the Modified Universal Soil Loss
Equation (MUSLE) (Williams, 1975). MUSLE is a modified version of the Universal Soil
Loss Equation (USLE) developed by Wischmeier and Smith (1965, 1978).
MUSLE: The modified universal soil loss equation (Williams, 1995) is:
CFRGLSPCKareaqQsed USLEUSLEUSLEUSLEhrupeaksurf 56.0
8.11
Where: sed- is the sediment yield on a given day (metric tons), Qsurf is the surface runoff
volume , qpeak is the peak runoff rate (m3/s), areahru is the area of the HRU (ha), KUSLE is
the USLE soil erodibility factor (0.013 metric ton m2 hr/(m3-metric ton cm)), CUSLE is the
USLE cover and management factor, PUSLE is the USLE support practice factor; LSUSLE is
the USLE topographic factor and CFRG is the coarse fragment factor.
The maximum amount of sediment that can be transported from a reach segment is calculated:
Where: concsed,,ch,,mx is the maximum concentration of sediment that can be transported by
the water (ton/m3 or kg/L), C sp is a coefficient defined by the user, V ch,pk is the peak
channel velocity (m/s), and spexp is an exponent defined by the user.
Data availability and analysis
DEM data: The Digital Elevation Model of 90m by 90m resolution has been used. The DEM
was in the format of STRM and this was processed on 3 DEM, Global Mapper
Software‘s and imported to Arc view GIS environment.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
117
Figure3: Climate and weather generating stations in the catchment of the Blue Nile
Hydrological data: Daily flow data is required for SWAT simulated result calibration and
validation.
Sediment data: There are few sites which has measured suspended sediment data in Blue Nile
which is not long year recorded data. So, it is generated by regression analysis arranged as per
the SWAT model and used for calibration.
Climate data: The climate data is among the most prerequisite parameter of SWAT model.
These are Rainfall Data, Temperature data, Wind speed, Relative humidity and sunshine
hours (solar radiation).
Materials and methodology
Materials for the study: Topographic map, DEM of the basin, Soil type map, Land use map.
Methodology
The applied methodology comprises five phases;
1) Preparation
2) Data acquisition
3) Modeling and data analyzing
4) Calibration, Validation, evaluation, and
5) Reporting.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
118
Figure 4: The general layout of Simulation diagram of SWAT model
Model Inputs
Inputs including basin area and main channel length were determined by AVSWAT
(ArcView GIS interface for SWAT) from DEM of the study area. SCS curve number and
overland Manning‘s n values were chosen based on suggested parameters by the SWAT
interface from soil and land use characteristics.
Measured daily rainfall, temperature, solar radiation, wind speed and relative humidity for the
study area were used in the model.
Digital elevation model (DEM)
Topography was defined by a Digital Elevation Model (DEM), which describes the elevation
of any point in a given area at a specific spatial resolution as a digital file.
Land use/cover map and soil map
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
119
Once watershed topographic parameters have been computed for each sub basin, the interface
uses land cover and soils data to generate multiple hydrologic response units (HRUs) within
each sub basin by GIS overlay process to assign soil parameters and SCS curve numbers.
SWAT has predefined land uses identified by four-letter codes and it uses these codes to link
land use maps to SWAT land use databases in the GIS interfaces.
Figure 5: a) SWAT land use/cover
classification & soil map of Blue Nile
b) Watershed delineated & outlets
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship
Watershed delineation
The subdivision of a watershed into discrete sub-watershed areas enables the modeling
process to represent the heterogeneity of the watershed. SWAT works on a sub-basin
basis and the interface delineates the watershed in to such sub-basins or sub-watersheds
based on topographic information. The total Blue Nile basin area is 199810.98 Km2, but
the delineated area becomes 190347 Km2.
Digitized stream networks
The digitized stream networks used in this study were found from the Ministry of Water
Resources (MoWR) of Ethiopia. The streams were prepared in a shape file format and
together with the DEM given as an input to the model to be ―burnt‖ during the
delineation process. The model superimposed the digitized stream networks into the
DEM to define the location of the stream networks and safe the time of delineation.
Weather data
This data are in daily based long year data's of many stations as much as possible. They
are precipitation, maximum and minimum temperature, relative humidity, wind speed
and solar radiation. On top of these data statistical analysis of monthly daily average,
standard deviations, and probability of wet and dry days, skew ness coefficients and dew
temperature were determined by FORTRAN program known as WXGenParm (J.R.
Williams, 1991) and program dew02.exe (S. Liersch, 2003) for generating missing data
(identified by -99) and predicting unmeasured and missing data in the basins.
SWAT takes data of each climatic variable for every sub basin from the nearest weather
station measured from the centroid of the sub basin.
Evaporation data
It has two options, either loading measured evaporation data or choosing the methods for
SWAT simulation. There are three methods of Evaporation determination by SWAT
model itself: Prestily-Taylor method, Penman-Monteith method and Hargreve methods.
For this study, since there is humidity, wind speed and solar radiation data limitation,
Hargreve method was chosen for simulation of evaporation and evapotranspiration by
SWAT model.
Sensitivity analysis
When a SWAT simulation is taken place there will be discrepancy between measured
data and simulated results. So, to minimize this discrepancy, it is necessary to determine
the parameters which are affecting the results and the extent of variation. Hence, to check
this, sensitivity analysis is one of SWAT model tool to show the rank and the mean
relative sensitivity of parameters identification and this step was ordered to analysis. This
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
121 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
appreciably eases the overall calibration and validation process as well as reduces the
time required for it. Besides, as Lenhart et al. (2002) indicated, it increases the accuracy
of calibration by reducing uncertainty.
For streamflow of Blue Nile basin, it was checked at three points, (at outlet of Tana
basin, near Kessie and at the Sudan Border.) In the entire study sub basin the sensitivity
showed that 28 parameters were sensitive. The following are few of them which have
significant effect on the results.
Table 1 Sensitivity results at Bahir Dar outlet
Parameter Rank Relative mean sensitivity Sensitivity Class
CN2 1 3.04 Very high
SOL_AWC 2 1.00 Very high
ESCO 3 0.60 high
sol_z 4 0.582 high
sol_k 5 0.23 high
GE_DEALY 6 0.21 high
ALPHA_BF 7 0.059 medium
SMTMP 8 0.046 Small
canmx 9 0.0432 Small
TIMP 10 0.0417 Small
SMFMX 11 0.0172 Small
Evaluation of Model Simulation
Graphical display of simulated and observed flows is very important because the
traditional method of evaluating model performance by statistical measures has
limitations. Statistical indices are not effective in communicating qualitative information
such as trends, types of errors and distribution patterns. In both calibration and validation
processes both observed and simulated hydrographs were compared graphically.
Model Efficiency
Two methods for goodness-of-fit measures of model predictions were used during the
calibration and validation periods in addition to graphical comparison for this study.
Model simulations efficiency were evaluated during calibration by using mean, standard
deviation, regression coefficient (R2), and the Nash-Sutcliffe simulation efficiency (ENS)
(Nash and Sutcliffe 1970).
Where: qsi is the simulated values of the quantity in each model time step, qoi is the
measured values of the quantity in each model time step , sq is the average simulated
value of the quantity in each model time step. oq is the average measured value of the
quantity in each model time step.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
122 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
After each calibration, the regression coefficient (R2), and the Nash-Sutcliffe (1970)
simulation efficiency (ENS) were also checked in accordance to Santhi et al. (2001)
recommendation (R² >0.6 and ENS > 0.5).
Model calibration and validation
Model calibration is a means of adjusting or fine tuning model parameters to match with
the observed data as much as possible, with limited range of deviation accepted.
Similarly, model validation is testing of calibrated model results with independent data
set without any further adjustment (Neitsch, 2002) at different spatial and temporal
scales.
Calibration of sediment was at locations of Tana basin (Gilgel Abbay, outlet number 10
and Addis Zemen at Ribb, outlet number 7) and at Kessie (outlet number 51).
Results and discussion
The basin has been divide in to 98 sub basins with threshold area of 100, 000 ha as
specified in section and 392 HRU.
Table 2 Parameters set before and after calibration of SWAT for streamflow calibration
at Bahirdar station
SWAT
PARAMETER
NAME
RECOMMENDED RANGE
BY SENSITIVITY
ANALYSIS
INITIAL VALUE CALIBRATED
VALUE
CN2 ±50% DEFAULT * -40.6%
SOL-AWC ±50% ** -25%
ESCO 0.0 -1.0 0.95 0.1
SOL-Z ±50% ** -44%
SOL-K ±50% ** +50%
GW_DELAY 0-100 31 40
ALPHA_BF 0-1 0.048 0.5
* Default value assigned by SWAT itself
** Value initially assigned by users, but it may not depends on accurate data
Flow calibration
After sensitivity analysis has been carried out, the calibration of SWAT 2003 model
simulated streamflow at the mentioned sites were done manually. The analysis of
simulated result and observed flow data comparison was considered monthly and
annually. Until the best fit curve of simulated versus measured flow was satisfied, the
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
123 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
sensitive parameters were tuned in the allowable range recommended by SWAT
developers.
Figure 6: Simulated Vs. measured streamflow at Kessie outlet b) Regression analysis line
and 1: 1 fit line
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
7000
8000
Sep-91 Jan-93 Jun-94 Oct-95 Mar-97
months
flo
w (
m3/
s)
Qsim Qob
Figure 7: Simulated Vs. measured streamflow at Border outlet b) Regression analysis line
and 1: 1 fit line
y = 0.8411x - 154.83 R 2 = 0.8875
0 1000 2000 3000 4000 5000 6000 7000 8000
0 2000 4000 6000 8000 Qsim(m3/s)
Qob(m3/s)
1:1regression line Qob vs Qsim
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
Jan-
92
May-
92
Sep-
92
Jan-
93
May-
93
Sep-
93
Jan-
94
May-
94
Sep-
94
Jan-
95
May-
95
Sep-
95
Jan-
96
May-
96
Sep-
96
months
flo
w(m
3/s
)
Qob Qsim
y = 0.8885x + 27.789
R2 = 0.9116
0
1000
2000
3000
4000
5000
6000
0 1000 2000 3000 4000 5000 6000
Qsim (m3/s)
Qo
b(m
3/s)
Qob Vs Qsim 1:1 regression line
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
124 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 3 Summary of calibrated and observed flow (m3/s) at the three sites
site year
19
92
19
93
19
94
19
95
19
96
A
ver
age
(m
3/s
)
Yearly
efficiency
Monthly
efficiency
R2 ENS R
2 ENS
Bah
ird
ar
calibrated (m3/s)
139.3 140.7 175.9 131.7 127.4 156.2
0.8
6
0.8
0.7
1
0.65
Measured (m3/s) 138.31 153.58 188.2 57.13 135.39 145.16
K
essi
e
calibrated (m3/s)
921.44 923.41 923.89 922.84 880.12 889.34
0.9
3
0.8
7
0.9
1
0.84
Measured (m3/s) 638.69 931.46 989.93 658.93 912.59 818.01
Bo
rder
calibrated (m3/s)
1811.47 2003.5 1750.7 1702.4 1849.63 1823.53
0.9 0.8
2
0.8
9
0.78
Measured (m3/s) 1502.12 1920.3
1797.6
8 1299.72 1908.43 1774.42
Flow validation
In this study the validation period is from year jan, 1998 to dec, 2000. One year from jan
1997 to dec 1997 is considered as warm-up period for model. Like as calibration, the
three above-mentioned goodness-of-fit measures were calculated and model-to-data plots
were inspected.
Table 4 Summary of validated and observed flow (m3/s) at the three sites site
year 1998 1999 2000
Av
erag
e
(m3/s
)
Yearly
efficiency
Monthly
efficiency
R2 ENS R
2 ENS
Bahirdar
validated
(m3/s) 182.1 186.2 157.9 175.4
0.89 0.75 0.78 0.69
Measured
(m3/s) 197.6 178.9 176.6 184.36
Kessie
validated
(m3/s) 1283.8 1261.8 1289.7 1278.4
0.9 0.81 0.79 0.76
Measured
(m3/s) 1129 1136.9 862.5 1087.24
Border
validated
(m3/s) 2186.6 2360.5 2140.4 2229.16
0.9 0.78 0.88 0.75
Measured
(m3/s) 2247.7 2206.2 1657.8 2037.23
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
125 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Sediment calibration and validation
In this paper the physically based SWAT 2003 model was applied to Blue Nile gauged
watershed for prediction of soil erosion and sediment yield/concentration for the whole
basin. SWAT model was first calibrated to flows, then to sediment. SWAT model was
calibrated for sediment by comparing monthly model simulated sediment yield against
monthly measured sediment yield at sites Gilgel Abbay (outlet 10), Addis Zemen at Ribb
(outlet 7) and near Kessie (outlet 51).
The sediment discharge curve is derived and by using this curve monthly data for the site
of calibration has been generated. To minimize the discrepancy the discharge sediment
curve was derived as wet season and dry season curve separately
Table 5 SWAT model calibration and validation statistics for monthly sediment yield
comparison at selected sites
Watersheds Simulation
Period
Monthly Average
efficiency
R2 ENS
Addis
Zemen
Calibration 1992-1994 0.89 0.88
Validation 1997-2000 0.81 0.75
Gilgel
Abbay
Calibration 1992-1994 0.71 0.66
Validation 1997-2000 0.71 0.65
Kessie
Calibration 1992-1994 0.86 0.85
Validation 1997-2000 0.82 0.77
0.000
1.000
2.000
3.000
4.000
5.000
6.000
7.000
Jan-92
Apr-92
Jul-92
Oct-9
2
Jan-93
Apr-93
Jul-93
Oct-9
3
Jan-94
Apr-94
Jul-94
Oct-9
4
sed
(t/
ha)
sim sed (t/ha) meas sed (t/ha)
Figure 8: Observed vs simulated sediment yield at a) Addis Zemen b) at Kessie
0.000 1.000 2.000 3.000 4.000 5.000 6.000 7.000 8.000
Jan-92 Apr-92 Jul-92 Oct-92 Jan-93 Apr-93 Jul-93 Oct-93 Jan-94 Apr-94 Jul-94 Oct-94
sediment yield
sim sed (t/ha) meas sed (t/ha)
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
126 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Discussion of model output
Simulation was performed for the whole Blue Nile in Ethiopia from the year 1991 -1996
as calibration period and from 1997-2000 as validation time for runoff result and from
1991-1994 as calibration period and from 1995-2000 as validation period for sediment
results. From these calibration and validation results and sites, it is possible to generalize
the model work for other sub basins in the watershed of simulation since the SWAT
model is distributed model and predict the same result in the calibration region for the
similar HRU. For different sub basin the annual sediment yield is shown in the following
chart:
Sub basins Sediment Yield (t/ha)
10
%
9%7%
6%
6%
6%
6%
5%
5%
5%
4%
3%
3%
1%
13
%
11
%
GuderN.GojemJemmaS.GojamwelekaFinchaaBelesDabusWenberaTanaMugerDidesaAngerRahadBeshiloDinder
Figure 9:
From this diagram, the Guder, N.Gojam and Jemma are the highest sediment yielding sub
basin in the mentioned order, cover 13%, 11% and 10% respectively of the whole Blue
Nile basin in Ethiopia. 34% of sediment of the Blue Nile basin is eroded from these three
sub basins. The amount of soil erosion or sediment yield that occurs in given watershed
related to five factors: the rainfall and runoff, the soil erodibility, the slope length and
steepness, the cropping and management of the soil, and any support practices that are
implemented to prevent erosion (Dilnesaw A., Bonn 2006).
The land use/cover of the three highest sediment yielding sub basins are dominated by
Agriculture; (Guder: (Agriculture=95.66%, and pastoral land=4.34%), N.Gojam
(Agriculture=95.41% and pastoral land=4.59) and Jemma (Agriculture=93.89%, pastoral
land= 3.42% and Corn=2.69%)). This is a key factor for erosion in these sub basins.
The slope of these three highly eroded sub basins (Guder, N.Gojam and Jemma) are
stands 3rd
, 4th
and 6th
compared to other sub basins of Blue Nile basins. This is also one of
the main factors affecting soil erosion in the watershed.
Similarly, the slope of those three high sediment yielding sub basins are relatively high
compared to the least sediment yielding sub basin, even though, they are not the highest
compared to other medium sediment yielding sub basin (see figure 9. b above).
0.0 2.0 4.0 6.0 8.0
10.0 12.0 14.0 16.0
Guder N.Gojem Jemma S.Gojam weleka Finchaa Beles Dabus Wenbera Tana Muger Didesa Anger Rahad Beshilo Dinder
sed yield, slope(1/10)
0.0 50.0 100.0 150.0 200.0 250.0 300.0 350.0 400.0 450.0 500.0
sub basins surface flow (mm)
SYLD (t/ha) slope surface flow Linear (surface flow) Linear (slope)
a) Sediment yield from different
sub basin b) The graphical comparison of the effect of
surface runoff and slope steepness on sediment
yielding
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
127 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
0.0
200.0
400.0
600.0
800.0
1000.0
1200.0
1400.0
1600.0
1800.0
2000.0
Gu
de
r
N.G
oje
m
Je
mm
a
S.G
oja
m
we
leka
Fin
ch
aa
Be
les
Da
bu
s
We
nb
era
Ta
na
Mu
ge
r
Did
esa
An
ge
r
Ra
ha
d
Be
sh
ilo
Din
de
r
pre
cip
, s
urf
ac
e f
low
0.0
1.0
2.0
3.0
4.0
5.0
6.0
7.0
8.0
9.0
10.0sub basins
SY
LD
precip (mm) Total surface flow(mm) SYLD (t/ha)
Figure 10: a) Relationship between sediment yield, precipitation and surface runoff ; b)
Sediment yield percentage distribution in Blue Nile basin
As shown above on figure 9, the precipitation and surface runoff alone have no direct
impact on sediment yield. From this, we can observe that, the land use/cover is the most
influential parameter for soil erosion and sediment yield from a given watershed in Blue
Nile basin.
Relation between Rainfall-Runoff and Sediment Yield
The relation between rainfall and runoff is a very long history as they have direct relation
with some effects of watershed characteristics. But the relation of sediment with runoff
and rainfall is not as such common to predict manually or empirically, but with help of
recent models like SWAT, it gives the relation between the three phenomena as it
considers all parameters that influence sediment yield, sediment concentration and
sediment transport.
Depending on the output of SWAT model result, the relation between rainfall, runoff and
sediment yield/concentration is shown, rainfall peak is come first, with sediment
concentration peak the next and the peak of runoff is at the end.
area (ha)
4% 3%6%
26%
22%
39%
20-30 t/ha
15-20 t/ha
10.0-15 t/ha
5.0-10.0 t/ha
2.5-5.0 t/ha
0.0-2.5 t/ha
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
128 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure11: a & b Comparisons of sediment concentration at the outlet of each subbasins
Conclusion and recommendation
Conclusion
The main objective of this thesis is to determine sediment yield in the different sub basin
of Blue Nile in Ethiopia, sediment load and sediment concentration in the main rivers of
the tributaries and in the Abbay River. In addition to this, the aim is to look spatial and
temporal variation of sediment yield/ concentration in the basin.
As it is looked from the model performance efficiency indicator, regression coefficient
(R2) and the Nash-Sutcliffe (ENS) are in the range of 0.71 to 0.91 in calibration and 0.78
to 0.88 in validation for flow analysis. Similarly, sediment model efficiency by regression
coefficient evaluation is in the range of 0.71 to o.89 for calibration and 0.71 to 0.86 in
validation. This shows that, the SWAT model simulates well both for streamflow and
sediment yield/load in Blue Nile basin.
As looked in result and discussion part, the 34% of soil is eroded from three sub basins,
Guder, N.Gojam and Jemma (in between 6-9 t/ha per average per year) that cover an area
of 18.6% of total Blue Nile. In similar manner, more than 50% of soil is eroded from an
area of around 16% of the whole basin (ranging from 15-30 t/ha sediment yield). The
actual annual soil loss rate in the study area exceeds the maximum tolerable soil loss rate
18t/ha/y at some sub basins. But the average annual sediment yield of the whole Blue
Nile basin is around 4.26 t/ha/yr and 4.58 t/ha/yr with and excluding Rahad and Dinder
sub basins respectively. The total soil eroded from the Blue Nile is 91.24 Million tones
and 88.96 Millions tones with and without Rahad and Dinder respectively.
When we look from the result of sediment concentration (mg/L) in the main streams of
Blue Nile, Weleka, S.Gojam and Wenbera have the greater amount of concentration (in
0.0
200.0
400.0
600.0
800.0
1000.0
1200.0
1400.0
1600.0
1800.0
JA
N
FE
B
MA
R
AP
R
MA
Y
JU
N
JU
L
AU
G
SE
P
OC
T
NO
V
DE
C
sed
co
ncen
trati
on
(m
g/L
)
s.gojam wenbera angerdidesa beles dabusrahad dinder sudan Border
0.0
200.0
400.0
600.0
800.0
1000.0
1200.0
1400.0
1600.0
1800.0
2000.0
2200.0
JA
N
FE
B
MA
R
AP
R
MA
Y
JU
N
JU
L
AU
G
SE
P
OC
T
NO
V
DE
C
Se
dim
en
t c
on
ce
nt
(mg
/L)
tana N.gojam beshilo weleka
muger guder fincha s.gojam
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
129 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
the range of 1600 to 2000mg/L) peak monthly sediment concentration compared to other
sub basins. But the sub basins that have least peak monthly concentration of sediment are
Dinder, Beshilo and Muger from lowest to up and the monthly peak concentrations in
these sub basins are in the range of 400 to 800 mg/L.
The sediment concentration in these sub basins become peak in the month of July, next to
peak of runoff mostly in August except Finchaa, Anger, Dabus and Didesa which have
peak in the month of September. Coming to annual concentration, S.Gojam, Wenbera and
Sudan border are taking the lead ranging from 350 to 900 mg/L annually, and Dinder,
Beshilo and Rahad are those which have least concentration ranging from 25 to 90mg/L
annually.
Recommendation
The results of this model out put of areal rainfall, runoff and sediment yield/
concentration/load should be considered as an attempt to predict with SWAT model and
used carefully for further study and potential project works study. We suggest that the
SWAT model is a very powerful tool to fill the gap we have in area of sediment data and
even on an un-quality and scarce streamflow data. we hope this result give initial
information for any researchers, projects on the basin and policy makers, but it may not
be remain the same result in the future as land use, management practice, weather
changes are some factor which alter the present situation rapidly.
It is better for the Ethiopian situation use SWAT model for sediment data prediction prior
to potential project study and plan commencement.
As a mitigation measure for prevention of severs erosion and conservation mechanism, it
is recommended to cover the mountainous and hilly area with plantation and control
further degradation by erosion. Further study is required in different scenarios to decide
a type of coverages and extent of application on different sub basins.
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
130 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure12: Graphical presentation of flow versus sediment concentration relation
References
Anderson, M. P., and Woessner, W. W., (1992), Applied groundwater modeling:
Academic Press, Inc., San Diego.
Arnold, J.G., P.M. Allen, and G. Bernhardt, (1993), A comprehensive surface
groundwater flow model. J. Hydrol. 142:47-69
BCEOM, BRGM, ISL (1998a), "The Federal democratic Republic of Ethiopia, Ministry
of water Resources, Abbay River Basin Integrated Development Master Plan
Project", Water Resources, Volume III, Part I & II
Beck, M. B. 1987. Water quality modeling: A review of the analysis of uncertainty.
Water Resources Res. 23(8): 1393-1442.
Chow, V. T., Maidment, D. R., and Mays, L. W. (1988) Applied hydrology, McGraw-
Hill, New York
Conway. D. (2000), "The Climate and Hydrology of the Upper Blue Nile River." The
Geographical Journal 166(1): 49-62.
DeCoursey, D. G. (1985) Mathematical models for non-point water pollution control.
Journal of Soil and Water Conservation 40:408–413
DILNESAW Alamirew, (2006), Modelling of Hydrology and Soil Erosion of Upper
Awash River Basin. PhD Thesis, University of Bonn: 233pp.
N.Gojem sub basin
0.0
500.0
1000.0
1500.0
2000.0
2500.0
J M S J M S J M S J M S J M S
flow
(m3/
s)
-100.0
100.0
300.0
500.0
700.0 prec
ipita
tion(
m
m)
precip(mm) FLOW_OUT(m3/s) sed conc (M g/L)
N.Gojam
0.0
500.0
1000.0
1500.0
2000.0
J ANMARMAYJ ULS E PNOV
flow
-100.0
100.0
300.0
500.0
700.0
prec
ipita
tion
prec ip(mm) FL OW_OUT(m3/s ) S EDCONC (mg/l)
0.0
200.0
400.0
600.0
800.0-500.0
500.0
1500.0
2500.0
3500.0
J…
M…
S…
J…
M…
S…
J…
M…
S…
J…
M…
S…
J…
M…
S…
pre
cip
itatio
n
flo
w(m
3/s
)
Jemma sub basin
precip(mm)
FLOW_OUT(m3/s)
sed conc (Mg/L)
J emma Bas in annual flow vs s ed c onc
0.01000.02000.03000.0
0 5 10 15
monthsfl
ow
(m
3/s
)
-300.0
200.0
700.0
PRECIP(mm) FL OW_OUT (m3/s ) S EDCONC (mg/l)
Development of Rainfall-Runoff-Sediment Discharge Relationship in the Blue Nile Basin
131 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Dooge, J.C.I., (1968) The hydrologic cycle as a closed system. Bull. Int. Ass. Scient.
Hydrol., 13. (1).
Eppink, L.A.A.J. (1993). Processes and models in erosion and soil and water
conservation. Water erosion models: an overview. Lecture notes, Wageningen.
Garde R J, Ranja Raju K G, (1985), Mechanics of Sediment Transportation and Alluvial
Stream Problems, second edition, Roorkee, India
Hurni H (1988) Degradation and conservation of the resources in the Ethiopian highlands
JSTOR, pp. 123-130.
Leonard, R.A., W.G. Knisel., and D.A. Still. (1987). GLEAMS: Groundwater loading
effects of agricultural management systems. Trans. ASAE. 30:1403-1418.
Leo C. van Rijn (1993) principles of sediment Transport in Rivers, Estuaries and Coastal
seas, University of Utrecht, The Netherlands.
Neitsch (a), S.L., J.G. Arnold, J.R. Kiniry, J.R. Williams, K.W. King , 2002. Soil and
Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) Theoretical Documentation, Version 2000,
Grassland Soil and Water Research Laboratory, Blackland Research Center,
Texas Agricultural Experiment Station, Texas Water Resources Institute, Texas
Water Resources Institute, College Station, Texas, 506pp.
Modeling of Soil Erosion and Sediment Transport in the Blue Nile Basin using the Open
Model Interface Approach
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue
Nile Basin using the Open Model Interface Approach
Getnet D. Betrie1, Yasir A. Mohamed1, 2, Ann van Griensven1, I. Popescu1 and Arthur Mynett3
1 UNESCO-IHE Institute for Water Education, Delft, the Netherlands 2International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
3Deltares-Delft Hydraulics, Delft, the Netherlands
Abstract
Rapid land use change due to intensive agricultural practices in the Ethiopian Highlands, results in increasing rates of soil erosion. This manifested in significant impacts downstream by reducing the storage capacity of reservoirs (e.g., Roseires, Sennar), and high desilting costs of irrigation canals. Therefore, this paper aims to provide a better understanding of the process at basin scale. The Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) was used to model soil erosion in the upper catchments of the Blue Nile over the Ethiopian Plateau. The SWAT output forms the input sediment load for SOBEK, a river morphology model. The two models integrated using the principles of the Open Model Interface (OpenMI) at the Ethiopia-Sudan border. The Nash-Sutcliffe coefficient was found to be 0.72 and 0.66 for results of SWAT daily sediment calibration and validation, respectively. The SOBEK results also show a good fit of the simulated river flows at Roseires and Sennar reservoirs, both for calibration and validation. The results of the integrated modeling system showed 86 million tonnes/year of sediment load from the Upper Blue Nile, while SOBEK computes on average 19 Mm3/year of sediment deposition in the Roseires Reservoir. The spatial variability of soil erosion computed with SWAT showed more erosion over the northeastern part of the Upper Blue Nile, followed by the northern part. The overall exercise indicates that the integrated modeling is a promising approach to understand soil erosion, sediment transport, and sediment deposition in the Blue Nile Basin. This will improve the understanding of the upstream-downstream interdependencies, for better land and water management at basin scale.
Introduction
Sediment transport degrades soil productivity as well as water quality causing worldwide
problems of reservoirs sedimentation, and alternation of river morphology. These
problems are more distinct in the Blue Nile basin – the main tributary of the River Nile.
Rapid population increase led to fast land-use change from forest to agricultural land, and
as associated with steep terrain, these changes has resulted in severe soil erosion over the
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
133 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Upper Blue Nile (Nyssen, et al., 2004). The soil erosion and sediment transport processes
have affected the whole Blue Nile basin negatively even though it was nutrient-rich
sediment source (Nixon, 2002). The upper Blue Nile is losing fertile topsoil, exacerbating
impacts of dry spells and drought, a common incident in the area. While, the reservoirs
and irrigation canal in the lower Blue Nile are seriously affected by sediment deposition,
leading to significant reduction of reservoirs storage capacities, and excessive de-silting
costs of irrigation canals. In general, there is very limited information on how much is the
soil erosion, and its impact downstream. Therefore, this paper aims for better
understanding of the process at basin scale.
Methodology
The SWAT model was used to compute the soil erosion from Upper Blue Nile, routed up
to the outlet (El Diem), and then SOBEK-RE was used to compute the morphological
change of the river and reservoirs from the border till the Blue Nile outlet (Khartoum)
and the Open Modelling Interface (OpenMI) was used to link the two models at the
border.
SWAT set up
The Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) is a physical process based model to
simulate the process at catchment scale (Arnold, et al., 1998, Neitsch, et al., 2005). The
catchment is divided into hydrological response unit (HRU) based on soil type, land use
and management practice.
The Upper Blue Nile watershed was delineated using the Digital Elevation Model (DEM)
approximately 90 m grid of SRTM (http://www2.jpl.nasa.gov/srtm/index.html). The
USGS landuse map of 1 km resolution (http://edcsns17.cr.usgs.gov/glcc/glcc.html) and
the FAO soil map of 10 km resolution (FAO, 1995) were overlaid to obtain a unique
combination of landuse and soil, hydrologic response unit (HRU). The sensitivity
analysis of the SWAT computation has been done by varying key parameters value and
investigating reaction on model outputs. An automatic (SWAT) sensitivity analysis has
been carried out and those parameters that influence the predicted outputs were used for
model calibration.
SOBEK set up
SOBEK is a one-dimensional hydrodynamic numerical modelling system capable of
solving the equations that describe unsteady water flow, sediment transport and
morphology, and water quality. The flow module is described by the continuity and the
momentum equations and the morphological module is described by sediment continuity
equation (WL/Delft Hydraulics and RIZA, 1995).
The river (1D) model constitute a length of 730 km. River cross data (surveyed in 1990)
of the Ministry of Irrigation, Sudan was used. Compound structure was made from
General structures and Weir to model the two dams Roseries and Sennar. A SOBEK time
controller has been used to represent reservoir level simulating the operation program of
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
134 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
the reservoir for a given year. A Chezy coefficeint of 50 both for positive and negative
flow has been used. Time series discharge hydrograph has been used as upstream
boundary conditions at El Deem and water level at Khartoum as downstream boundary
conditions. For morphology computation, time series sediment inflow of was used us an
upstream boundary conditions at El Deem and bed level of 368 m at Khartoum for
downstream conditions. Time step of 4 hours and distance step of 1000m was used. The
SOBEK-RE model covers the Blue Nile channel from El Deim to Khartoum, has been
run for the period between 2000 and 2003. The operation of the two dams (Roseires and
Sennar) has been simulated (within SOBEK) using a time controller that assimilates the
observed reservoir water levels. The dam releases used as calibration variables.
Models integration
The Open Modelling Interface (OpenMI) standard is a software component interface
definition for the computational core (the engine) of the hydrological and hydraulic
models (Gregersen et al., 2007). The OpenMI was developed by EU co-financed
HarmonIT project to address easy model linking of existing and new models. The SWAT
model has been migrated into OpenMI compliant model. The detail of model
development can be seen Betrie et al., 2009.
SWAT model results and discussion
The SWAT model (hydrology part) has been calibrated using daily flow hydrograph of El
Deim (Ethiopia/Sudan border) station from 1981 to 1986, and validated with data from
1987 to 1996. The computed model performance using Nash-Sutcliff coefficient for the
calibration and validation found to be 0.92, and 0.82, respectively. Since, the main
emphasis of this paper is to compute soil erosion from upper Blue Nile and route the
sediment all the way up to the confluence with White Nile at Khartoum, the detailed
description of the Rainfall-Runoff model calibration and validation is given in Betrie et
al., 2008.
The sediment hydrograph at El Deim used for calibration has been generated using
sediment concentrations that were generated using sediment rating curve (flow sediment
relations derived from historical data). SWAT sediment out flow calibrated for the period
1981 to 1986, while 1980 was used for warming the model. The calibration results show
good agreement with observed sediment load, (Figure 1a). The model could simulate low
flow erosion and sediment transport though this assumed zero relative to the peak period
erosion in the observed data. The Nash-Sutcliffe efficiency computed to be 0.72 for the
calibration period (1981to 1986), which is generally satisfactory results for soil erosion
modelling (Arnold, et al., 1999,and Zeleke, 1999).
The validation of sediment modelling (1990 to 1996) is given in Figure 1b. The model
was able to simulate the peak sediment for most of the years, except for 1993 and 1994,
in particular when there is a sharp rise of silt content. Similar to calibration period the
model could simulate sediment transport during dry period and beginning of wet period
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
135 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
flow which is assumed zero in the observation data. The model performance NS equal to
0.66, assumed reasonable for such computation.
Figure 1: Observed and Simulated sediment concentration comparison during calibration
(a) and validation (b) period at El Deem station.
The spatial variability of soil erosion results computed by SWAT is very useful
information to assess areas of high/low sediment sources. As given by Figure 2 the
highest soil erosion occurs at sub-basin 10 (16 ton ha-1yr-1). Medium soil erosion occurs
in sub-basins 11 (9 ton ha-1yr-1), and 1 8 ton ha-1yr-1and low erosion occurs in the
remains subbasins. Comparable result was reported by BCEOM (1998) when analyzing
several years of observed data.
The total amount of soil erosion computed by SWAT at the outlet (El Deim was found to
be 491 t km-2 year-1. This result was found to be within the range previous estimate such
as 480 t km-2 year-1 Blue Nile catchment above El Diem (Ahmed A.S., 2006), 200- 400
t km-2 year-1 for upper Blue Nile and Tekeze basins (Mc Dougal, 1975) and 100-1000 t
km-2 year-1 from Ethiopian highlands (Walling,1984). The biophysical process is that
after soil erosion processes there is deposition of sediment in river channel within the
Upper Blue Nile, which account 24 Million ton per year. The amount of sediment yield
delivered out of the upper Blue Nile estimated to be 62 Million ton per year at Ethiopia-
Sudanese boarder.
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
136 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 2: Simulated soil erosion in upper Blue Nile subbasins
SOBEK model results
The SOBEK model could accurately simulate the flow regime of the Blue Nile.
Calibration result for the flow downstream Roseires dam is given in Figure 3a. While, the
flood peak was not captured accurately, its propagation and values for the rest of the year
seems very reasonable, in particular the rising and falling limb of the hydrograph. No
clear reason for the mismatch of September 2000. Though likely it could be attributed to
ungauged inflow from the catchment between El Deim and Roseires. Another reason
could be a questionable accuracy of the dam equation while computing releases during
rapidly rising flood.
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
137 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 3: Observed and Simulated discharge calibration year 2000 at Roseries (a) and
Sennar (b) reservoirs
The calibration result at Sennar dam (Figure 3b) shows a good fit. Unlike Roseires, peak
flow has been simulated accurately. The model could not simulate sudden lowering of
gate to flush sediment at the last week of September 2000. In addition, the model
overestimated the falling limb, which could be due to abstraction for irrigation along the
reach Roseires-Sennar.
The SOBEK model validation has been done for year 2003 at Roseries and Sennar dams.
Figure 4 depicts good fit between simulated and observed discharge at Roseries and
Sennar reservoirs. The rising limb and the peak flow were well captured by the model.
The model did not catch the peak in the beginning of September in which the reservoir
starts to be filled if the discharge is at El Deim drops to 350 M m3/day. This is attributed
to the fact that during the calibration period the flow at El Deim satisfied the reservoir
filling condition so the model was not trained to lower the weir in a case the flow does
not drop to 350 M m3/day; in fact the flow at El Deim for the validation period was 432
M m3/day. Similar to the calibration period the model could not simulate the sudden
opening of the weir to flush the sediment at both Roseries and Sennar.
Figure 4: Observed and Simulated discharge validation year 2003 at Roseries (a) and
Sennar (b) reservoirs
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
138 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Since the morphological changes feedback to the hydrodynamics and the close relations
between resistance and sediment transport, the calibration and verification of the
hydrodynamic and sediment transport modules are closely inter-linked. Thus, after good
calibration of the hydrodynamic part, the model was run in morphological mode to
compute the bed level change. The sediment transport module was not calibrated along
the river reach because of the data limitation on different grain size. However, the
sediment transport verification result showed good fit between observed and simulated
sediment concentration at Wad Elias station (Figure 5).
Figure 5: Sediment transport verification at Wad Elias station
The longitudinal profile of the SOBEK results showed a deposition of the suspended
sediment that transported from upper Blue Nile has occurred at 35 km before Roseries
dam. This is expected as to the effect of the backwater curve (Figure 6), i.e., typically
development of reservoir delta. This result well agrees to the principle of reservoir
sedimentation of Tarbel Resevoir, Pakistan in Sloff (1999). Close to El Deim, the
beginning of the reach the model shows clear bed erosion. This is because the sediment
boundary condition at upstream was consisted of only suspended sediment due to lack of
measured bed load information. However, the Van Rijn sediment transport model needs
bed load since it computes bed load and suspended sediment transport separately. Thus, it
erodes the bed to satisfy its transport need. After Roseries dam there is severe bed
erosion, could be due to increased sediment transport capacity because of the deposition
suspended sediment upstream the dam. Although in reality there is erosion after the dam,
it should not erode the bed that much because there is wash load which is not deposited
upstream of the dam. The excessive erosion happened due to the fact the model does not
solve the advection-dispersion equation which consider the wash load otherwise the
effect might have been reduced. Thus, the substantial erosion just downstream the dams
may not be accurate as other models that are more suitable for non-cohesive sediment
transport. Nevertheless, this result could give qualitative information on river
morphology behavior. Downstream of Sennar dam there is no excessive bed erosion
unlike the Roseries since the sediment transport capacity is lowered due to enough eroded
sediment. After Sennar to Khartoum there is local erosion and deposition as shown in
Figure 6.The volume of sediment deposition at Roseries was estimated by integrating the
area differences along the distance between El Diem, the mouth of the Reservoir and
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
139 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Roseries dam. Annual average sediment deposition of 19 M m3 was obtained for the
simulation period, which is comparable to literature values, e.g., 20 M m3/yr reported by
(NBCBN-RM, 2005).
Figure 6: Erosion and deposition of Blue Nile river bed
Conclusions
The paper showed an integration of SWAT hydrological model to a SOBEK 1D
hydrodynamic model using OpenMI interface. Useful information has been obtained on
spatial distribution of soil erosion on Upper catchment, as well as to the total yield at
outlet. The sensitive area to erosion and deposition were found to be the North and North
East of Upper Blue Nile subbasins and Rosaries dam, respectively. The integrated soil
erosion - sediment transport modelling showed that 86 ton per year of soil is eroded from
Upper Blue Nile (at the border), 24 million ton per year deposited in the channel and 62
million ton per year transported to Lower Blue Nile at Eldiem. About 19 M m3year-1
year deposited at Roseries reservoir and the remaining transported downstream. The
integrated modelling proved to be useful to study upstream-downstream
interdependencies, e.g., to analyze the effect of different management practices upstream
(e.g., forestation), and assess implications on flow and sediment hydrographs further
downstream. These are essential information for effective basin scale water management.
References Ahmed SA (2006) Proceeding of International Sediment Initiative Conference, 12-15
Nov 2006, Khartoum
Arnold JG, Srinivasan R, Muttiah RS, Williams JR (1998) LARGE AREA
HYDROLOGIC MODELING AND ASSESSMENT PART I: MODEL
DEVELOPMENT 1. Journal of the American Water Resources Association 34:
73-89
Arnold JG, Srinivasan R, Ramanarayanan TS, DiLuzio M (1999) Water resources of the
Texas Gulf Basin. Water Science and Technology 39: 121-133
Modeling of soil erosion and sediment transport in the Blue Nile
140 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
BCEOM (1999) Abay River Basin integrated master plan, main report. Ministry of Water
Resources, Addis Ababa, pp. 71-83
Gregersen JB, Gijsbers PJA, Westen SJP (2007) OpenMI: Open modelling interface.
Journal of Hydroinformatics 9: 175-191
McDougall, I.Morton, W. H.,Williams, M. A. J. (1975) Age and rates of denudation of
Trap Series basalts at Blue Nile Gorge, Ethiopia. 254:207-209
NBCBN-RM (2005) Survey of Literature and Data Inventory in Watershed Erosion and
Sediment Transport. In: Klassen GJ (ed) Watershed Erosion and Sediment
Transport Nile Basin Capacity Building Network
Neitsch SL, Arnold JG, Kiniry J, Williams JR (2005) Soil and Water Assessment Tool
Theoretical Documentation, Version 2005 Grassland ,Soil and Water Research
Laboratory, Agricultural Research Service and Blackland Research Center, Texas
Agricultural Research Station, Temple, Texas
Nixon SW (2002) Replacing the Nile: Are Anthropogenic Nutrients Providing the
Fertility Once Brought to the Mediterranean by a Great River? . A Journal of the
Human Environment 32: 30-39
RIZA (2005) SOBEK River/Estuary User Manual, SOBEK-RE Help Desk Institute for
Inland Water Management and Waste Water Treatment
Sloff CJ (1997) Modelling reservoir sedimentation processes for sediment management
studies. Proceeding conference ―Hydropower into the next century‖, Portoroz,
Slovenia, 15-17 sept. 1997, p. 513-524, Aqua Media Int., UK
Walling DE (1984) A Challenge of African Hydrology and Water Resources.
International Association of Hydrological Sciences. Wallingford, U.K , IAHS
Publication No.144 , no. 37693, pp. 587
Williams JR, Berndt HD (1978) Sediment Yield Prediction Based on Watershed
Hydrology. Transactions of American Society of Agricultural Engineers 20:
1100-1104
WL/Delft Hydraulics and Ministry of Transport, Public Works and Water Management
(1995) SOBEK 1.0—User‘s Guide, WL/delft hydraulics, Delft, The Netherlands.
Zeleke G (1999) Application and Adaptation of WEPP to the Traditional Farming
Systems of the Ethiopian Highlands. In: D.E Stott RHMaGCS (ed) Proceedings of
the 10th international soil conservation organization Meeting, Purdue University
and USDA-ARS National Soil Erosion Laboratory, pp. 903-912
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
Rainfall-discharge relationships for monsoonal climates
Tammo S. Steenhuis1, Joie Taylor2, Zach Easton1, Amy Collick3, Nick van de Giesen4, Jens Liebe5, Abdalla A. Ahmed6 and Marc Andreini7
1 Cornell University, USA 2 Decatur Healing Arts, USA
3 Bahir Dar University, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia 4 Delft University of Technology, the Netherlands
5 Center for Development Research, University of Bonn, Germany 6 Omdurman Islamic University, UNESCO-Chair in Water Resources, Khartoum, Sudan
7 International Water Management Institute, USA
Abstract
Methods for estimating runoff that have been developed for temperate climates may not be suitable for use in the monsoonal climates of Africa, where there is a distinct dry season during which soils dry out to a considerable depth. This has a distinct effect on runoff generation that is not captured by “the temperate climate” models. The scope of this tool is to develop a simple water balance method for predicting river discharge. Water balance models have been shown to better predict river discharge in regions with monsoonal climates than alternative methods based on the United States Department of Agriculture-Soil Conservation Service (USDA-SCS) curve number. The latter is an empirical-based model developed in the USA that does not apply to monsoonal climates with distinct dry and wet periods.
Introduction
Description and application
Doing a water balance for a watershed is simple! In many regions, rainfall intensity
does not affect runoff, in which case we can simply take daily, weekly or even
monthly precipitation amounts, subtract evaporation, and use the water balance to
keep track of moisture content in the root zone. There is an upper limit for soil
moisture (field capacity). When this is exceeded, water drains out of the profile
either by percolation to groundwater, as interflow, or as surface runoff. Evaporation
is dependent on soil moisture content. It is known that evaporation is zero at wilting
point and approaches the potential rate when the soil is at field capacity. There is a
linear relationship of evaporation and moisture content between these two points.
The watershed model has many similarities with a flowerpot. Water is added. Add
too much water and it drains out. When the soil is dry the plant wilts and evaporation
is reduced. A real watershed may be conceived as being composed of many
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
142 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
―flowerpots‖ of different sizes. For simplicity we assume only two areas: hill slopes,
and the relatively flat areas that become saturated during the rainy season. Hill slopes
have high percolation rates (McHugh, 2006) and water is generally transported
subsurface as interflow (e.g. over a restrictive layer) or base flow (percolated from
the profile). The flatter areas that drain the surrounding hill slopes become runoff
source areas when saturated (Fig. 1 shows a schematic). The profile for the hill
slopes is divided into a root zone where the plants extract water and a bottom layer
that transmits excess water to the stream. In the saturated contributing area all excess
water becomes surface runoff. As this is our major point of interest, we simulate only
the top layer (root zone) in this application.
Figure 1: Schematic landscape segment
The amounts of water stored in the topmost layer of the soil, S (mm), for hillslopes
and for runoff source areas, were estimated separately with a water balance equation
of the form:
where P is precipitation, (mm d-1
);
AET is the actual evapotranspiration;, St-Δt, previous time step storage, (mm), R
saturation excess runoff (mm d-1
), Perc is percolation to the subsoil (mm d-1
) and Δt
is the time step.
During wet periods, when rainfall exceeds evapotranspiration (i.e., P>PET), actual
evaporation, AET, is equal to potential evaporation, PET. Conversely, when
evaporation exceeds rainfall (i.e., P<PET), the Thornthwaite and Mather (1955)
procedure is used to calculate actual evapotranspiration, AET (Steenhuis and van der
Molen, 1986). In this method
AET decreases linearly with
moisture content, e.g.
1tPercRAETPSS tt
2S
tS
PETAETmax
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
143 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
where PET is potential evapotranspiration (mm d-1
). The available soil storage
capacity, Smax, (mm) is defined as the difference between the amount of water stored
in the top soil layer at wilting point and the upper moisture content that is equal to
either the field capacity for the hillslopes soils or saturation in runoff contributing
areas. Smax varies according to soil characteristics (e.g., porosity, bulk density) and
soil layer depth. Based Eq. 2 the surface soil layer storage can be written as:
In this simplified model direct runoff occurs only from the runoff contributing area
when the soil moisture balance indicates that the soil is saturated. The recharge and
interflow comes from the remaining hill slopes areas. There is no surface runoff from
these areas. This will underestimate the runoff during major rainfall events but since
our interest in weekly to monthly intervals this is not thought to be a major
limitation.
In the saturated runoff contributing areas, when rainfall exceeds evapotranspiration
and fully saturates the soil, any moisture above saturation becomes runoff, and
runoff, R, can be determined by adding the change in soil moisture from the previous
time step to the difference between precipitation and actual evapotranspiration, e.g.,
In hill slopes, water flows either as interflow or baseflow to the stream. Rainfall in
excess of field capacity becomes recharge and is routed to two reservoirs that
produce baseflow or interflow. We assumed that the baseflow reservoir is filled first
and when full the interflow reservoir starts filling. The baseflow reservoir acts as a
linear reservoir and its outflow, BFt, and storage, BSt, are calculated when the storage
is less than the maximum storage, BSmax
When the maximum storage, BSmax, is reached then
3)(
expmax
PETPwhenS
tPETPSS ttt
bSS
atAETPSR
t
tt
4
4
max
b
t
tBSBF
atBFPerc
tt
ttt
5)exp(1
5BSBS -tt
b
t
tBSBF
a
t 6)exp(1
6BSBS
max
maxt
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
144 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Interflow originates from the hill slopes, and landscape slope is the major force
driving water movement. Under these circumstances, the flow decreases linearly
(i.e., a zero order reservoir) after a recharge event. The total interflow, IFt at time t
can be obtained by superimposing the fluxes for the individual events (details are
given in the Appendix):
where τ* is the duration of the period after the rainstorm until the interflow ceases,
IFt is the interflow at a time t, Perc*t-τ is the remaining percolation on t-τ days after
the base flow reservoir is filled. To demonstrate the method we give two examples:
the Abay (Blue Nile) and the Volta.
Application: the Abay Blue Nile
For the Blue Nile we predicted the ten-day averaged river discharge at the El Karo
gauge station at the Ethiopian-Sudan border for 1993-1994. The ten-day averaged
precipitation over the entire Abay Blue Nile basin in Ethiopia is also available for
this period (Ahmed 2003, Fig. 2). Other parameters needed to simulate the discharge
include: potential evapotranspiration, which varies little between years and was set at
5 mm d-1
during the dry season and 3.3 mm d-1
during the rainy season, and soil
parameters (e.g., storage). Values for soil storage for the hill slopes and the
contributing area were based initially on values from Collick et al. (2008) for three
SRCP watersheds. Although the Collick et al. (2008) values resulted in a reasonable
fit in this application, we decided to vary them slightly to improve the agreement
between observed and predicted values. (The correct distribution between subsurface
flow and overland flow directly determines predicted sediment concentrations:
Steenhuis et al, 2008). Maximum storage values Smax, for different parts of the
watershed are listed in Table 1.
Simulating the subsurface flow in the complex landscape of the Blue Nile required
both a linear (first order) groundwater reservoir to correctly predict the base flow at
the end of the dry season and zero order reservoir to obtain the interflow from the
hillslope. The best fit to observed streamflow data was obtained with reservoir
coefficient α of 20 mm and a τ* of 140 days.
Observed rainfall and predicted and observed discharge are shown in Fig. 2. The
various components (i.e., direct runoff and the sum of the interflow from hill slopes
and baseflow) are shown in Fig. 3. At the beginning of the rainy season almost all
flow in the river is direct runoff generated from the 20% of the area that has the
smallest storage. As the rainy season progresses (cumulative rainfall increases), the
rest of the landscape wets up and runoff is generated from the remaining 10% of the
flatter contributing area, followed in early July 1993 by base and interflow from the
hill slopes. Note that this corresponds to the time when sediment concentration in the
river is decreasing from a maximum value (Fig. 4).
*
2,1,02
* 7**
12
tt PercIF
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
145 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Less obvious but just as important is that the volumes of predicted and observed
discharge in Fig. 2 (i.e., areas under the curves) are equal, indicating that the water
balance does indeed balance within a hydrologic cycle. In other words we can
account for all precipitation that does not evaporate as streamflow in the same year.
Finally, this water balance is able to explain the observed runoff coefficient of (i.e.,
discharge/precipitation) of approximately 20-30% during the period when most
rainfall occurs by distributing the effective rainfall (rainfall minus potential
evaporation) over saturated contributing areas that generate direct runoff - and then
interflow and baseflow after the major rainfall from the remaining 70% of the area.
Table 1 Model inputs: fractional areas of watershed, Smax values, and type of area.
Figure 2: Ten day precipitation and predicted and observed discharge for the Abay
Blue Nile at El Karo, Sudan.
Fraction of Watershed Storage Smax (mm) Type
0.2 10 contributing area
0.1 250 contributing area
0.7 500 hillside
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
146 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 3: Predicted total discharge, direct runoff, and subsurface flow for the Abay
Blue Nile at El Karo at the Ethiopian Sudanese Border
The Volta Basin
The Volta basin is much less steep than the Blue Nile basin. Although the same
general principles govern water balance, practical implementation is different. In the
relatively flat Volta basin, the fast and relatively rapid interflow along the hill slopes
characteristic of the Blue Nile basin does not occur. This means that the zero order
reservoir and the saturated areas can be neglected in Volta basin simulations and all
streamflow is base flow from a linear reservoir recharged by the (relatively flat)
hillside. Due to the flat slopes only a portion of the hillside areas contribute to
streamflow. In the remaining area the water that percolates down to root zone is used
by deep rooted vegetation during the dry season.
Precipitation data was derived from the Global Gridded Climatology (GGC)
compiled by the Climatic Research Unit at a resolution of 0.50 lat/long, (New et
al.,1999a, b). The Climatic Research Unit (CRU) (New et al., 1999a, b) also
provided vapor pressure data, wind speed, and temperature, used to calculate PET
using the Penman equation. Both precipitation and PET estimates were made by
overlaying a map of the area on a grid. Each pixel, at 0.5o x 0.5
o per cell (1 cell
11,700 km2), was weighted by that pixel's contribution to the total area, and the
monthly mean was computed by adding the weighted pixels in the total area
(Andreini et al., 2000). To fit the predicted streamflow, two sources of stream
discharge, obtained from WRI of Ghana and L‘Institut de Recherche pour le
Développement (ORSTOM), proved advantageous. Figure 4 shows the location of
each streamflow gage. Table 2 contains the stations that had data of acceptable
accuracy. Station accuracy was assessed by Taylor et al (2006).
In Table 2, best fit parameter values for the water balance are all within reasonable
values from the literature, and are consistent with results from prior work in the
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
147 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
basin. Figure 5 shows the results of monthly predictions of river discharge. The r2
values are 0.66 for WRI data and 0.56 for ORSTOM data. The Smax values for the
Black Volta Basin are 60 mm on average with a standard deviation of 29 mm. For
the White Volta and the Oti, maximum available water contents are 112 mm and 143
mm, respectively, both with a standard deviation of 50 mm. The average available
water content for the Lower Volta proper is 70 mm with the exception of Prang (the
uppermost, wetter subcatchment), which has an available water content of 350 mm.
These values are consistent with the parameters found in Dunne and Leopold (1978)
for moderately deep-rooted crops (between 75 and 200 mm) and for clay in mature
forest (above 350 mm).
The portions of available runoff that actually enter the stream (delivery ratio) for
each month (the α parameter) in the White Volta, the Volta proper, and the Oti, 0.56,
0.48, and 0.48, respectively, are almost identical to the values used by Thornthwaite
and Mather (Thornthwaite and Mather, 1955) for North Carolina, which, in many
regards, has a similar topography as the Volta basin. Values for the Black Volta are
consistently lower. The percent area of the watershed that contributes to runoff is
typical for a semi-arid landscape. Average values for the White Volta, and Oti are
similar and higher than the Black Volta, which also has lower available water
contents on average. As expected, the wetter the basin, the greater the contributing
area.
References
Ahmed A.A., 2003. Sediment Transport and Watershed Management Blue Nile System,
Friend/Nile Project report, Sudan.
Andreini, M., N.C. van de Giesen, A. van Edig, M. Fosu, W. Andah, 2000. Volta Basin
Water Balance; ZEF-Discussion Papers on Development Policy, Number 21.
Bonn, Germany. Center for Development Research.
Brutsaert, W., and Nieber J.L. 1977. Regionalized drought flow hydrographs from a
mature glaciated plateau, Water Resources. Research 13, 637-643.
Collick, A.S., Easton, Z.M., Adgo, E., Awulachew, S.B., Zeleke Gete, and Steenhuis, T
S. 2008. Application of a physically-based water balance model on four
watersheds throughout the upper Nile basin in Ethiopia. In: Eds. W. Abtew and A.
M. Melesse. Proceedings of the 2008 workshop on the Nile Basin hydrology and
ecology under extreme climatic conditions.
Conway D. 1997. A water balance model of the Upper Blue Nile in Ethiopia.
Hydrological Sciences Journal 42(2): 265–286.
Johnson P.A., Curtis P.D. 1994. Water-balance of Blue Nile river basin in Ethiopia.
Journal of Irrigation and Drainage Engineering-ASCE 120(3):
Kebede S, Travi, Y, Alemayehu T, Marc V. 2006. Water balance of Lake Tana and its
sensitivity to fluctuations in rainfall, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia. Journal of
Hydrology 316: 233–247.
Lui, B.M., A.S. Collick, G. Zeleke, E. Adgo, Z.M. Easton, and T.S. Steenhuis. 2008.
Monsoonal rainfall-discharge relationships. Hydrological Processes 22.
McHugh O.V. 2006. Integrated water resources assessment and management in a
drought-prone watershed in the Ethiopian highlands. PhD dissertation,
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
148 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Department of Biological and Environmental Engineering. Cornell University
Ithaca NY.
New, M., M Hulme., and P. Jones (1999a). Representing twentieth century space-time
variability. I: Development of a 1961-1990 mean monthly terrestrial climatology.
Journal of Climate 12:829-856.
New, M., M. Hulme, and P. Jones (1999b). Representing twentieth century space-time
climate variability. II: Development of 1901-1996 monthly grids of terrestrial
surface climate. Journal of Climate 13:2217-2238.
Steenhuis, T.S., Collick, A.S. , Awulachew, S.B., Enyew Adgo, A., Abdassalam A., and
Easton, Z.M. 2008. Modelling Erosion and Sedimentation in the Upper Blue Nile
In: Eds. W. Abtew and A. M. Melesse. Proceedings of the 2008 workshop on the
Nile Basin hydrology and ecology under extreme climatic conditions.
Taylor J.C., van de Giesen N., Steenhuis T.S. 2006. West Africa: Volta discharge data
quality assessment and use. Journal of the American Water Resources Association
42 (4): 1113-1126
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
149 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
1
23
4
5
6
8 1011
12
14
16
18
19
20
22
25
27
29
3133
34
36
37
38
39
41
42
4344
45
49
52
54
55
58
59
60
61
62
64
65
66
68
69
N
Degrees
2.00
Figure 4: Streamflow gages in the Volta Basin
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
150 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 2: Parameter values for various gages in the Volta basin
Gage Name
Smax
(mm)
1/month %
R2
Years of
record
Black Volta 60 0.35 35 0.60 18
Bamboi-W 83 0.33 58 0.66 25
Bamboi -O 83 0.33 58 0.56 30
Tainso (Tain) 84 0.50 11 0.56 13
Bui 39 0.35 58 0.63 35
Kalbuipe (Sur) 83 0.41 20 0.66 22
Dapola 33 0.31 30 0.61 10
Lawra-W 52 0.28 32 0.64 13
Lawra-O 52 0.28 32 0.60 11
Dan (Boug) 90 0.42 21 0.63 15
Diebougou (B) 92 0.40 37 0.67 18
Ouessa 20 0.33 25 0.68 6
Banzo 74 0.44 48 0.70 40
Boromo 20 0.27 30 0.47 10
Tenado 24 0.30 41 0.55 11
Nwokuy 100 0.30 38 0.55 20
Manimenso 33 0.34 20 0.48 8
White Volta 112 0.56 63 0.68 37
Lankatere(Mo) 176 0.75 87 0.77 72
Nawuni-O 66 0.50 60 0.76 19
Nasia (Nasia) 163 0.55 64 0.82 33
Yagaba (Kalp)-O 109 0.61 68 0.77 58
Wiasi-O (Sisili) 86 0.62 43 0.72 23
Ngodi (Naz)-W 71 0.32 55 0.26 20
Oti 143 0.48 68 0.63 40
Ekumdipe (Da) 174 0.50 100 0.73 47
Sabari 167 0.40 80 0.80 31
Saboba 133 0.65 100 0.71 62
Koumangu (K) 200 0.61 100 0.86 90
Mango 161 0.35 94 0.68 42
Porga 101 0.35 47 0.70 23
Arly 27 0.30 16 0.53 6
Arly (Dou) 180 0.70 10 0.00 19
Volta Prop 139 0.48 52 0.55 65
Senchi (37-63) 70 0.33 69 0.72 26
Senchi (51-80) 63 0.55 59 0.37 43
Aframso (Afr) 67 0.37 50 0.53 6
Ahamnasu (A) 73 0.39 38 0.64 89
Podoe 67 0.45 18 0.34 12
Prang (Pru) 351 0.70 100 0.69 153
Rainfall-Discharge Relationships for Monsoonal Climates
151 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 5: Predicted and observed streamflow at Bamboi
R2orstom= 0.56
R2WRI= 0.66
0.00
200.00
400.00
600.00
800.00
1000.00
1200.00
1400.00
1600.00
0 500 1000 1500 2000 2500
Measured (m3/s)
TM
(m
3/s
)
WRI
Orstom
A Water Balance-Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
A Water Balance-Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool
(SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian
Highlands
Eric D. White1, Zachary M. Easton1, Daniel R. Fuka1, Amy S. Collick2, Matthew McCartney3, Seleshi Bekele Awulachew3 and Tammo S. Steenhuis1
1 Dept. of Biological and Environmental Engineering, Cornell University, Ithaca NY, 14853,
USA 2 Dept. of Water Resource Engineering, Bahir Dar University, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
3 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
The Soil Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) is a watershed model widely used to predict
water quantity and quality under varying land use and water use regimes. To determine
the respective amounts of infiltration and surface runoff, SWAT uses the popular Curve
Number (CN). While being appropriate for engineering design in temperate climates, the
CN is less than ideal when used in monsoonal regions where rainfall is concentrated into
distinct time periods. The CN methodology is based on the assumption that Hortonian
flow is the driving force behind surface runoff production, a questionable assumption in
many regions. In monsoonal climates water balance models generally capture the runoff
generation processes and thus the flux water or transport of chemicals and sediments
better than CN-based models. In order to use SWAT in monsoonal climates, the CN
routine to predict runoff was replaced with a simple water balance routine in the code
base. To compare this new water balance-based SWAT (SWAT-WB) to the original CN-
based SWAT (SWAT-CN), several watersheds in the headwaters of the Abay Blue Nile
in Ethiopia were modeled at a daily time step. While long term, daily data is largely
nonexistent for portions of the Abay Blue Nile, data was available for one 1,270 km2
subbasin of the Lake Tana watershed, northeast of Bahir Dar, Ethiopia, which was used
to initialize both versions of SWAT. Prior to any calibration of the model, daily Nash-
Sutcliffe model efficiencies improved from -0.05 to 0.39 for SWAT-CN and SWAT-WB,
respectively. Following calibration of SWAT-WB, daily model efficiency improved to
0.73, indicating that SWAT can accurately model saturation-excess processes without
using the Curve Number technique.
Introduction
Hydrologic models are used primarily to predict water quantity, peak flows, and export of
water quality constituents from a watershed. One common method to determine the
runoff volume in these models is the Natural Resource Conservation Service Curve
Number (CN) technique. This method was initially designed for determining runoff
volume for engineering design purposes, but has since been adapted for use as a tool in
many temporal watershed models, including the USDA‘s Soil and Water Assessment
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
153 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Tool (SWAT). While useful for design purposes, the CN approach has been shown to be
less than ideal when used to model runoff both spatially and temporally (see Garen and
Moore, 2005).
In addition to the general problems the CN has in representing spatial variability of runoff
and differentiating between runoff generating processes, the method was developed by
curve fitting rainfall-runoff data only from the United States and is not necessarily
accurate for all landscapes. To correct for this SWAT was modified and adjusted for
watersheds in the Blue Nile River Basin in Ethiopia, where the CN approach has been
shown to be inaccurate in predicting runoff events.
Under Ethiopian conditions, runoff is mainly generated by saturation excess mechanisms
and runoff from a given amount of rain is less in the beginning of the rainfall season than
at the end (Liu et al. 2008). Although the CN method can be adapted to predict saturation
excess such as this, it inaccurately assumes that similar rainfall patterns produce the same
amount of runoff independent of the time of the year. This is well illustrated in Figure 1,
where we applied the standard CN approach to the Anjeni watershed in the Ethiopian
Highlands that has 16 years of rainfall-runoff data. It is obvious that when we calibrate
the method to the storms at the end of the rainfall season, the storms at the beginning of
the rainy season with less than 500 mm of cumulative precipitation are under-predicted.
Therefore, in order to apply SWAT to Ethiopian conditions, the original CN method has
to be replaced by a more mechanistic approach that uses soil water balances to calculate
when the soil is saturated and consequently produces runoff.
Figure 1: CN predicted runoff for an Ethiopian watershed. Runoff is grouped in ranges
of cumulative rainfall.
Methods
To adjust the SWAT program to account for saturation excess runoff, a new subroutine
was created in the code which circumvented the original CN calculations and used water
balances to calculate saturation. The new, saturation-driven SWAT model results were
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
154 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
then compared to the original CN-based SWAT results for a simulated period from
January, 1996 to December, 2005. The new model was then calibrated using an adjusted
version of SWAT‘s auto-calibration tool.
Original Curve Number Approach
An initial CN is assigned for each specific landuse/soil combination in the watershed, and
these values are read into the SWAT program. SWAT then calculates upper and lower
limits for each CN following a probability function described by the NRCS to account for
varying antecedent moisture conditions (CN-AMC) (USDA-NRCS, 2004). SWAT
determines an appropriate CN for each simulated day by using this CN-AMC distribution
in conjunction with daily soil moisture values determined by the model. This daily CN is
then used to determine a theoretical storage capacity, S, of the watershed for each day the
model is run. The storage is then indirectly used to calculate runoff volume, Q, by means
of the following equations:
25.4
S10
1000CN
1
SIP
IPQ
a
2
a
2
Where S is watershed storage, P is precipitation, and Ia is initial abstraction. All terms
are in mm of water, and by convention Ia is assumed to be equal to 0.2*S.
New Water Balance Approach To replace the CN, a simple soil water balance was calculated for each day of simulation.
The modified model is therefore called SWAT-Water Balance or SWAT-WB for short.
While SWAT‘s soil moisture routine grossly simplifies processes that govern water
movement through porous media (in particular, partly-saturated regions), for a daily
model, the water balance has been shown to be proficient (Guswa et al., 2002). We then
used SWAT‘s soil moisture calculations to determine the amount of storage available for
any given area of the watershed for every day of simulation. This, we called the available
soil storage (mm), τ:
τ= D(ε-θ) eq. 3
Where D is the effective depth of the soil profile (unit-less), ε is the total soil porosity
(mm), and θ is the volumetric soil moisture for each day (mm). The porosity is a constant
value for each soil type, whereas θ varies by the day and is determined in SWAT. The
effective depth is used in the calibration process and represents the portion of the soil
profile in which the moisture content controls the amount of water able to infiltrate in one
day. This available storage is then used to determine what portion of rainfall events can
be held by the soil and what portion will runoff:
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
155 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
τPif τ-P
τPif 0Q eq. 4
Watershed description
The new SWAT-WB was initially tested on a watershed in the Blue Nile River basin in
Ethiopia. The Gumera watershed, located northeast of Bahir Dar, is a 1270 km2, heavily
(~95%) cultivated, watershed in the Lake Tana basin. Elevation of the Gumera watershed
ranges from 1797 to 3708 meters above sea level and predominant soils are generally
characterized as chromic and haplic luvisols (24% and 63%, respectively) (FAO-AGL,
2003).
Daily precipitation and temperature data for a period from 1996 until 2005 were used,
while other historic climate data (relative humidity, wind speed, solar radiation) were
gathered from the United States‘ National Climatic Data Center for the nearest station
(NCDC, 2007).
Figure 2: Soil topographic index for the Gumera basin
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
156 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Results
The Gumera basin was modeled using both the original version of SWAT (SWAT-CN)
and the new CN-free, water-balanced based version (SWAT-WB). In addition to these
comparisons, the SWAT was also run using soil topographic indices (STI) in place of the
traditional soils map required by the model, Figure 2. Previous research has indicated
that STIs can be used to more accurately predict runoff generating areas (when
saturation-excess is the driving force), which led to the decision to adjust the effective
depth, D, based on the STI (see Easton et al., 2008 and Lyon et al., 2004). The STI for
Gumera was then used in both SWAT-CN and SWAT-WB. Prior to any calibration,
SWAT-WB returned drastically improved daily results over both SWAT-CN runs (with
and without STI). Daily Nash-Sutcliffe model efficiencies were negative for both CN-
based runs, indicating that simply taking the mean streamflow would have been a better
predictor than SWAT; whereas SWAT-WB resulted in a daily model efficiency of 0.51.
Upon calibration of hydrologic parameters using SWAT‘s auto-calibration tool, the daily
model efficiency of SWAT-WB was 0.73.
0
5
10
15
20
25
30
Jan-
97
Apr
-97
Jul-9
7
Oct-9
7
Jan-
98
Apr
-98
Jul-9
8
Oct-9
8
Jan-
99
Apr
-99
Jul-9
9
Oct-9
9
Jan-
00
Apr
-00
Jul-0
0
Oct-0
0
Jan-
01
May
-01
Aug
-01
Nov-
01
Feb-0
2
May
-02
Aug
-02
Nov-
02
Feb-0
3
May
-03
Aug
-03
Nov-
03
Str
ea
mfl
ow
(m
m)
0
10
20
30
40
50
60
70
80
90
Pre
cip
itati
on
(m
m)Precipitation
ObservedSimulated
Figure 3: Observed rainfall and streamflow, as well as calibrated streamflow values
modeled with SWAT-WB for the Gumera basin for 1997-2003.
Discussion
SWAT CN and most other watershed models have been developed for temperate climates
where rainfall is generally well distributed throughout the year. Running models
developed in the temperate climate for Ethiopia conditions with a monsoonal climate are
problematic. Temperate models assume that there is a nearly unique relationship between
precipitation amounts or intensity and runoff generated. This is not the case for Ethiopia
as demonstration by the results of Liu et al (2008) where for three watersheds with more
than 16 years of record, the rainfall relationship was far from unique. The first rains after
the dry season all infiltrate and nearly no runoff is generated. As the rainfall season
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
157 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
progresses more and more rainfall becomes runoff. Since the intensity of the rain did not
affect the runoff amounts for a given storm, the runoff mechanism is saturation excess
runoff (Liu et al., 2008).
Water balance models are consistent with saturation excess runoff process because the
runoff is related to the available watershed storage capacity and the amount of
precipitation. The implementation of water balances into runoff calculations in the Blue
Nile basin is not a novel concept and often performs better (as did our results) than more
complicated models in Ethiopia type landscapes (Johnson and Curtis, 1994; Conway,
1997; Ayenew and Gebreegziabher, 2006; and Liu et al., 2008). These water balance
models are typically computed with monthly or yearly values because the models are
generally not capable of separating base- inter- and surface runoff flow. However, to
truly model erosion and sediment transport, large events must be captured by the model
and daily simulations are required to do so. Thus SWAT-WB not only maintains a water
balance but also calculates the interflow and the base flow component and also gives a
reasonable prediction of peak flows. SWAT-WB is therefore more likely to capture
sediment transport than either SWAT-CN or water budget models with monthly time
steps. Note that by choosing to run models on a daily time step, the model performance
always is significantly worse than for monthly or yearly time steps.
SWAT-WB is more in tune with the runoff processes that occur in the Ethiopian
highlands than other models that base their runoff prediction on the NRCS curve number
method. The calculations that serve as a foundation for NRCS curve number technique
assume that the moisture condition in the soil can be determined by taking into account
the five day previous rainfall events. As indicated above, the moisture content in
monsoonal climates is changing during the first 500 mm of effective precipitation, or
approximately 1-2 months. SWAT-WB, on the other hand, determines runoff volume
simply by calculating the available storage in each soil profile. This value is not
dependent only upon the five previous days‘ rainfall (as the CN method is), but instead
allows for progressive saturation as the rainy season continues.
Conclusion
Daily modeling of peak streamflow and surface runoff was improved by replacement of
the CN method with a water balance routine in the SWAT model. In addition to
improving model efficiencies, it is also predicted that the new water-balance-based
SWAT will be a better predictor of the location of runoff-generating areas of a watershed
due to the inclusion of soil topographic indices. By removing the curve number and
calibrating the water balance routine based on STIs, daily Nash-Sutcliffe efficiencies
improved from -0.02 to 0.73, while R2
values increased from 0.27 to 0.74.
These results indicate that SWAT performs better in a saturation-excess controlled
watershed when a water balance routine is used to calculate daily runoff volumes instead
of the traditional Curve Number. Further research will ideally demonstrate that these
adjustments are appropriate for any region where saturation-excess runoff is dominant,
not just the Ethiopian highlands.
A Water Balance Based Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Improved Performance in the Ethiopian Highlands
158 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Acknowledgements
This paper was developed under a STAR Research Assistance Agreement No. FP916984
awarded by the U.S. Environmental Protection Agency. It has not been formally
reviewed by the EPA and EPA may not endorse the opinions expressed in this paper. In
addition, the authors would like to acknowledge the USDA and the CGIAR Challenge
Program as a source of funding for the work presented here.
References
Ayenew, T. and Y. Gebreegziabher. 2006. Application of a spreadsheet hydrological
model for computing long-term water balance of Lake Awassa, Ethiopia.
Hydrological Sciences. 51(3): 418-431.
Conway, D. 1997. A water balance model of the Upper Blue Nile in Ethiopia.
Hydrological Sciences. 42(2): 265-285.
Easton, ZM, DR Fuka, MT Walter, DM Cowan, EM Schneiderman, and TS Steenhuis.
2008. Re-conceptualizing the Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) model to
predict runoff from variable source areas. J. Hydrology. 348(3-4): 279-291.
FAO-AGL. 2003. WRB Map of World Soil Resources. Land and Water Development
Division, Food and Agriculture Organization of the United Nations.
Garen, DC, and DS Moore. 2005. Curve number hydrology in water quality modeling:
Uses, abuses, and future directions. J. American Water Res. Assoc. 41(2): 377-
388.
Guswa, AJ, MA Celia, and I Rodriguez-Iturbe. 2002. Models of soil dynamics in
ecohydrology: A comparative study. Water Resources Research. 38(9): 1166-
1181.
Johnson, P.A. and P.D. Curtis. 1994. Water Balance of Blue Nile River Basin in Ethiopia.
J. of Irrigation and Drainage Eng. 120(3): 573-590.
Liu, BM, ASCollick, G Zeleke, E Adgo, ZM Easton and TS Steenhuis. 2008. Rainfall-
Discharge Relationships for a Monsoonal Climate in the Ethiopian Highlands.
Hydrological Processes 22(7): 1059-1067
Lyon, SW, Walter, MT, Gerard-Marchant, P, Steenhuis, TS 2004. Using a topographic
index to distribute variable source area runoff predicted with the SCS curve-
number equation. Hydrological Processes. 18: 2757–2771.
NCDC. 2007. Global Summary of the Day. National Climatic Data Center‘s NNDC
Climate Data Online. Available at
http://www7.ncdc.noaa.gov/CDO/cdoselect.cmd?datasetabbv=GSOD. Accessed
24 Nov. 2007.
USDA-NRCS. 2004. Part 630: Hydrology. National Engineering Handbook. Available
at: http://policy.nrcs.usda.gov/media/pdf/H_210_630_9.pdf. Accessed 3 January
2008.
Session III: Watershed Modeling
Assessment of Hydrological Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana, Northern Highlands of Ethiopia
CP 19 Project workshop Proceedings
Assessment of Hydrological Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana, Northern Highlands
of Ethiopia
Tigist Y. Tebebu1, Anteneh Z. Abiy1, Assafa Adzo1, Helen E. Dahlke2, Eric D. White2, Amy S. Collick1, Selemyihun Kidnau3, Farzad Dadgari4 and Tammo S. Steenhuis2
1 Integrated Watershed Management and Hydrology Program, Cornell University, Bahir
Dar, Ethiopia 2 Department of Biological and Environmental Engineering, Cornell University, Ithaca, NY
14853, USA 3 Amhara Regional Agricultural Research Institute, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
4 Sustainable Water Harvesting and Institutional Strengthening in Amhara Region, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
Abstract
For the past five decades, gully erosion has been the dominant degradation process in the Ethiopian Highlands. Gully erosion negatively affects soil resources, lowers soil fertility in inter-gully areas, reduces the pastureland available for livestock, and aggravates siltation of reservoirs. Assessing the location and rate of gully development and changes in the controlling factors (climate, soil, hydrology and land cover) of gully erosion will help explain the acceleration in land degradation that is faced. The study was performed in a gully system in the 800 ha Debre-Mewi Watershed south of Bahir Dar, Amhara region, Ethiopia. Analyses comprised monitoring gully development through profile measurements, air photograph interpretations, and semi-structured interview techniques. Gully hydrological processes were investigated based on measurements of gully runoff and water levels in 24 piezometers in the gully contributing area. Upland erosion was also assessed. The Debre-Mewi gully is still an actively eroding gully system. A comparison of the gully area estimated from a 0.5 m resolution QuickBird image with the current gully area, walked with a Garmin GPS, showed that the eroded gully area increased by 30% from 0.51 ha in 2005 to 0.735 ha in 2008. Based on measurements of several gully cross-sections, an approximate gully volume of 7,985 cubic meters (m3) and an average gully erosion rate of 24.8 t ha-1 a-1 could be estimated. Gully erosion rates accelerated since 1991 through the increased degradation of the vegetation cover and clearance of indigenous vegetation on the hillsides, leading to an increase of surface and subsurface runoff from the hillsides to the valley bottoms. Gully heads retreat into the hillslope through concentrated runoff during the rainy season, erodes existing soil pipes and cracks in the vicinity of the gully head and banks. Piping and tunneling facilitate the slumping of the gully wall and their
Assessment of Hydrological Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana, Northern Highlands of Ethiopia
161 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
retreat. The sediment produced from the collapsing walls is exported during heavy storm events. The loss of erosion due to gulley formation is many times that of upland erosion. We find that alteration of the runoff response due to reestablishing the natural vegetation on the hillside and improvement of existing farming practices will be most important to decelerate current erosion rates.
(For details, please refer to the relevant poster included in the folder ‘Posters’ on the CD).
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
CP 19 Project workshop Proceedings
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
Assefa D. Zegeye1, Tigist Y. Tebebu1, Anteneh Z. Abiy1, Helen E. Dahlke2, Eric D. White2,
Amy S. Collick1,2, Selemyihun Kidnau3, Farzad Dadgari3, Matthew McCartney4 and Tammo S. Steenhuis2
1 Integrated Watershed Management and Hydrology Program, Cornell University, Bahir
Dar, Ethiopia 2 Department of Biological and Environmental Engineering, Cornell University, Ithaca, NY
14853, USA 3SWHISA, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia
4 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
Gully formation and upland erosion were studied in the Debre-Mewi Watershed in the Gilgil Abay Basin south of Lake Tana. Gully erosion rates were found to be equivalent to over 500 tonnes/ha/year for the 2008 rainy season when averaged over the contributing watershed. Upland erosion rates were twentyfold less. Gully formation is accelerated when the soils are saturated with water as indicated by water table readings above bottom of the gully. Similarly, upland erosion was accelerated when the fields were close to saturation during the occurrence of a rainfall event. Height of the water table is an important parameter determining the amount of erosion and should, therefore, be included in simulation models.
Introduction
For the past five decades, gully and upland erosion has been the dominant degradation
process in the Ethiopian Highlands. Erosion negatively affects soil resources, lowers soil
fertility and aggravates siltation of reservoirs. While mechanisms for upland erosion are
generally well understood (Haile et al 2006), gully erosion is not. Better understanding
of these gully erosion processes will result in more effective erosion control at less cost.
Therefore, the objective of this study was to better understand erosion processes; in
particular to compare erosion rates from an active gully to those of upland fields. This
comparison will be used to determine the effect of landscape position and field wetness
on erosion rates.
Material and Methods
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
163 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
The study was performed in the 523 ha Debre-Mewi watershed located: between
11o20‘13‖ and 11
o21‘58‖ North and 37
o 24‘07‖ and 37
o 25‘55‖ East, 30 km south of
Lake Tana, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia. The elevation is between 1950 and 2309 m and slope
varies from 6-35%. Average rainfall falling mainly from June to September is 1240 mm.
Land use consists of rainfed agriculture in a mixed farming system with scattered
indigenous tree species, including Cordia sp. The soils are dominated by vertisols.
The historic rate of gully development was assessed through the AGERTIM method
(Assessment of gully erosion rates through interviews and measurements, Nyssen et al.,
2006) and by interpretation of air photos and satellite images. Gully hydrological
processes were investigated by installing a weir to measure runoff. In addition to the
weir, 24 piezometers (ranging in depth up to 6 m) were installed in the gully bottom as
well as the gully‘s contributing area. The runoff and water depths were recorded
manually during several storm events. Throughout the contributing area of the gully, soil
bulk density was estimated and infiltration tests were performed. On July 1 and October
1, 2008, the volume and surface area of the entire gully system were estimated through
measurements of width, depth and length of gully profiles.
Upland erosion was assessed as well. Fifteen representative fields were selected
according to slope positions. The dimension of each rill was carefully measured after
major storms to determine the volume of soil loss (Herweg, 1996; Hagmann, 1996;
Bewket and Sterk, 2003). Soil samples were collected in three typical slope positions in
four locations of each field for determining the moisture content. Additionally, farmers‘
perceptions about soil loss and soil conservation were gathered by interviewing 80 farm
households from the four surrounding villages and by holding focus group discussions
with groups of watershed community members.
Results and Discussion
The Debre-Mewi gully (Figure 1) is an actively eroding gully system with a contributing
area of 17.4 ha. According to farmers‘ interviews, the gully erosion started in 1980,
which corresponds to when the watershed was first settled and the indigenous vegetation
on the hillsides was converted gradually to agricultural land. Erosion rates for the main
stem and two branches are given in Table 1. The increase in main stem erosion rate can
be explained by the recently enlarging and deepening of the gully at the lower end
(Figure 2). In 2005, gully extent was estimated from the 2005 Quick Bird image (0.58 m
resolution). Gully boundaries were determined before the rainy season in 2008 (indicated
as 2007 measurement) and after the rainy season on October 1 (the 2008 measurement)
by walking the gully with Garmin GPS with a 2 m accuracy. These measurements
showed that from 2005 to 2007, the gully system increased from 0.65 ha to 1.0 ha,
respectively, a 43% increase in area. The following year, it increased by 60% to cover
1.43 ha in 2008.
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
164 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 1: Drawing of the Debre-Mewi gully generated by handheld GPS tracking. Active
erosion areas are indicated by triangles. Ephemeral springs are shown as well
Once gully size was determined, the rates of erosion were then calculated by determining
the change in dimension of the different gully segments. The average gully erosion rate
from the period from 1981 to 2008 was equivalent to 31 t ha-1
per year in the contributing
watershed. The gully erosion rate has accelerated significantly in the last few years and in
the 2008 rainy season the erosion rate was 530 t ha-1
(Table 1) which is equivalent to
nearly 4 cm of soil in the contributing watershed. These values are very high for the
region compared to the results from other studies (Daba et al., 2003 and Nyssen et al.,
2006).
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
165 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 2: Actively forming gully at the most downstream end. Just below ―1‖ in Figure 1
The Debre-Mewi gully is very active in a few areas as indicated by the red triangles in
Figure 1. Our measurements with the piezometers show that at these locations the water
table is above the bottom of the gully. An example is given in Figure 3 for the actively
forming gully shown in Figure 2. In figure 3 the distances are measured from the branch
with another river. The depths of the gully (Figure 3a) and the corresponding widths
(Figure 3b) before and after the 2008 rainy season show that the gully is most active at
distances less than 200m from the outlet. The gully advanced backward past the 187 m
mark (figure 3a) and increased up to 20 m in top width (Figure 3b). In this region the
water table was near the surface and approximately 4 m above the gully bottom (Figure
3A). Upstream of the 187 mark the water table is below the gully bottom (Figure 3A) and
the gully is stable as can be seen from Figure 3B since the width is not increasing.
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
166 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 1 Gully erosion losses calculated as uniformly distributed over the watershed
Soil loss
Gully location 1980-2007
t/ha/year
2007-2008
t/ha/year
2007-2008
cm/year
Branches 17.5 128 1.0
Main stem 13.2 402 3.0
Total 30.7 530 4.0
Figure 3: Gully dimensions before and after the 2008 rainy season for the main stem. a)
Depths and average groundwater table; b) change in top and bottom width and depth of
the gully
The average upland erosion of the 15 agricultural fields for each storm is depicted in
Figure 4. These erosion rates are with traditional soil conservation practices in place,
which consist mainly of small, hand dug, 10 cm deep drainage channels, which direct
water to the field‘s edge. Over the whole watershed, 75% of the farmers used the
traditional ditches described above, 61% used soil bunds and 47 % used contour plowing.
0
500
1000
1500
2000
50 159 187 244 272 322 373
Gully length (m)
Gu
lly
ch
an
ge
(cm
)
Change in top width
Change in bottom width
Change in depth
Valley
bottom
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
167 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 4: Average soil loss for the 15 upland agricultural fields in the Debre-Mewi
watershed, the light shaded columns is the cumulative soil loss for the season. The black
boxes are the soil losses for the individual storms; the line with diamonds is the
cumulative precipitation for the rainy season.
The erosion is greatest at the end of June when the soil is loose and dry making it easy to
erode as rills (Bewket and Sterk, 2003). After the initial rain storms, the soils wet up and
plant cover is established; decreasing the rate of erosion. In late August, the rills degrade
giving an apparent negative soil loss. The average cumulative soil loss is 26.6 tons/ha
provided that the average bulk density of all surveyed fields was 1.21g/cm3
and compares
well with the measurement of the nearby erosion plot. By assuming the erosion caused by
raindrop impact is 25% of the actual soil loss, the rate of soil loss is going to be estimated
around 36 tons/ha. The tef plots had the greatest density of rills, which is likely caused
by the repeated cultivation of the field and grinding of the soil by livestock traffic before
sowing.
There was a greater soil loss from the fields at lower elevations than higher up the slope
(Figure 5). The lower fields were either at saturation or close to saturation before the rain
storm occurred; the upper fields were better drained. The erosion mechanisms for the
upland agricultural fields are consistent with the mechanisms for the gully formation,
because the soils near or at saturation have the least amount of adhesion between the soil
particles. And therefore, have the highest erosion rates. For the gullies this results in bank
failure in which the soil loses its stability causing the slumping of the gully walls and the
surrounding soil (Zhu, 2003), while for the upland fields deeper rills form. When the soil
is dry, the soil has no strength either, and high soil losses results. Although not observed
in this study, gully banks erode easily by any disturbance such as grazing animals.
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
168 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 5: Erosion rate in tons /ha over the growing season as a function of slope position;
where DS is down slope, MS is middle slope and US is upper slope. AAD is area actual
damaged due to rill formation in m2/ha.
Comparing the gully and upland erosion rates, we find that in 2008, the soil loss rate of
the upland plots (rill erosion) is approximately 20 times less than that transported due to
gully erosion. While significantly less than gully erosion, rill erosion is still nearly four
times greater than soil loss tolerance and thus cannot be ignored in any planning for
erosion control to save fertility on the field. On the other hand, if reservoir siltation is the
primary impetus for soil conservation, gully erosion should be addressed before upland
erosion.
A final question that needs to be answered is what can be done (based on the information
above) to stop the advance of gully formation. It is obvious that lowering the water table
below the gully bottom would be most effective. This can be accomplished with drainage
lines which, in theory, are practical. Application under Ethiopian conditions, however,
may be cumbersome due the relatively high cost and lack of mechanized equipment. It
should be noted that buffer strips around the gully (which is sometimes advocated by
engineers) do not address the basic problem, which is the fact that groundwater is too
close to the surface. Once gullies are stabilized, buffer strips could be more effective,
however more research needs to be done before such a conclusion can be drawn with
confidence.
Assessment of Hydrological and Landscape Controls on Gully Formation and Upland Erosion near Lake Tana
169 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
References
Bewket W. and Geert Sterk, 2003. Assessment of soil erosion in cultivated fields using a
survey methodology for rills in the Chemoga watershed, Ethiopia. Agriculture,
Ecosystems and Environment 97, 81–93
Hagmann Jurgen, 1996. Mechanical soil conservation with contour ridges: cure for, or
cause of, rill erosion? Land Degradation & Development 7,145-160
Daba, S., Rieger, W., Strauss, P., 2003. Assessment of gully erosion in eastern Ethiopia
using photogrammetric techniques. Catena 50, 273-291.
Haile M, Herweg K.and Stillhardt B., 2006: Sustainable Land Management: A New
Approach to Soil and Water Conservation in Ethiopia by Land resources
Management and Environmental Protection Department. Mekele Ethiopia.
Herweg, K. 1996. Field manual for assessment of current erosion damage. Soil
conservation research programme (SCRP), Ethiopia and Centre for Development
and Environment (CDE), University of Berne, Switzerland
Nyssen, J., Poesen, J., Veyret-Picot, M., Moeyersons, J., Haile , M., Deckers J., Dewit, J.,
Naudts, J., Teka, K., Govers, G., 2006. Assessment of gully erosion rates through
interviews and measurements: a case study from northern Ethiopia. Earth Surface
Processes and Landforms 31, 167-185.
Zhu TX . 2003. Tunnel development over a 12 year period in a Semi-Arid catchment of
the loess plateau, China. Earth Surface Processes and Landforms 28,507-525.
.
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
CP 19 Project workshop Proceedings
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to
Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and
Downstream Users of the Nile River
Yihenew Gebreselassie1, Tadele Amdemariam2, Mitiku Haile3 and Charles Yamoah3
1 Amhara Regional Agricultural Research Institute, Bahir Dar, Ethiopia 2 Burie Technical, Vocational and Education Training College, Burie, Ethiopia
3Mekele University, Mekele, Ethiopia
Abstract
A study was conducted to evaluate the effects of soil bunds stabilized with vetiver grass (V. zizanioides) and tree lucerne (C. palmensis) on selected soil physical and chemical properties, bund height, inter-terrace slope and barley (Hordeum vulgare L.) yield in Absela site, Banja Shikudad District, Awi administrative Zone of the Amhara National Regional State (ANRS) located in the Blue Nile Basin. The experiment had five treatments that included non-conserved land (control), a 9-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne, a 9-year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver grass, a 9-year old sole soil bund, and a 6-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne. Data were analyzed using one-way analysis of variance (ANOVA) and mean values for the treatments were separated using the Duncan Multiple Range Test. Results of the experiment indicated that organic carbon (OC), total nitrogen (N), bulk density, infiltration rate, bund height, and inter-terrace slope are significantly (p≤0.05) affected by soil conservation measures. The non-conserved fields had significantly lower OC, total N, and infiltration rate; whereas higher bulk density as compared to the conserved fields with different conservation measures. However, no significant differences in bulk density were observed among the conservation methods. The field treated with 9-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne or sole soil bund had significantly higher OC content than all other treatments. Fields having 6-year old soil bunds had lower OC and total N when compared to fields having 9-year old soil bunds irrespective of their method of stabilization. Fields with soil bunds stabilized with vetiver grass had the highest bund height and the lowest inter-terrace slope than fields with the remaining conservation measures. Barley grain and straw yields were significantly (P<0.05) greater in both the soil accumulation and loss zones of the conserved fields than the non-conserved (control) ones. In the accumulation zone, fields with the 9-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne and those with the 9-year old sole soil bund gave higher grain yields (1878.5 kg ha-1 and 1712.5 kg ha-1, respectively) than fields having 9-year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver grass (1187 kg ha-1) and 6-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne (1284.25 kg ha-1). When we compare the accumulation and the loss zones, the average grain yield obtained from the accumulation zones (averaged over all the
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
171 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
treatments) was 29.8% higher than the average grain yield obtained from the loss zones. The causes of soil erosion in the region could be the rugged nature of the topography, high and erratic rainfall patterns, extensive deforestation, continuous cultivation and complete removal of crop residues from the field, overgrazing and free-grazing, improper farming practices and development efforts, overpopulation and poverty, socioeconomic problems, lack of awareness on the effect of erosion, and poor land use policy enforcement. From the study it was possible to conclude that soil bunds stabilized with vegetative measures (such as tree lucerne and vetiver) better held the soil in-situ and improve inter-terrace soil physical and chemical properties compared to the non-conserved fields. This suggests that by applying soil conservation measures upstream, the erosion rate will be minimized and the amount of silt entering streams and ultimately the Blue Nile River will be minimized. This, in turn, will significantly improve land productivity in the upstream areas and cut the huge costs of silt cleaning in the dams and irrigation canals of the downstream countries that use the Blue Nile River.
Introduction
Soil degradation can be described as a reduction of resource potential by or on a
combination of processes acting on the land, such as soil erosion by water and wind,
bringing about deterioration of the physical, chemical and biological or economic
properties of soil (Maitima and Olson, 2001). The principal environmental problem in
Ethiopia is land degradation, in the form of soil erosion, gully formation, soil fertility loss
and severe soil moisture stress, which is partly the result of loss in soil depth and organic
matter (Fitsum et al., 1999). The excessive dependence of the Ethiopian rural population
on natural resources, particularly land, as a means of livelihood is a underlying cause for
land and other natural resources degradation (EPA, 1998)
Some forms of land degradation are the result of normal natural processes of physical
shaping of the landscape and high intensity of rainfall. The scale of the problem,
however, dramatically increased due to the increase in deforestation, overgrazing, over-
cultivation, inappropriate farming practices, and increasing human population. Removing
vegetative cover on steep slopes (slopes ranging between 15 and 50 percent) for
agricultural expansion, firewood and other wood requirements as well as for grazing
space has paved the way to massive soil erosion. Forest cover in the Ethiopian highlands
as a whole decreased from 46% to 2.7% of the land area between the 1950‘s and the late
1980‘s. This is compounded by increasing numbers of livestock being forced on to
shrinking pastures (Esheteu et al., 2006). According to Esheteu et al. (2006), although
about 82% of the rural household energy is covered by fuel wood and supplemented by
dung (about 9%) and burning of crop residues (about 8%), the land tenure and tree tenure
have provided little incentive for protection of forests and tree planting.
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
172 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
It is estimated that over 1900 million tons of soil are lost from high lands of Ethiopia
annually (EHRS, 1986). These losses of productive topsoil are irreversible for it takes
many years to generate a ton of topsoil. The Ethiopian highlands, which are the center of
major agricultural and economic activities, have been the victim of soil erosion for many
years. It is concluded that about half of the highland‘s land area (about 27 Million
hectares) is significantly eroded and over one-fourth (14 Million hectares) are seriously
eroded. Moreover, 2 Million ha of land is permanently degraded that the land is no longer
able to support cultivation (EHRS, 1986).
In the Amhara region, the soil loss due to water erosion is estimated to be 58% of the
total soil loss in the country (Tesfahun and Osman, 2003). This has already resulted in a
reduction in agricultural productivity of 2 to 3% per year, taking a considerable area of
arable land out of production. The situation is becoming catastrophic because
increasingly marginal lands are being cultivated, even on very steep slopes (Tesfahun and
Osman, 2003).
To mitigate land degradation problems in Ethiopia, the government has taken different
soil and water conservation measures. Nevertheless, the rate of adoption of the
interventions is considerably low. Space occupied by soil and water conservation (SWC)
structures, impediment to traditional farming activity, water logging problems, weed and
rodent problems, huge maintenance requirement, are some of the reasons that cause
farmers refrain from SWC works. In addition, top down approach in the extension
activity, focusing mainly on structural soil and water conservation technologies, and land
security issues contribute much to the failure of SWC works (Mitiku et al., 2006). The
present study was conducted on one of the few successful SWC structures stabilized with
biological measures to investigate the effects of integrating physical and biological
conservation on some soil physical and chemical properties of the soil and subsequently
on yield of crops and its implication on downstream inhabitants.
Materials and methods
Description of the study Area
The study area is located in Absela Kebele, Banja Shikudad Woreda, Awi Zone of the
Amhara National Regional State (ANRS) between 10o45' N – 10
o48' N latitude and
37o03'- 37
o04'E longitude. The mean annual rainfall of the study area ranges from 1700
mm to 2560 mm, with mean monthly minimum and maximum temperature ranging from
7oC to 12
oC, and 20
oC to 25
oC, respectively. The area has wet-cold locally known as wet
dega agro-climatic zone (RELMA et al., 2005). The study area has an altitude that ranges
between 2220 and 2600 meters above sea level with undulating topography. Its slope
ranges from 15% to 25%. The total area of the catchment that was treated with different
type of soil and water conservation measures is about 126 ha. The length of growing
period of the study area ranges between 240 and 270 days (EMA, 1982). The farming
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
173 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
system of the area is mixed farming, which includes crop such as barley, wheat, teff,
pulse crops, and livestock (mainly sheep and cattle).
Characterization of the SWC structures considered in the study
All soil and water conservation measures in the catchment area were installed for the
purpose of demonstration; to diffuse extension service related to natural resource
conservation to the farming community by the district and zonal agricultural bodies. The
catchment area was delineated and various soil and water conservation activities were
practiced since 1998. Various ages of soil bund stabilized with vegetative measure such
as vetiver grass (V. zizanioides), tree lucerne (C. palmensis), sesbania (Sesbania sesban)
and phalaris grass (Phalaris spp.) are found in the catchment. The catchment area was
kept under close supervision by the woreda agricultural office and two guards were
instantly assigned after the start of the watershed work.
The study site had original slope of 21% (slope percent prior to the construction of the
structures) and 2m vertical interval were used for the spacing of bunds. All the soil bunds
were constructed in such a way that a trench was excavated along a contour at 1%
gradient towards the water way and the soil was thrown down hill.
Experimental design and layout
The experiment contained five treatments, which includes:
1. Control (non-conserved plots)
2. 6 years Soil bund + tree lucerne
3. 9 years Soil bund + tree lucerne
4. 9 years Soil bund + vetiver
5. 9 years Soil bund
Determinations of Soil Physical and Chemical Properties
For each treatment, a composite soil samples were collected from a 10 x 3m sampling
plot using simple random sampling technique from four consecutive inter-terraces space
at the deposition zone.
Soil organic carbon (SOC) was determined following the wet digestion method used by
Walkley and Black (Sahelemedhin and Taye 2000). Organic matter was computed from
organic carbon by multiplying each value of SOC by 1.724. Total Nitrogen was
determined by Kjeldahl method (Sahelemedhin and Taye 2000).
The soil bulk densities were determined from the oven dry (at 110oC for 24 hrs) mass of
soil in the core sampler and volume of the undisturbed soil cores using core sample
method (Landon, 1991) and infiltration rate was measured using double ring
infiltrometer.
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
174 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Results and discussion
1. Effect of Soil Conservation Measures on Soil Chemical and Physical Properties
Organic matter
Results of the experiment indicated that there was highly significant (p≤0.05) difference
in OM content among the treatments. The treatments with 9-year old soil bund stabilized
with tree lucerne and the 9-year old sole soil bund were not statistically different among
each other. However, they have significantly higher organic matter (OM) content than
that of the 9-year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver, the 6-year old soil bund stabilized
with tree lucerne, and the non-conserved treatments. Although the 9-year old soil bund
stabilized with vetiver had statistically lower percent OM than the sole 9-year old soil
bund treatments, it was superior and had significantly (p≤0.05) highest percentage of OM
than the 6-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne, and the non-conserved
treatment (Table 1). This indicates that years of bund establishment play a tremendous
role in OM accumulation.
Table 2 Effect of SWC measures on organic matter content of the soil Treatments Organic matter (%)
Control (Non-conserved land) 1.577d
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 2.470c
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 5.017a
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 3.306b
9-yrs old soil bund 5.478a
CV (%) 14.00
xSE 0.249
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05
The non-conserved plots had the lowest mean value of OM than all other treatments
considered in the study. Relatively the 9-year old soil bund, the 9-year soil bund
stabilized with tree lucerne, the 9-year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver, and the 6-
year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne had 71.20, 68.56, 52.30, and 36.12%,
respectively higher percent OM than the control treatment. The result agrees with the
finding by Million (2003) who found that organic matter content of three terraced sites
with original slopes of 15, 25, and 35 % were higher compared to the corresponding non-
terraced sites of similar slope. A study conducted by Kinati (2006) in the Amhara region,
Enebsie Sar Mider woreda, also showed that the organic matter content of non-conserved
land for a slope range between 10 and 15% were lower (mean = 1.12%) than the terraced
land of corresponding slope class (mean=2.33%).
According to Bot and Benites (2005), organic matter accumulation is often favored at the
bottom of hills for two reasons: one is they are wetter than at mid- or upper slope
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
175 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
positions, and the other is organic matter would be transported to the lowest point in the
landscape through runoff and erosion. The same holds true for terraced land where soils
are actively eroded from the soil loss zone and deposited to the soil accumulation zone,
creating spatial variability in terms of moisture and nutrient availability within the inter-
terrace space.
Total nitrogen
Results of the experiment presented in Table 6 revealed that the mean total N difference
due to treatment effect were significant (p≤0.05). Even though the 9-year old soil bund
stabilized with tree lucerne and the 9-year old soil bund are statistically non-different in
the mean value of total nitrogen, both were significantly (p≤0.05) higher than the 6-year
old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne, the 9-year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver
and the non-conserved treatment. It was clearly seen that the non-conserved plot had the
smallest mean value of total nitrogen (Table 2).
Table 3 Effect of SWC measures on total nitrogen content of the soil
Treatments Total nitrogen (%)
Control (Non-conserved land) 0.125c
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 0.173bc
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 0.277a
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 0.215b
9-yrs old soil bund 0.284a
CV (%) 17.48
xSE 0.0187
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05
Million (2003), also found that the mean total N content of the terraced site with the
original slope of 15, 25, and 35% were higher by 26, 34, and 14%, respectively compared
to the average total N contents of their corresponding non-terraced slope. A simple linear
regression analysis showed a strongly positive relation between total nitrogen and organic
carbon (R2 =0.88)
Bulk density
The one-way analysis of variance revealed the presence of significant difference (p≤0.05
and R2
= 0.75) in mean value of bulk density among the treatments. The non-conserved
treatment was found to exhibit significantly the highest mean value of bulk density than
the remaining treatments. The result also showed non-significant difference in mean
value of bulk density among other treatments, which were managed through a range of
conservation measures irrespective of the establishment year. In this study, the relatively
lower bulk density associated with treatments conserved with various measures (Table 3)
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
176 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
could be attributed to the presence of significantly (p≤0.05) higher content of organic
matter in those treatments.
Table 4 Effect of SWC measures on soil bulk density
Treatments Soil bulk density (g cm-3
)
Control (Non-conserved land) 1.38a
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 1.26b
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 1.29b
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 1.25b
9-yrs old soil bund 1.27b
CV (%) 2.43
xSE 0.015
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05
Infiltration rate
The one-way analysis of variance revealed the presence of statistically significant
difference (p≤0.05, R2 = 0.66) in mean value of infiltration rate among the treatments.
The 9-year old soil bund and 9-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne had the
highest mean value of infiltration rate than the other treatments. The non-conserved
treatment had lowest mean value of infiltration rate (Table 4).
Table 4 The effect of treatments on infiltration rate
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.01.
The organic matter and percentage of clay soil separates in the treatments seemed to play
the crucial role for the variation in mean basic infiltration rates. The organic matter was
positively correlated (p≤0.01; R2 = 0.55) with the infiltration rate and while clay
percentage was negatively correlated (p≤0.01; R2 = 0.52) to the same. Moreover,
infiltration rate negatively correlated with bulk density of the soil. According to the rating
of Landon (1991), the non-conserved, the 6-year soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne
Treatments Infiltration rate (cm hr-1
)
Control (Non-conserved land) 0.24b
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 0.28b
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 0.73a
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 0.82a
9-yrs old soil bund 0.88a
CV (%) 44.80
xSE 0.109
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
177 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
had slow infiltration rate while the 9-year soil bund treatment, the 9-year old soil bund
stabilized with tree lucerne and the 9-year soil bund stabilized with vetiver treatments and
had moderately slow infiltration rate.
Effect of Soil Conservation Measure on Slope Transformation
Results of the experiment indicated that the mean values of inter-terrace slope (Table 5)
for the treatments were found to be significantly different (p≤0.05 and R2
= 0.98). The 9-
year old soil bund stabilized with vetiver had significantly the lowest inter-terrace slope
than all other treatments considered in the study signifying the effectiveness of vetiver
grass in bund stabilization and slope transforming ability when compared to the other
bund stabilization techniques.
Differences in year of bund installation also brought a variation in inter-terrace slope,
which was realized by having a lower inter-terrace slope for the aged bund than the
younger one. Therefore, all 9-year old soil bund treatments (irrespective of bund
stabilization technique) had the lowest mean value of inter-terrace slope percent than the
6-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne. Considering age of bunds and the type
of material used to stabilize them, the 9-year soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne also
had significantly lower inter-terrace slope than the 6-year old soil bund stabilized with
similar method.
The deposition of soil materials and debris on the upper position of soil bund (usually
called accumulation zone) causes the height of the bunds to rise year after year, thereby
reducing the inter-terrace slope between two successive structures.
Similar to inter-terrace slope, the mean value of bund height were also affected by age of
the bunds. The older the bund the higher was its bund height. Thus, the 9-year old soil
bund treatments had higher mean bund height than the 6-year old soil bund. Karl and
Ludi (1999) pointed out that in the course of erosion process that forms the terrace, the
topsoil below the structure would gradually move down a slope and accumulate above
the next SWC structures. This would eventually increase the bund height in gradual
processes. According to Desta et al. (2005), the rate of sediment accumulation by bunds
is correlated with the soil loss by tillage because all the soils displaced by tillage remains
in the accumulation zone.
Table 5 Effect of SWC measures on inter-terrace slope
Treatment Inter-terrace
slope (%) Bund height (cm)
Control (Non-conserved land) 21.00a 0.00
c
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 17.50b 61.50
b
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
178 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05
Effect of the Conservation Measures on Barley Yield
The one-way analysis of variance computed for the various treatments showed that the
grain yields were found to vary significantly (p≤0.05 and R2 = 0.96). The 9-year old soil
bund stabilized with tree lucerne was found to give significantly (p≤0.05) higher mean
value of grain yield than the 9-year old soil bund, 9-year old soil bund stabilized with
vetiver, 6-year old soil bund stabilized with tree lucerne and the non-conserved treatment
(Table 6). Although it was not significant, the 9-year old soil bunds stabilized with tree
lucerne had higher grain yield that the 9-year old soil bund treatment. The non-conserved
treatment had significantly lower mean value of grain yield compared to all other
treatments, which were treated with various kinds of conservation measures. The straw
yield and other yield components also showed similar trend in performance as that of the
grain yield at the deposition zone.
Table 6 Effect of conservation measures on grain and straw yield, and yield components
at the soil deposition zone
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05.
Higher yield associated with the conservation measures could be attributed to the
presence of high level of organic matter and total nitrogen in these treatments. A
regression analysis computed for the grain yield performance with organic matter and
nitrogen had confirmed this fact. Organic carbon and total nitrogen were directly related
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 14.00c 67.50
b
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 10.25e 100.75
a
9-yrs old soil bund 12.75d 68.00
b
CV (%) 3.96 9.11
xSE 0.30 2.78
Treatments
Grain
yield
(kg ha-1
)
Straw
yield (kg
ha-1
)
No. of
Plants
m-2
No. of
Spikes
m-2
No. of
spikelets/
spike
Plant
height
(cm)
Control (Non-conserved land) 561.25d 622.75
c 350
c 404
b 7.0
c 44.50
c
6-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 1284.25c 1233.75
ab 397
ab 431
b 15.75
b 57.75
b
9-yrs old soil bund + tree lucerne 1878.75a 1480.00
a 426
a 478
a 18.25
a 75.75
a
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 1187.50c 957.50
b 396
ab 417
b 16.00
b 69.00
ab
9-yrs old soil bund 1712.50b 1473.50
a 375
bc 435
b 17.25
ab 77.75
a
CV (%) 7.82 16.47 6.55 5.79 7.01 11.5
xSE 51.80 95.01 12.73 12.52 0.52 3.74
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
179 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
(p≤0.01; R 2 = 0.74, and p≤0.01; R
2 = 0.71, respectively) to the grain yield of barley.
Yield obtained from the accumulation zone of the conserved land were significantly
higher than the loss zone. This signifies the presence of fertility gradient within the inter-
terrace space and highest yield in the deposition zone of the conserved treatments seemed
to associate with the level of OM and total nitrogen contained in the same, coupled with
other desirable changes in soil physical and chemical brought by the implemented
conservation measures at the spot (Table 7).
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
180 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 7 Effect of conservation measures on grain and straw yield, and yield components
at the soil loss zone
Means in a column followed by the same letter are not statistically different at p≤0.05.
Causes of Soil Erosion in the ANRS of Ethiopia
Soil erosion is becoming a serious problem in Northwestern Ethiopia where the Blue Nile
starts. The main causes of the problem could be:
a) Natural factors
The area is characterized by rugged and sloppy topography which causes the intensity of
erosion to be very high. Mountains cover 52% of Asia, 36% of North America, 25% of
Europe, 22% of South America, 17% of Australia and 3% of Africa. As a whole, 24% of
the Earth's land mass is mountainous. Nevertheless, of the 3% of African mountains,
Ethiopia takes 60% (Wikipedia, 2006). In Ethiopia, about 44% of the land area (>1500 m
asl) has typical highland characteristics. Contrary to the country‘s average, the highland
part in the Amhara Region is about 70%.
b) High and erratic rainfall pattern.
The western highlands of the Amhara National Regional State receive heavy rainfall that
in some places reaches well above 2000 mm. All the rainfall falls in few months time that
does not usually exceed 4 months. This situation causes excessive land slide and erosion.
c) Extensive deforestation
The natural forest cover in 1962 was 40% of the country‘s total area. Now the forest
cover is only 2.7%. It is estimated that from 150,000-200,000 hectares of forest are
destroyed every year.
d) Continues cultivation and complete removal of crop residues from the field.
Due to the small land holding per household (<1ha in Northwestern Ethiopia), there is a
practice of continues cultivation without replenishing the land with appropriate amount of
input. Moreover, farmers remove the residues for animal feed, plastering of their houses
and fuel energy source.
e) Over and free grazing.
Treatments Grain yield
(kg ha-1
)
Straw yield
(kg ha-1
)
No. of
plants m-2
No. of
spike m-2
No. of
spiklets/
spike
Plant
height
(cm)
Control (Non-conserved land) 561.25c 622.75
c 350
a 404
a 7.00
c 44.5
c
6-yrs old soil bund + tree
lucerne 944.25
b 875.50
b 341
a 373
a 11.50
b 53.0
b
9-yrs old soil bund + tree
lucerne 1199.50
a 1084.75
a 337
a 365
a 14.75
a 64.5
a
9-yrs old soil bund + vetiver 949.25b 907.00
b 338
a 357
a 11.50
b 54.5
b
9-yrs old soil bund 1166.00a 978.25
ab 322
a 338
a 15.50
a 58.5
ab
CV (%) 10.08 9.27 8.84 7.56 11.29 8.08
xSE 48.59 41.41 14.91 13.88 0.68 2.22
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
181 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Ethiopia has the largest livestock population in Africa. This livestock population grazes
in uncontrolled grazing system on mainly communal lands. Eventually, livestock
productivity is one of the lowest in Sub-Saharan Africa. In such situation, neither the land
nor the livestock are benefited.
f) Improper farming practices and development efforts.
Farmers use a 3000 years old farming practices that does not protect the land and.
Moreover, huge amount of lands are washed away by road side drainage canals.
However, there is no accountability for damage made on the land.
g) Over population
The Amhara National Regional State (ANRS) with the area of 157,076.52km2 has a
population of about 19,122,515 and the population density of the land is 121.7 persons
km2. From the total population, 85% is dependent on agriculture and the average land
holding per household is less that a hectare. Unlike most of the world‘s hotspots of
civilization, situated around river deltas and downstream places, centre of economic and
political activities in Ethiopia is peculiarly situated in the mountain system where land
resources are sensitive to degradative agents and where the resources support immense
economic and ecological functions to both upstream and downstream riparian countries.
Compared with the average population pattern of settlement of the world that is 1 out of
10 people lives in mountain areas, in Ethiopia, it is estimated that 9 out of 10 people or
about 90% of the total population live in the highlands (Biru Yitaferu, unpublished data).
h) Socio- economic problems
Ethiopian farmers lack alternative livelihoods except agriculture and have poor socio-
economic conditions. The per capita income of the region is only $92/annum and 30% of
the population lives below poverty line (BoI, 2005).
i) Lack of awareness on the effect of erosion
The farmers lack of awareness on effects of erosion and they do not realize that erosion is
the main cause of yield reduction year after year.
j) Poor land use policy enforcement.
The ANRS has land use policy. Nevertheless, the policy never been properly
implemented. Farmers also do not take accountability for the damage they make on their
lands due to violating land use policies
Conclusions and recommendations
From the results of the experiment it is possible to conclude the following:
1) The experiment confirmed the presence of heavy erosion in the Ethiopian
highlands;
2) It was clearly seen that by implementing integrated soil and water practices, it is
possible to significantly reduce soil erosion;
3) Upstream soil conservation practices can improve land productivity and increase
yield;
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
182 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
4) Upstream soil and water conservation practices can make the rainwater to
infiltrate in to the soil. This eventually will recharge the groundwater, and rivers
and streams will have higher volume of discharges;
5) Upstream soil and water conservation practices will minimize sedimentation of
dams, reservoirs, rivers and destruction of agricultural lands.
From the results of the experiment it is possible to recommend the following: In the
upstream there is a need to take the following measures:
1) Rehabilitate degraded lands through
Improved SWC practices (Integrate physical and biological measures)
Practicing area closure and tree plantation schemes on sloppy lands
Delivering alternative fuel energy sources
2) Improve land productivity and reduce area under cultivation (steep slopes) by using
Improved seed
Integrated nutrient management
Integrated pest management
Improved agronomic and land management practices
3) Practice stall feeding (better feed supply and quick economic return)
4) Reduce pressure on the farm lands by providing alternatives to the rural community
other than agriculture
4) Implement the land use policy
5) Improve awareness of the farmers on effects of erosion
6) Expand education and health services
The downstream countries could financially and technically support the upstream efforts
1) Training and research;
2) Establishment of fertilizer and pesticide factories that will improve land productivity
and enclose mountains from annual crop production;
3) Invest in the agricultural processing, industry and urban sectors to minimize the
pressure on mountain lands.
These joint efforts will minimize erosion rate and the amount of silt entering streams and
ultimately the Blue Nile will be minimized. This in turn will significantly improve land
productivity in the upstream and will cut the huge costs of silt cleaning in the dams and
irrigation canals of the downstream countries using the Blue Nile.
References BoI. 2005. Annual Information book for 2008 E.C (In Amharic). Bureau of Information (BoI), Amhara
National Regional State, Bahir Dar.
Desta, G., 2003. Effectiveness And Sustainability of Soil and Water Conservation Bunds on Cropland in
the Tigray Highlands, Northern Ethiopia, M Sc Thesis, Katholieke University Leuven , Faculteit
Wetenschappen, Eepartment Geografie-GeologieEHRS, 1986
EMA, 1982. The Length of the Growing Period in Ethiopia. PMGSA-MoA-Land Use
Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River
183 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Planning and Regulatory Department/UNDP-FAO Assistance to Land Use Planning Project-
ETH/78/003, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
EPA, 1998. National Action Programme to Combat Desertification, Federal Democratic
Republic of Ethiopia Environmental Protection Authority, Addis Ababa NOVEMBER 1998158
Esheteu Bekele, Ferdu Azerefegne, and Tsedeke Abate 2006. Facilitating the Implementation and
Adoption of Integrated Pest Management (IPM) in Ethiopia. Planning workshop from October
13-15th 2003 at the Melkassa Agricultural Research Center, EARO; Jointly organized by the
Association for Advancement of IPM (ASAI) and the Ethiopian Agricultural Research
Organization (EARO); DCG (Drylands Coordination Group) Proceedings No. 17. 158pp
Fitsum Hagos, John Pender and Nega Gebreselassie,1999. Land Degradation in the Highlands of Tigray
and Strategies for Sustainable Land Management. Livestock Policy Analysis Project;
International Livestock Research Institute, Addis Ababa.
Kinati, C., 2006. The Effect of Integrated Soil and Water Conservation Measures On Soil Physical and
Chemical Properties, A Case For Enebsie Sar Midir Wereda, Ethiopia. A Thesis Paper, Mekelle
University, Mekelle.
Landon , J.R., 1991. Booker Tropical Soil Manual. A Handbook for Soil Survey and Agricultural Land
Evaluation in Tropics and Sub Tropics. Longman Scientific and Technical Publishers, New York,
106-156
Maitima, J.M., J M. Olson , 2001. Guide to field methods for comparative site analysis for the Land Use
Change, Impacts and Dynamics (LUCID) Project Working Paper Series Number: 15. Nairobi,
Kenya: International livestock Research Institute.
Million, A., 2003. Characterization of Indigenous Stone bunding (Kab) and its effect on crop yield and
soil productivity at Mesobit-Gedba, North Showa Zone of Amhara Region. Thesis, Alemaya
University.
Mitiku , H., K. Herweg , B. Stillhardt, , 2006. Sustainable Land Management- A New Approach to Soil
and Water Conservation in Ethiopia. Mekelle, Ethiopia: Land resources Management and
Environmental Protection Department, Mekelle University; Bern, Switzerland: Center for
Development and Environment (CDE), University of Bern and Swiss National Center of
Competence in research (NCCR) North-South. 269p
Nyssen , J., J. Poesen, Mitiku H., J. Moeyersons, J. Deckers .2000. Tillage erosion on slopes with soil
conservation structures in the Ethiopian highlands. Soil &Tillage Research 57: 115-127.
Sahelemedhin Sertus and Taye Bekele 2000. Procedures for soil and Plant analysis. Technical paper no.
74. National Soil Research Center, Ethiopia Agricultural Research Organization, Addis Ababa,
Ethiopia
Tesfahun, F., and Osman A., 2003. Challenge and prospects of Food security in Ethiopia. Proceeding of
the Food Security Conference 2003., UNNCC, Addis Ababa , August 13-15,2003.
Wikipedia, 2006. Mountain. The free encyclopedia.htm, last modified 21:01, 17 October 2006
Session IV: Policy and Institutions
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
CP 19 Project workshop Proceedings
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
Fitsum Hagos1, Amare Haileslassie2 and Seleshi Bekele Awulachew1
1International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
2International Livestock Research Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
Land and water institutions play a vital role in managing and sustaining land and water resources as well as enhancing economic development and poverty alleviation efforts. While a lot has been done in terms of understanding the micro-determinants of farmers’ decisions in land and water conservation, there is little attempt to understand the broad macro-institutional and organizational issues that influence land and water management decisions. The objective of the study was to assess institutional arrangements and challenges for improved land and water management in the Ethiopian part of the Blue Nile Basin (Tana and Beles subbasins). Focus group discussions and key informant interviews were held in Amhara and Benishangul Gumuz regions with important stakeholders such as the bureaus of Agriculture and Rural Development, Water Resources Development, Environmental Protection and Land Use Administration (EPLUA), National Agricultural Research Systems, and important NGOs, operating in the area of land and water management, and selected community members. As the major findings in this study, we outlined major land and water-related institutional arrangements that are currently in place and their design features, in order to identify those institutions related to superior performance. We highlighted major institutional and policy gaps and actions that are required to respond to emerging issues of environmental degradation, upstream/downstream linkages and climate change. Such analysis of institutions and their design features provides useful insights and contributes to the debate on institutional reform for improved land and water management in the Blue Nile Basin, in general. By doing so, it identifies the gaps in institutional arrangements and policies and potential remedies.
Key words: institutions, organizations, policy choices, Blue Nile Basin, Ethiopia
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
186 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Introduction
Problem analysis
Erosion and sedimentation: major problems in the Blue Nile Basin
In this section we describe the most important environmental problems in the sub-basin,
their local and downstream impacts and their possible causes. Soil erosion, nutrient
depletion and deforestation are common environmental problems in the Ethiopian
Highlands, not least in the Blue Nile Basin part of Ethiopia (Hagos, et al. 1999; Desta et
al., 2000; ENTRO 2006).
Four main areas of high sheet erosion are found in the Abay basin (Hydosult et al,
2006b). The steep slopes around Mount Choke in East and West Gojam stand out as
significant areas with a high sheet erosion hazards. This is an area characterized by high
rainfall intensity causing severe soil erosion. The second widespread area of high erosion
hazards occurs North and East of the Abay River in the Lake Tana sub-Basin. This area
includes the steep cultivated slopes around Mounts Guna (South Gonder) and Molle
(South Wello). A third more restricted area is found in the upper Jema sub-basin in South
Wello on the high hills North and West of Debre Birhan. A fourth area is found South of
the Abay and encompasses the upper and middle steep and cultivated slopes of the
Middle Abay Gorge Sub-basin in East Wellega. Two subsidiary areas with a high erosion
hazards can be seen in the Upper Didessa Valley and along the escarpment hills to the
West of Lake Tana in the upper Dinder and Beles valleys (ENTRO, 2006).
Awulachew et al., (2008) and ENTRO (2006) documented the scale of erosion and
sedimentation in the Blue Nile Basin (BNB). Accordingly, the total soil eroded within the
landscape in the Abay Basin is estimated to be 302.8 million Mg per annum and that
from cultivated land is estimated to be 101.8 million Mg Yr-1
. Thus about 66% of soil
being eroded is from non-cultivated land, i.e. mainly from communal grazing and
settlement areas. Those authors also provide disaggregated figures for scale of erosion in
the three regions of Ethiopian Blue Nile Basin. Accordingly, the area of cropland subject
to "unsustainable" (i.e. loss exceeds soil formation or 12.5 Mg ha-1
Yr-1
are 968,900 ha,
104,000 ha and 956,900 ha in the Amhara, Beni-Shanugul Gumuz (BSG) and Oromiya
regions respectively. Thus, some 2.03 million ha of cultivated land have unsustainable
soil loss rates.
Of the total 302.8 million Mg of soil eroded a significant proportion is re-distributed
within the landscape, the remainder reaching streams and rivers. At the Basin level the
estimated Sediment Delivery Ratio (SDR) indicates that approximately 55 % of sediment
remains in the landscape and does not reach the river system (Awulachew et al., 2008;
Haileslassie et al., 2006). This estimate is much lower than the 90% estimated by the
Ethiopian Highlands Reclamation Study (EHRS) but closer to the estimate by Hurni
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
187 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
(1988). The rest gets its way into the streams and ends up in reservoirs and irrigation
channels in the downstream regions of the basin.
In 1990, accelerated soil erosion caused a progressive annual loss in grain production
estimated at about 40,000 tones, which unless arrested, will reach about 170,000 tones by
2010. Livestock play a number of vital roles in the rural and national economy but
according to one estimate some 2 million hectares of pasture land will have been
destroyed by soil erosion between 1985 and 1995. Declining use of fallow, limited
recycling of organic and limited application of inorganic soil nutrient sources,
compounded with the high level of erosion, have also exacerbated the problem of nutrient
depletion of the major soils in the sub basin affecting crop productivity (e.g. Haileslassie
et al., 2005).
In economic terms, soil erosion in 1990 was estimated to have cost (in 1985 prices)
nearly Ethiopian currency (ETB) 40 million in lost agricultural production (i.e. crop and
livestock) while the cost of burning dung and crop residues as fuel was nearly ETB 650
million. Thus in 1990 approximately 17% of the potential agricultural GDP was lost
because of soil degradation. The permanent loss in value of the country's soil resources
caused by soil erosion in 1990 was estimated to be ETB 59 million. This is the amount by
which the country's soil stock should be depreciated in the national accounts or which
should be deducted (as capital depreciation) from the country's Net National Income
(NNI (Sutcliffe, 1993; Bojo and Cassells, 1995).
Deforestation is also going unabated because of growing demands from construction, fuel
wood and farm land. In many areas of Ethiopian highland, the present consumption of
wood is in excess of sustainable growth. This implies the degree of mining of the natural
vegetation and impacts on water resources (i.e. through runoff and erosion). Estimates of
deforestation, which is mainly for expansion of rainfed agriculture, vary from 80,000 to
200,000 hectares per annum (EPA, 1997). Although there are no specific estimates for
the sub-basin, the Ethiopian Forestry Action Program (EFAP) estimated the full value of
forest depletion in 1990 to have been about ETB 138 million or some 25% of the
potential forestry GDP of ETB 544 million (EFAP, 1993).
Soil erosion, agricultural run-off and domestic and industrial effluents cause serious
negative externalities in downstream environments. In fact, although estimates of costs
are missing, there are reported signs of increasing pollution and pollutants load on water
bodies and reservoirs in the sub-basin and beyond. MoWR (2007) reported that increased
nutrient loads (from sewage, pit latrines and fertilizers) are contributing to increased
pollution, affecting eco-system health in the sub-basin. The social costs include loss of
life and agricultural production due to pollution and eutrophication of fresh water
resources, sedimentation of water reservoirs, siltation of irrigation channel, (Ekborn,
2007). This underlines the far reaching consequences of environmental degradation on
ecosystem health, land and water productivity. Understanding these consequences and
their possible causes are important research questions that need to be pursued for
improved management of land and water.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
188 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
As presented above the lists of proximate causes of land degradation are apparent and
generally agreed and there are other underlining causes behind these causes.
Understanding the underlining causes have greater use for policy making. Factors
underlying these direct causes include population pressure, poverty, high costs of and
limited access to agricultural inputs and credit, fragmented land holdings and insecure
land tenure, and farmers‘ lack of information about appropriate alternative technologies
(Hagos, et al. 1999; Desta et al., 2000). Many of these factors are affected by government
policies on infrastructure and market development, input and credit supplies, land tenure,
agricultural research and extension, conservation programs, land use regulation, local
governance and collective action, and non-governmental programs (Hagos, et al. 1999;
Desta et al., 2000). And a lot has been done in terms of understanding the specific roles
of the set of factors in different contexts in Ethiopia and elsewhere (Gebremedhin and
Swinton, 2003; Gebremedhin et al., 2003; Hagos and Holden, 2006; for a review see
Yesuf and Pender, 2005). However, there is a little attempt to understand the broad
macro, institutional and organizational issues that influence land and water management
decisions, which is the focus of this paper.
Research rational and objectives
Land and water institutions play a vital role in managing and sustaining resources as well
as in economic development and poverty alleviation (Ananda et al., 2006; Hannam,
2003). The institutional issues that the Ethiopian land and water sector is grappling with
can be classified into three main areas: ecological destruction due to high level of
environmental (mainly land) degradation; poor performance of rainfed agriculture, low
level of water resources development, and transition from a soil conservation focus to an
integrated land and water management system that takes the hydrological boundaries into
account. A lot of concerted efforts are going on to reduce land degradation, improve the
productivity of rainfed agriculture and to develop the water resources of the country in
integrated manner.
On the research side, there is little attempt to understand the broad macro, institutional
and organizational issues that influence land and water management decisions and
addresses the understandings of upstream and downstream linkages. There is inadequate
understanding of the policy and institutional failures that shape and structure farmer
incentives and investment decisions (Shiferaw et al., 2007). There is no doubt that the
creation of an enabling environment for farmers and agencies to adopt management
practices that reduce water and land degradation and improve food security is crucial
(Hannam, 2003). This is particularly important in view of mitigating impacts of upstream
water resources development on downstream stakeholders dependent on the Blue Nile
Basin.
For example in response to increasing demand for food and contrastingly dwindling
agricultural production, the Ethiopian government is considering Tana-Beles Sub-Basin
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
189 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
as the development corridor and thus embarked on development of irrigation and
hydropower development projects in the Tana and Beles Sub Basins. This requires
designing institutions that can provide legal and policy framework to define: activities
that are prohibited or allowed in a certain areas, the incentive structures and policy
instruments to enable action, and responsible body to enforce the provisions and careful
choice of policy instruments. Designing institutional mechanisms to sustainably manage
the land and water resources of the country has been an important legal and political
concern in Ethiopia. Lately, the government of Ethiopia has come up with various
measures to enable sustainable land and water management. But little has been done in
understanding the design of the institutional arrangements and choice of policy
instruments. Such analysis of institutions and their design features provides useful
insights, contributing to institutional reform debate in land and water management in the
study sub basin. The overall objective of the study is, therefore, to carryout assessment
and gap analysis of institutional arrangements for improved land and water management
in the highlands the Blue Nile Basin (taking Tana and Beles Sub-Basin of Ethiopia as an
example). The specific research questions include:
What are current and envisaged changes in policies and institutional
arrangements for improved land and water management in regions within the
Ethiopian Abay Blue Nile?
What are the design features of the existing/envisaged institutional changes?
Whether the current level policy, institution and processes effectively respond
to the emerging issues (e.g. land degradation, water shortage, climate change
and variability, upstream downstream relations, etc.).
Following problem analysis, in this introductory part, the second chapter outlines the
approach taken to identify and evaluate the features of the institutional framework and
institutional design criteria that can used to evaluate land and water related institutions in
Tana Beles Sub-basin. It also briefly discusses the study site and data sources. In the
result sections it highlights existing formal and informal institutional arrangements and
their design features. Based on the analysis presented in section four, the study draws key
conclusions and policy recommendations.
Study Methodology
The study site
The focus of this study is the Tana Beles Sub-Basin in North western Ethiopia. The Tana
and Beles Sub-basins are important Sub-basins of Blue Nile (also called Abay) River
Basin and are located in the Amhara and Benshangul Gumuz Regional States. The Tana
Sub-basin is fully located in the Amhara National Regional State and covers parts of the
West Gojam, North Gondar and South Gondar Zones. The Beles Sub-basin, on the other
hand falls within the two regional states and drains the Agew Awi Zone1 of the Amhara
and Metekel zone of the Benshangul Gumuz National Regional States. The total area of
1 Zone is the second administrative unit in a region
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
190 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
the Tana and Beles Sub-Basins is about 30,000 km2. Lake Tana, the largest fresh water
lake in Ethiopia, covers an area of 3,042 km2. It is at the heart of the Tana Sub-Basin
whereas the Beles River that drains the Beles Sub-Basin is the largest right bank tributary
of the Blue Nile and joins the main stream just before the Ethio-Sudanese Border (Figure
1).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
191 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Figure 1: Location map of Tana and Beles subbasins
Analytical framework
Overall approach
In this study, we analyzed institutional setups for sustainable land and water management
at national, regional and sub-basin and local scales. Formal institutions in Ethiopia are
structured at federal and regional levels and informal institutions are locally instituted.
The informal institutions lack linkages with the formal institutions and among themselves
affecting information flow and their effective involvement in land and water
management. The regional states adopt federal land and water institutions, as they are, or,
as in some case, develop region specific institutions based on the general provisions
given by the federal policies and institutions (e.g. Rural Land Administration and Use).
Therefore, in this paper we focused more on the assessment of federal land and water
management institutions and policies as they apply to regional, sub-basin and local
scales. Moreover, we shaded light on the synergy between informal and formal
institutions and the challenges they face in executing their responsibilities.
Institutional designing criteria
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
192 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Following the frameworks developed by Ananda et al. (2006); Hannam (2003) and
Bandaragoda (2000), we identified the following criteria to evaluate the design features
of land and water related institutions in Tana and Beles Sub-Basins. If institutions are to
succeed in their function, they are expected to have and develop clear institutional
objectives by taking various constraints they face in to account. The question of whether
institutions have clear institutional objectives and how they develop them is a pertinent
question to assess institutional design features. In a given socio-economic context, both
formal and informal institutions have bearings on shaping behavior of actors. How formal
and informal institutions influence each other is another important issue we address here
to assess performance of land and water institutions. Institutions will perform better if
they institutionalize adaptive management given the persistent changes in the bio-
physical and socio-economic environments. In this case exploring the forms of adaptive
management institutions utilize, whether it involves evolutionary – trail and error
approach; passive – lessons from the past used to develop best single policy, or active –
learning focused and participatory and uses policy and its implementation as tools for
learning, is critical. Key here is to assess how institutions maximize the level and
effectiveness of institutional learning, without compromising institutional stability.
Finally, translating these objectives requires due process of implementation and
enforcement. The institutions‘ enforcement capacity is hence critical. Besides what are
the typical forms of enforcement: self-enforcement vs. third-party enforcement? These
criteria and the key questions summarized, in Table 1, are used to evaluate key land and
water institutions in the study site.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
193 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 1: Institutional design criteria
Data capturing mechanisms
This study was done as part of the research project on ―Improved water and land
management in the Ethiopian highlands and its impact on downstream stakeholders
dependent on the Blue Nile‖ financed by the Challenge Program for Water and Food.
This study falls under the policy and institutions component of the project. This
component of this project was developed in recognition of the fact that every intervention
is implemented in a unique context where not only physical factors, but also institutions
and policies, will influence its impact. To develop successful interventions it is, therefore,
important to understand the context in which these interventions are to be implemented.
A combination of different approaches was used to gather data for the study. These
included:
No. Institutional design
criteria
Key issues\questions
1. Clear institutional
objectives
What are the key objectives from among the many
objectives?
What are the key constraints in meeting these objectives?
Is there a transparent process of adjusting institutional
objectives?
2. Interconnectedness
with other formal and
informal institutions
What is relationship between formal and informal
institutions and the influence of each on institutional
performance?
Are informal institutions constraints to formal
institutions?
Are there cases where informal institutions substitute
formal institutions?
3. Adaptiveness What is the adaptive capacity of institutions to changes
in technology, private and political tests and
preferences?
What are the common forms of adaptive management?
4. Appropriateness of
scale
Spatial scale?
Boundaries of natural resource institutions.
Establishment of local groups using social boundaries
Administrative scale?
Who is responsible for its implementation?
5 Compliance capacity
Dealing with incompleteness in costs
Dealing with violations of norms, laws and polices?
What are the typical forms of enforcement?
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
194 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Literature review based inventory of local and regional policies, formal laws and
regulations, informal rules and practices, and formal and informal organizations;
Stakeholder analysis of the knowledge of policy, interests related to the policy,
position for or against a policy, linkages between key stakeholders, etc. Focus
group discussions and key informant interviews were held in Amhara and
Benishangul Gumuz Regions with important stakeholders such as the Bureaus of
Agriculture and Rural Development, Water Resources Development,
Environmental Protection and Land Use Administration (EPLUA), National
Agricultural Research Systems in both regions, and important NGOs working in
the two regions in the area of land and water management.
Institutional analysis – a closer look into the roles and responsibilities of the
various stakeholders, their interactions and lack thereof, policy frameworks and
gaps to understand the institutional setting in the Ethiopian Blue Nile Basin.
Institutional analysis was done based on a defined institutional framework to
identify key design features and evaluate the performance of these features. The
data collected from diverse sources was compiled and analyzed to prepare this
report.
Results
Land and water related institutional arrangements
‗Institutions‘ in this study is defined broadly to include not only formal organizations, but
also informal organizations, laws, customs and social practices that influence people‘s
behavior in a society or economy. Organizations can be defined as ―structures of
recognized and accepted roles‖ (Merry 1993; cited in Bandaragoda 2000). Organizations
are groups of individuals with defined roles and bound by some common purpose and
some rules and procedures to achieve set objectives (Bandaragoda 2000). The
institutional framework for water resources management in a river basin context consists
of established rules, norms, practices and organizations that provide a structure to human
actions related to water management (Bandaragoda 2000). Saleth and Dinar
(1999a; 1999b) classified water management institutions into three main components:
water polices, water laws and water administration. In this section, we describe the
exiting institutional arrangements and assess the appropriateness of the arrangement in
meeting the following issues.
Whether the key stakeholders have clearly defined objectives to explore the value
and usefulness of the existing institutional framework as accepted by the
stakeholders.
What does cohesiveness and the functioning of the various elements of the
existing institutional framework look like?
Whether there are scopes for integrated natural resources management in the sub-
basin?
What are the needs for institutional reform in the land and water sectors?
What are the important policies, strategies and guidelines in relation to land and
water management?
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
195 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
In Ethiopia land and water related organizational arrangement are broadly categorized
into three different tiers: basin /sub-basin level organizations, federal (national) level and
regional (state) and local level organizations. Critical issues here are: do these
organizations have clear mandates; how are they related to each other; and what need to
be improved in terms of organizational arrangements for better performance and what are
the most important policy instruments developed to accomplish their roles and
responsibilities. But first on organizational arrangements
National level land and water related organizations
The roles and responsibilities for land and water management at the federal level are
promulgated through the definition of powers and duties of the executive organs
(proclamation No.471/2005). Accordingly, the organizations/ministries that currently
exist at the federal level and are directly involved in the development and management of
land and water resources include: Ministry of Water Resources; Ministry of Agriculture
and Rural Development; Environmental Protection Authority, and other affiliated
authorities and agencies. A brief description of their roles and responsibilities is given
below.
Ministry of Water Resources
The Ministry of Water Resources (MoWR) in Ethiopia, established in 1995, has the
following powers and duties as spelt out in proclamation No.471 /2005 (FDRE, 2005a).
These include inter alia inventory of the country‘s surface water and groundwater
resources; basin level water management and benefit sharing; develop water
infrastructure; issue permits and regulate the construction and operation of water works;
and administer dams and hydraulic structures.
Ministry of Agriculture and Rural Development (MoARD)
The MoARD, established in 2001, is responsible for initiating agricultural and rural
development policies; food security strategies and extension programs, and ensuring
conducive environment for development, supporting regions in expanding agricultural
and rural development as well as monitoring the food security program. According to
proclamation No.471/2005, the MoARD‘s powers and duties include: to develop and
implement a strategy for food security, rural development, and natural resources
protection; support development of local (through expansion of cooperatives and the
provision of credit facilities) and export markets; development of rural infrastructure and
promotion of improved rural technologies and disaster prevention and agricultural
research. So far, overarching strategies such as the Agriculture Development Led
Industrialization (ADLI) strategy, the rural development strategy, commercialization of
the smallholder agriculture, etc., were developed at the federal government level, through
the MoARD.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
196 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Environmental Protection Authority (EPA)
The EPA is the government regulatory authority responsible for environmental
protection. EPA aims ―to formulate policies, strategies, laws and standards, which foster
social and economic development in a manner that enhance the welfare of humans and
the safety of the environment, and to spearhead in ensuring the effectiveness of the
process of their implementation‖ (FDRE, 2002, p. 2). This is envisaged to be achieved
through: development of enabling policy and regulatory frameworks; preparation and
implementation of proactive environmental management systems; enforcement and
compliance mechanisms and community empowerment; improving education and
awareness and availing information and fostering participation in decision taking; and
identification and availing of environmentally sound technologies and best practices and
resource mobilization and channeling. The government has further defined the
institutional frameworks, responsibilities and mandates for the implementation of the
environmental policy (FDRE, 2002).
Regional level organizations
Regional bureaus, in Ethiopia, have been established with similar designations and
responsibilities as the federal ministries described above. The most relevant state level
bureaus in relation to land and water management include bureaus of water resources
Development, Agriculture and Rural development (BoARD), and Environmental
Protection and Land Administration and Land Use Authority (EPLAUA). We briefly
describe the roles and responsibilities of the regional bureaus.
Regional Bureaus of Water Resources development
The major regional water sector offices have the responsibility to manage resources on
behalf of MoWR. They are also mandated to administer resources under their
geographical jurisdiction, i.e. non-transboundary and non-trans-regional water bodies. In
Amhara and BNG the water bureau is made accountable to the regional president and
administration council2 (CANRS, 2004; BGRS, 2006). In BNG regional state it is called
bureau of water, mines and energy bureau with wider mandates responsibilities. Their
roles and responsibilities, in relation to land and water management, include: develop
region-wide polices, strategic plans, directives, standards and manuals concerning the
management of water resources in line with the federal water policies and laws; issue
permits in relation to WRD; develop the water resources of the region; help solve water
related conflicts; devise a system of integrated water resources management; maintain the
health of water bodies from pollution, support the development of water institutions, etc.
2 There is still the view that the role of regional bureaus is not well-defined (NBI, 2006, p. 16).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
197 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Bureau of Agriculture and Rural Development
Similar to the federal ministry, the regional bureaus are established, their roles and
responsibilities defined by law (CANRS, 2006a; BGRS, 2006). Accordingly, their roles
and responsibilities, in relation to land and water management include: develop laws on
the conservation and utilization of forest and wildlife resources; coordinate food security
programs; provide agricultural extension services; provide support for the expansion of
water harvesting and irrigation development activities; promote market-led agriculture
development and create efficient agricultural input and product marketing systems, etc.
(including through organization of cooperatives). Unlike the federal ministry,
conservation of soil and water resources is not mentioned as one of the prime
responsibilities of the bureau.
Environmental Protection and Land Administration and Land Use Authority
(EPLAUA)
EPLAUA is the regional equivalent of the federal EPA. The major roles and
responsibilities of EPLAUA include: ensure interventions are carried out in a manner that
will protect the welfare of human beings as well as sustainably protect, develop and
utilize the resources; create conducive atmosphere by which the management,
administration, use of rural land of the region could be appropriately decided pursuant to
federal and regions policies (BGRS, 2006; CANRS, 2006a). To this end, EPLAUA in
Amhara3 has developed regional environmental regulations and strategies based on
federal environmental policy; environmental impact assessment (EIA) procedures to
support development projects; issued directives to implement the rural land
administration and land use; and issues environmental clearance to development projects.
Furthermore, EPLUA coordinates environmental protection efforts of NGOs and
community organizations besides developing strategies, polices to protect and conserve
natural resources of the region and to be executed by implementation offices; (e.g.
developed guidelines for soil and water conservation in 2007 (see EPLAUA, 2007)
Non-governmental organizations (NGOs)
Although there are many NGOs operating in both regions, Water Aid in BNG and
Sustainable Water Harvesting and Institutional Strengthening in Amhara (SWISHA) are
the two active actors working in the water sector, particularly in developing the water
related institutions.
SWHISA is a CIDA supported six-year project co-managed by Amhara National
Regional State (ANRS) and to support training programs, pilot and demonstration
projects related to rain water harvesting for irrigated agriculture production. The project
3 In BNG, EPLAUA is in the process of developing environmental regulations and other policy instruments.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
198 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
strives to strengthen water related capacity of regional institutions and farmer
associations to develop and promote sustainable water harvesting and the use of water for
irrigation. So far SWHISA has been involved in the development of byelaws for
irrigation cooperatives (Personal correspondence). Likewise, Water Aid, although
primarily engaged in provision of domestic water, has help the regional government in
developing guidelines in organizing water users associations and tariff setting for
sustainable operations and maintenance of water points.
Basin or sub-basin level organizations
In Ethiopia, there is no basin authority responsible for the Blue Nile4. The national Water
Policy (MoWR, 1999; p.13) calls for the establishment of basin-level institutions with the
aim ―to ensure efficient, successful and sustainable joint management of the water
resources of the basins through concerted efforts of the relevant stakeholders‖. The
establishment of river basin organizations (RBO‘s) is envisaged to happen phase by
phase. Their establishment is considered one of the main instruments to implement
integrated water resources management through river basin plans and effective joint
management by relevant stakeholders.
Hitherto, a proclamation for the establishment of River Basin Councils and Authorities
has been issued (FDRE, 2007). This proclamation stipulates the establishment of River
Basin High Councils and Authorities through regulations to be issued by the Council of
Ministers (Art. 3(1)). When it is deemed necessary, the proclamation stipulates, two or
more river basins may be put under the jurisdiction of a single Basin High Council and
Authority.
There is an on-going effort to establish a river basin authority for the Abay, which is the
major sub-basin of the Nile. An institutional study already undertaken pointed out the
need for: (1) networking between water related actors, (2) coordination of their water
related activities, plans and projects, (3) a sound knowledge of water resources, water
uses and of their interactions and (4) a power to administer water resources in the basin
(Gizaw, 2004). The legal basis for establishing the river basin authority is pending the
enactment of establishment regulation to be issued by the council of ministers.
Watershed level organizations
There is no formal land and water related organizations that operate at the watershed
level in Ethiopia. In some watersheds there is informal (ad-hoc) watershed development
committees established as part of integrated watershed development projects, mostly by
NGOs. But the life and functions of such project-related institutions are dependent on the
specific project objectives and are likely to vanish with phasing out of the project.
4 There is one functioning river basin authority in Ethiopia for the Awash basin whose major responsibility
is the distribution of irrigation water and collection of tariffs.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
199 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Local level organizations
At the Woreda (district level), Water Desks are responsible for planning, budgeting,
implementing and monitoring and follow up of water projects and programs. These local
water desks report to a Woreda level government administrative body called the desk for
rural development, not directly to the regional water bureaus. The rural development
government body, in turn, reports to the Woreda Council, the locally based highest
authority. Urban Water Supply Utilities have traditionally been accountable to the
regional water resource development Bureaus.
Water user associations (WUAs) and irrigation cooperatives (ICs) are the most common
local institutions engaged in water management at the level of the landscape or
hydrological units. WUAs could be defined as social units commonly organized by
communities themselves for their own benefits of fair water distribution, improved water
delivery and accounting. They are headed by a respected personality from within, leading
the effective functioning of the irrigation operation services. The role of WUA is
commonly restricted to the distribution of water among members, rehabilitation and
maintenance of canals and address water related conflicts. WUA are sometimes
threatened by parallel established government-supported ICs, which have broader
operational scopes (besides water distribution and operation and maintenance also
providing marketing, credit and extension services) and have stronger links with
government institutions.
The Amhara National Regional State Cooperative Societies Establishment Proclamation
(Zikre Hig No., 134, 2006) provides a comprehensive legislation by which cooperative
societies are organized and managed. The region has developed an irrigation cooperatives
organization guideline 2/2001 (CPB, 2001). The Cooperative Promotion Bureau is
responsible to organize, register and train; give other technical supports to cooperative
associations (CPB, 2001; p. 4). The document calls for establishment of ICs in traditional
and modern schemes, which is tantamount to a call for transforming traditional WUAs,
which do not have formal legal status, to ICs. This is a risky venture given the multiple
functions of ICs and poor performance of ICs so far in irrigation water management. This
happens in the backdrop of the successful performance of traditional WUAs, despite
having limited tasks, in distribution of water among members, rehabilitation and
maintenance of irrigation infrastructure and addressing water related conflicts. A better
option could be to facilitate the legalization of WUAs so that they could access the
formal saving and credit markets.
There are also Water and Sanitation (WATSAN) Committees responsible for the
management of drinking water points, operational and maintenance of water points, and
provides sanitation training to members. Those are formed for the proper organization
and management of drinking water supplies. The members often received training and
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
200 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
users‘ fees are usually collected to finance the maintenance and repair of public water
supply schemes. For example in Farta Woreda (Gumera watershed) about 270 WATSAN
has been trained.
The land administration committees (LACs) have been formed and trained in all Kebeles
in order to assist the EPLAUA with the land registration process. During the discussions
held with key informants in the Koga and Gumera watersheds number of other local
institutions have been identified. Those includes: Churches, Edir, Ekub, and Debo.
Despite the fact that those institutions are deeply anchored to the local tradition, most of
them have weak linkage to the formal land and water management institutions and
activities in the sub basins. Neither have they recorded bylaws. Exceptionally Ethiopian
churches are involved in forest conservation. From our observation during field visits we
realized that forest in churches seemed to be the remnant pieces of the past forest
ecosystems and thus the preserved ones can be read as a blueprint for the lost ecosystems.
They can also serve as springboard to restore the forest ecosystem in the extent one may
require.
Land and water related policies and guidelines
Various policies and laws have been lately promulgated by the government of Ethiopia
with the intention of improving land and water management. These belong to the class of
formal institutions promulgated at the federal and regional levels. We intend to describe
the key intents and features of these polices and laws in this sub-section. In doing so the
critical questions raised include:
What are the policies and legal instruments in place to tackle environmental
problems?
Do land and water relate policies and laws have clear objectives? If so, are these
objectives reflected in a clear and unambiguous manner?
What are the main features of the policies and laws, particularly in addressing
downstream and upstream linkages and their scope for integrated natural
resources management in the sub-basin? In other words, does the exiting policy
setting create enabling environment for integrated water resource management
(IWRM)?
Are there policy gaps or in legislative framework that affect effective
organizational performance? This question address the issue of compatibility
between exiting laws, customs, policies and organizational arrangements; Where
do informal rules overrule formal rules (dysfunctionality) and rules in use due to
lack of proper enforcement or due to disregard towards the spirit of the written
laws?
What do the enforcement mechanisms and compliance behavior of different
agents look like?
Here, we present important land and water related policies and laws and their
implications on environmental management.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
201 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
National conservation strategy
The conservation strategy of Ethiopia (FDRE, 1996) provides an umbrella framework,
detailing principles, guidelines and strategies, for the effective management of the
environment. It elaborates the state of the resource bases of the country as well as the
institutional arrangement and action plans for the realization of the strategy. The strategy
aims to meet the over goal of improving the environment of human settlements to satisfy
the physical, social, economic, culture and other needs of the inhabitants on a sustainable
basis (FDRE, 1996). The document emphasizes the need to ensure the empowerment and
participation of the people and their organizations at all levels in environmental
management activities; and raise awareness and promote understanding of the essential
links between environment and development.
The document outlines the importance of:
Providing security of tenure for land and natural resources by clearly defining and
strengthening land and other natural resources tenure rights and responsibilities so
as to support sustainable agricultural, pastoral, forestry and fisheries production
and a sustainable urban environment;
Achieving coordinated, integrated and participatory local plans and land use
decisions to achieve ecologically, socially and economically sustainable state and
private sector land utilization;
Ensuring that disadvantaged members of the community are fully involved in the
development, management and use of natural, human made and cultural resources
and the environment and thus social, cultural and economic sustainability is
achieved.
Environmental policy
The Environmental Policy of Ethiopia (EPE), which was approved on April 1997, has an
overall policy goal to ―improve and enhance the health and quality of life of all
Ethiopians, and to promote sustainable social and economic development through the
sound management and use of natural, human-made and cultural resources and the
environment as a whole, so as to meet the needs of the present generation without
compromising the ability of future generations to meet their own needs‖ (FDRE, 1997a).
EPE emphasizes the need for arresting land degradation and promote improved
environmental sanitation and health. To this end the Ethiopian Environmental Protection
Authority has issued three major proclamations; namely, Establishment of Environmental
Protection Organs (FDRE, 2002c), which re-establishes and re-defines the functioning of
an Environmental Protection Authority (EPA) as an autonomous Federal Government
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
202 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Organ, Environmental Pollution Control (FDRE, 2002e), and Environmental Impact
Assessment proclamation (FDRE, 2002d) in the country.
Environmental Organs Establishment Proclamation, enacted in 2002, besides making
EPA as an autonomous Federal Government Organ established the Environmental
Protection Council (EPC). EPC oversee EPA‘s activities, as well as the activities of
sectoral agencies and environmental units with respect to environmental management. It
also ensures coordination among sectoral ministries and agencies on environmental
matters. The proclamation stipulates the need for the establishment of environmental
organs by regions. Mandates of the regional environmental organs are to enable regions
to coordinating the formulation, implementation, review and revision of regional
conservation strategies; environmental monitoring, protection and regulation; ensure the
implementation of federal environmental standards or, as may be appropriate, issue and
implement their own no less stringent standards; and prepare reports on the respective
state of the environment and sustainable development of their respective states and
submit them to the Authority (FDRE, 2002c, Art. 15).
The Environmental Pollution Control Proclamation prohibits the release of pollutant into
the environment by any person engaged in any field of activity. Any person who causes
any pollution shall be required to clean up or pay for cleaning up of the polluted
environment. The installation of sound technology that avoids or reduces, to the required
minimum, the generation of waste and, when feasible, recycling of waste is encouraged
(FDRE, 2002b).
To enforce this, EPA is empowered to formulate practicable environmental standards
based on scientific and environmental principles and in consultation with relevant
agencies (FDRE, 2002b). The standards are required to include standards for the
discharge of effluents into water bodies and sewerage systems; air quality standards that
specify the ambient air quality and give the allowance amount of emissions for both point
and non-point air pollution sources; standards for the types and amounts of substances
that can be applied to the soil or be disposed of on or in it; waste management standards
specifying the levels allowed and the methods to be used in the generation, handling,
storage, treatment, transport and disposal of the various types of waste. So far, EPA has
prepared Provisional Standard for Industrial Pollution Control (EPA, 2003) and draft
proposal of Ambient Environmental Standards (EPA, 2004), and a regulation for the
enforcement of the standards in Ethiopia. Regional states are required to develop their
own standards, even stringent ones considering their specific situations. This
proclamation also specifies clearly the function of law enforcement of the EPA and of the
Regional Environmental Agencies, in charge of taking administrative or legal measures
against a person violating the law and releasing any pollutant to the environment. Two
approaches are advocated by EPA in pollution control; namely: encouraging cleaner
production (voluntary) and requirement to use of best available technologies (end-of-pipe
control).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
203 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
The EIA proclamation empowered EPA to prepare procedure, regulations, guidelines and
standards to effectively implement and enforce EIA proclamation. Environmental
guidelines are among the tools for facilitating the inclusion of environmental issues and
principles of sustainable development into development proposals. To this effect, sectoral
environmental impact assessment guidelines on agriculture, transport, industry, tannery
and settlements have been prepared. In addition to these, a general guideline for
facilitating EIA in all sectors has been prepared (EPA, 2003). The provisions include:
Without authorization from the authority or from the relevant regional
environmental agency, no person shall commence implementation of any project
that requires EIA;
Any licensing agency shall, prior to issuing an investment permit or a trade or an
operating license for any project, ensure that the authority or relevant regional
environmental agency has authorized its implementation; and
EIP study or permission does not exonerate the proponent form liability to
damage.
Through this directive EPA is expected to identify projects not likely to have
negative impacts, and so do not require environmental impact assessment and
those that do have and requires EIA. Furthermore, EPA has developed an EIA
guideline, the purpose of which is to ensure that proponents, the government and
all other interested and affected parties have the opportunity to participate
meaningfully in the EIA process and facilitate EIA in all sectors.
Water related policies, laws and regulations
The most important water related policies, strategies, regulations and guidelines in
Ethiopia include: Water Resource Management Policy (MoWR, 1999); Water Resources
Management Proclamation and Regulation (MoWR, 2000); and National Water Sector
Strategy and Water Sector Development Program (MoWR, 2004). The range of relevant
policies point to the complexity of numerous institutional mandates relevant to water
management. Each of these is briefly described below.
Federal Water Resources Management Policy, Regulation and Guidelines
The Ethiopian Federal Water Resources Management Policy stated that the goal of the
policy is ―to enhance and promote all national efforts towards the efficient, equitable and
optimum utilization of the available water resources of the country for significant socio-
economic development on a sustainable basis‖ (MoWR, 1999, p.1). The fundamental
principles of the Ethiopian Water Resource Management Policy are that (i) water is a
natural endowment commonly owned by all the people of Ethiopia, (ii) every Ethiopian
citizen shall have access to sufficient water of acceptable quality, to satisfy basic human
needs, (iii) water shall be recognized both as an economic and a social good, (iv) water
resource development shall be underpinned on rural-centered, decentralized management,
participatory approach as well as integrated framework, (v) management of water
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
204 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
resource shall ensure social equity, economic efficiency, systems reliability and
sustainability, (vi) the participation of all stakeholders, user communities specially that of
women, shall be promoted in water management. The policy has a series of highly
relevant provisions, in particular regarding the IWRM approach. These include:
Enhance the integrated and comprehensive management of water resources that
avoids a fragmented approach;
Recognize water as a scarce and vital socio-economic resource and manage water
resources on a strategic planning basis with long term visions and sustainable
objectives;
Ensure that water resources management is compatible and integrated with other
natural resources as well as river basin development plans and with the goals of
other sectoral developments in health, mines, energy, agriculture, etc.;
Recognize and adopt hydrologic boundaries or ―basins‖ as the fundamental
planning unit in the water resources management domain; and
Promote and advocate institutional stability and continuity in water resources
management and ensure smooth transition during times of changes.
More specifically the document provides additional relevant provisions on the enabling
environment:
Promote appropriate linkage mechanisms for the coordination of water resources
management activities between the Federal and Regional Governments;
Establish phase-by-phase Basin Authorities, for efficient, successful and
sustainable joint management of the water resources of the basins through
concerted efforts of relevant stakeholders,
Create conducive environment for the enhancement of linkages and partnership
between the Federal and Regional States on the basis of the constitution for the
realization of efficient, sustainable and equitable water resources management,
and provide the legal basis for active and meaningful participation of all
stakeholders.
The policy also addressed cross cutting and sectoral issues such as water allocation and
apportionment, environment, watershed management, water resources protection and
conservation, technology and engineering, water resources management information
systems, monitoring, assessment and auditing, water cost and pricing (economics of
water), groundwater resources, disasters, emergencies and public safety, transboundary
water stakeholders, gender, research and development, water quality management and
enabling environment. The sectoral part of the policy has incorporated specific issues on
the area of water supply and sanitation, irrigation and hydropower.
Although the issues addressed in the policy are equally important, the issue of water
allocation, a basin development approach, integration of developments, water pricing,
cost recovery, and water financing could be taken as key pillars for the future
development and management of water resources. We present these issues briefly for
closer scrutiny. The water policy provision on water allocation and apportionment
indicates that it is to be done in accordance with a permit system for uses of irrigated
agriculture, commercial animal rearing, industry, mining, urban water supply, etc; while
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
205 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
no permit is required for use of water by peasants, artisan miners, traditional fishermen,
traditional irrigation, water mills, hand-dug wells. The supervising body (MoWR) is
responsible for determining the allocation and manner of use of water resources among
various uses and users; and for issuing directives to prevent inappropriate use and
wastage of water. More specifically, the policy directs that:
The basic minimum requirement for basic human and livestock needs as well as
environment reserve has the highest priority in any water allocation plan;
Water allocation gives the highest priority to water supply and sanitation, while
apportioning the rest for uses and users that result in highest socio-economic
benefits;
Encouragement of water allocation need to be based on efficient use of water
allocation, which is based on efficient use of water resources that harmonizes
greater economic and social benefits;
Water allocation shall be based on the basin, sub-basin, and other hydrological
boundaries and take into considerations the needs of drought prone areas;
Adopting the principle that water allocations shall not be made on permanent
basis, but rather on agreed time horizon that fits best with the socio-economic
development plans; and
Priority is given, generally, to multi-purpose projects as compared to single
purpose for optimum water utilization as well as for fair administration of water
uses in reservoir operations.
The policy document underlines the importance of an integrated approach to water
resources development for optimal utilization of the country‘s water resource. Integrated
water resources management promotes the coordinated development and management of
water, land and related resources to maximize economic and social welfare in an
equitable and sustainable manner. The policy document has also recognized and adopted
hydrologic boundaries or ―basins‖ as the fundamental planning unit and water resources
management domain. It indicates that water resources management need to be compatible
and integrated with other natural resources as well as river basin development plans and
with goals of other sectoral developments in health, mines, energy, agriculture, etc. To
this end, river basin integrated development master plan studies have been carried out on
six river basins: Abbay, Baro-Akobo, Gibie-Omo, Tekezie, Wabi Shebelle and Mereb
Genale Dawa river basin. Presently, similar studies are being carried out in the Rift
Valley river basin. Comprehensive potential projects in water supply, irrigation,
hydropower, flood control, fisheries, recreation, navigation, industry, etc have been
identified. Priority for development of these projects has been set; and implementation of
some has started.
With regard to transboundary waters, the policy explicitly calls to (i) study Ethiopia‘s
stake and national development interests in the allocation and utilization of transboundary
waters; (ii) promote the establishment of an integrated framework for joint utilization and
equitable cooperation and agreements on transboundary waters; (iii) ascertain and
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
206 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
promote Ethiopia‘s entitlement and use of transboundary water based on those accepted
international norms and conventions endorsed by Ethiopia; and (iv) foster meaningful
and mutually fair regional cooperation and agreements on the joint and efficient use of
transboundary waters with riparian countries based on ―equitable and reasonable‖ use
principles; comply with those international covenants adopted by Ethiopia, and manage
transboundary waters accordingly.
Furthermore, the water resources management policy has given importance and
recognition to the value of water. In order to significantly contribute to development,
water shall be recognized both as an economic and a social good; and the policy has
clearly recognized the disadvantaged groups of the population by citing that, ―although
all water resources development ought to be based on the economic value of water, the
provision of water supply services to the underprivileged sectors of the population, shall
be ensured based on a special social strategy‖ (MoWR, 1999). The most important role
of water valuation relates to demand management and better allocation of water among
the various uses. The value of water depends on its quantity, quality, location, access,
reliability and time of availability. Valuing water is linking the concern that water uses
must be able to meet different social, economic and environmental functions. Priority in
water allocation is given to human and animal consumption, followed by irrigation.
The water policy has specific stipulations pertaining to tariff setting, requiring that (i)
tariff structures are site-specific and determined according to circumstances; (ii) rural
tariff settings are based on the objective of recovering operation and maintenance costs
while urban tariff structures are based on the basis of full cost recovery; (iii) adopt a
―social tariff‖ to enable poor communities to cover operation and maintenance costs; (iv)
establish progressive tariff rates, in urban water supplies, tied to consumption rates and
flat rate tariffs for communal services like hand pumps and public stand pipes. The Water
Resources Management policy also stipulates the following provisions relevant to
irrigation:
Ensure that irrigation development is integrated with the country‘s socio-
economic development strategy and overall water sector development strategy,
especially with regard to agricultural development led industrialization;
Irrigation development strategies should promote socio-economic development
while ensuring participatory and sustainable development;
Ensure that adequate resources are devoted to irrigation development particularly
in capacity and institution building;
Irrigation development should take the interest of the end users into account,
particularly the rural women;
Develop strategies for the development of small-, medium- and large-scale
irrigations schemes to meet the country‘s food, raw materials, and foster
economic development;
Support traditional irrigation schemes to ensure improved with water harvesting,
delivery and water management efficiency;
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
207 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Protect irrigation water from pollution, reduce damage and maintain irrigation
water quality;
Develop water allocation mechanisms to ensure social equity, economic growth
and environmental sustainability; and
Integrate appropriate water drainage service with irrigation development works;
The main actors in irrigation development are identified as: farmers, service cooperatives,
governmental and nongovernmental organizations‘ and the local people who will live in
and near the irrigation development. Participation from all of these stakeholders, as well
as transparency and social equity in irrigation development, are priorities. With regard to
financing, the irrigation water policy calls for the establishment of norms and procedures
for financing sustainability and viability; the promotion of credit facilities and bank
loans; and appropriate cost recovery systems and mechanisms for all irrigation schemes.
Following the Water policy, the government of Ethiopia has issued Water Resources
Management Proclamation to enable proper management, protection and utilization of
the country‘s water resources. This proclamation provides the basic legislative
framework for the country with respect to the management, planning, utilization and
protection of water resources. The stated purpose of the proclamation is ―to ensure that
the water resources of the country are protected and deployed for the highest social and
economic benefits of the people of Ethiopia; to follow up and supervise that they are duly
conserved; to ensure that harmful effects of water are prevented; and that the
management of water resources are carried out properly‖ (Art. 3). The basic trust of these
fundamental principles is that water resources management and administration in the
country should be based on the National Water Policy, the Integrated River Basin Master
Plan Studies (IRBMPs) and the Water Resources Laws of the country.
According to the proclamation, the right to allocate and apportion water is best bestowed
upon the legal jurisdiction of the Ministry of Water Resources in its capacity as
supervisory body. The legal provisions in the proclamation, with regard to ownership of
the resources and its allocation and apportionment, clearly show that the development,
management, utilization and protection of all water resources in the country lies
effectively in the hands of the Federal Government.
Regional states and local administrative bodies, without requiring any new law for water,
are strictly obliged by law to implement the water policy and the water proclamation in
accordance with set directives and guidelines provided by the Federal Ministry of Water
Resources. Moreover, this proclamation confirms the duality of management
arrangements, i.e., surface waters whenever linking two or more Regions or being
transboundary clearly falls under the Federal level while water resource within the
jurisdiction of regions are addressed by the Regional States legal provisions.
A federal Water Resources Management Regulations (MoWR, 2004), while its contents
are similar to those covered in the proclamation, but details the procedures as to how the
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
208 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
various legal materials contained in the proclamation are to be effected on the ground. In
particular the regulations present a further elaboration of the main requirements for the
issuance of permits for different uses of water and the conditions for the issuance, as well
as the level of water charge and procedure for licensing water operators.
The MoWR still retains the mandate to issue permits for large bulk of water resources of
the country although it can delegate it further to any relevant body. This is also true for
collection of fees and water uses charges. Furthermore, tariff rates are determined for
different water uses at national level, without intervention of Regional States.
Water sector strategy and development program
The Water Sector Strategy provides the framework, which contains ways and means of
attaining the intended objectives. The goals and guiding principles remain the same with
that of the policy. The strategy sets the road map on how to make meaningful
contributions towards improving the living standard and general socioeconomic well-
being of the n people. These objectives include:
Realizing food self-sufficiency and food security;
Extending water supply and sanitation coverage to large segments of the society;
Generating additional hydropower and enhancing the contribution of water
resources in attaining national development priorities; and
Promoting the principles of integrated water resources management.
The Ethiopian Water Sector Development Program (WSDP) is taken as an instrument to
translate the Ethiopian Water Resources Management Policy into action. The 15-year
WSDP has five major components: Water Supply and Sanitation Program; Irrigation and
Drainage Program; Hydropower Development Program; General Water Resources
Program; and Institutions/Capacity Building Program.
In view of the enormous water demand in the country, the WSDP has adopted the
following water resource development priorities.
Making clean drinking water available to the larger segments of the society,
including water for sewerage purposes;
Making water available for livestock in critical areas such as the pastoral areas;
Expanding irrigated agriculture to the maximum possible extent;
Meeting hydropower generation capacity needs arising from electricity demand in
the economic and social sectors; and
Providing water for the industrial development.
Within the overall priority provided above, the highest priority has been given to the
programs and projects, which are ongoing and their implementation is expected to
continue during the period of the plan; those that require rehabilitation and reactivation;
were started, but for some reason their implementation was discontinued; have already
been subject to appraisal and are already being considered for possible funding; have
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
209 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
been identified in master plan studies; have been considered for capacity building; and re
indicated in the Nile Basin Initiative and the Eastern Nile Subsidiary Action program.
Recognizing that WSDP is a national water plan, stakeholders including public, private
sector, NGOs, international development partners and communities are anticipated to
participate in the implementation of the Program. To this end, the detailed
implementation arrangements of the WSDP are worked out to address the roles of various
stakeholders, be it government institutions such as the Federal Ministry of Water
Resources or Regional Water Bureaus. Various organs are proposed to be established
towards implementing WSDP such as an Inter-Ministerial Steering Group; Federal
Program Management Unit (FPMU); Regional Program Management Unit (RPMU);
Sub-Program level teams under the FPMUs and RPMUs. These entities are not
established as yet (NBI, 2006).
Land use and land administration
A series of proclamations on Rural Land Administration and Use (FDRE, 1997b; 2005c)
and Land Expropriation and Compensation (FDRE, 2005b) provide the legal framework
for rural land administration and use. The laws define rights of land holders and theirs
obligations. In line with the constitution of Ethiopia, proclamation declared land to be the
property of the state. Hence, it may not be sold or mortgaged. One of the important
provisions of the proclamation is the provision on the rights of land users to get and use
land freely through land distribution and/or by bequeath or gift. Holding rights are
defined in the Federal Constitution (FDRE, 1995) as "the right any peasant shall have to
use rural land for agricultural purposes as well as to lease and, while the right remains in
effect, bequeath it to his family member; and includes the right to acquire property
thereon, by his labor or capital, and to sell, exchange and bequeath same" (Art 2 Sub Art.
3). The state also has the ultimate power to enact laws about utilization and conservation
of land. Art. 51 of the constitution states that the Federal Government shall enact laws for
the utilization and conservation of land and other natural resources (FDRE, 1995). Art. 52
also states, that Regional Governments have the duty to administer land and other natural
resources according to Federal laws. Both proclamations vested Regional Governments
with the power of land administration (defined as "the assignment of holding rights and
the execution of distribution of holdings") (FDRE, 1997b, Art. 2.6). They also called for
land registration and certification to reduce land conflicts and encourage long-term
investment in rural lands.
Lately, the government has come up with land expropriation and compensation
proclamation (FDRE, 2005b) which states that ―a landholder whose holding has been
expropriated shall be entitled to payment of compensation for his property situated on the
land and for permanent improvements he made to such land (Ibid: p. 3128)‖.
Compensation for permanent improvement to land shall be equal to the value of capital
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
210 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
and labor expended on the land (Ibid.). A rural landholder whose landholding has been
permanently expropriate[d] shall, in addition to the compensation payable, be paid
displacement compensation which shall be equivalent to ten times the average annual
income he secured during the five years preceding the expropriation of the land (Ibid.).
Following the 1997 and 2005 federal land related proclamations, regional governments
came up with their own proclamation on rural land administration and use (For instance
see CANRS 2006b). In doing so, they formalized land-lease practices between farmers
with contracts up to a maximum of 25 years. Furthermore, the regional proclamations
paved the way for land titling, by registering all arable lands, to the landholders who
received land during the last land redistribution or through inheritance from their close
kin. By doing so, the regional governments hope to boost farmers‘ sense of security,
which, in turn, may encourage investment in erosion reducing and landing quality
enhancing technologies. Preliminary studies on the impact of land certification on tenure
security long term investment and functioning of land markets indicate that they are
having significant impacts on both accounts (Hagos, 2007; Holden et al., 2007). Similar
policies were also promulgated in all the major regions of Ethiopia (Deininger, et al.
2007).
Important provisions of the land administration and use proclamation, both federal and
state, that have provided incentives that encourage farmers to improve their management
and make additional investments on their land include (FDRE, 1997; 2005; CANRS
2006b):
Right to use has no any time limit;
Right to transfer holdings in bequeath or donation;
Transfer right in rent to any person for a maximum of 25 years;
Right not to be expropriated without consent of the user or unless it is to be used
for public services;
Right of any person deprived from his land holding to get compensation for the
permanent property he had developed on the land;
Right of the state to deprive holding rights if gross damage occurs over land due
to mismanagement;
Land measurement and registration; and
Granting a legal land holding certificate where in the land holding certificate shall
indicate the main provisions of right and obligations of the land holder.
The new proclamations also have specific regulation on land use obligations of the land
user. The land use regulations include: any rural land shall have land use plan and any
rural land with 60 % slope and above shall not be used for farming and free grazing other
than forestry, perennial plants and development of forage for animals (CANRS 2006b, p.
8). The obligations of the land user include: protect the land under his/her holding or land
obtained in rent and conserve the surrounding; to plant trees around his/her land and
properly protect them; undertake trench terracing and favorable soil conservation
activities to use the land forms which are 31 to 60 % slope for perennial plants and to use
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
211 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
land based on land use plan (CANRS 2006b, p. 21). Non-compliance is likely to lead to
deprivation of use rights and penalty. The Rural land Administration and Land Use of the
Amhara National State (CANRS 2006b), for instance, indicates that where land is
degraded due to weakness, not to conserve it, the household will be obliged to transfer
the right to use land in rent temporarily for a person who undertakes an obligation; if not
corrected it goes from suspending him from using his right for a limited time up to
expropriating with compensation. In the extreme case, he shall be made to pay
compensation for the damage pursuant to civil code in addition to measures above (p.
23).
Integrated watershed management guidelines
This guideline was developed with the intension of promoting and expanding
participatory community watershed development in Ethiopia. This is an attempt to
streamline the experiences of various actors (GOs and NGOs) in participatory watershed
development, combined with the need to have a common and standardized, more
effective approach to the country as a whole (Lakew et al. 2005). The guideline aims to
build upon exiting community-based participatory watershed efforts to harmonize and
consolidate planning procedures at the grass-roots level. The intent is to provide
development agents and communities with a workable and adaptable planning tool.
Another objective of the guideline is to provide practical guidance on the correct
selection of technologies under different conditions and their correct implementation
(Lakew et al. 2005).
Analysis of Institutional Setup
In the subsequent section, we will closely analyze the institutional design architecture of
institutions in the Tana and Beles Basins and in Ethiopia in general. Five criteria will be
used to structure our discussion: presence of clear institutional objectives; interconnection
between formal and informal institutions; institutional adaptiveness; appropriateness of
scale; and compliance capacity.
Institutional design architecture
In terms of clarity of institutional objectives, the institutional arrangements for land and
water in Ethiopia in general and BNB in particular are fairly well defined. There are
organizations with clear mandates, duties and responsibilities. The organizational settings
have been organized in such a way that organizations that have to do with land and water,
directly or indirectly, have been identified and given by law duties and responsibilities.
The policies and laws in place have also clear objectives and some have developed
strategies and policy instruments to meet these objectives. That said, however, there are
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
212 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
important problems noticed in the organizational setting and some questions about the
institutional arrangements that remain to be answered. Important policy gaps are
identified as well.
Like elsewhere in Ethiopia in Tana and Beles Basins, there are at least three federal and
other subsidiary agencies and the same number of regional bureaus/authorities working in
the area of land and water and environmental protection. The government tried to define
the roles and responsibilities of government bodies, a careful look into the work
portfolios of ministries indicate the presence of overlaps in mandate between MoWR and
MoARD, EPA. For instance, MoWR and MoARD have both responsibilities related to
water resources development, although MoWR focuses on medium and large-scale works
while MoARD focuses on small-scale irrigation and micro water harvesting. The broad
areas of integrated natural resource management also fall into the mandates of these two
ministries and the EPA.
It seems there is a problem of split jurisdiction here, which may create problems in
implementation and enforcement. EIA and water pollution control also fall under the
jurisdiction of EPA and MoWR. There is already possible overlapping of responsibility
between on the one hand the general and broad mandate of EPA and Regional
Environmental Bureaus or Authority in the field of pollution control and on the other
hand the IWRM framework that promotes integration of all aspects of water resources. If
these two organizations work separately, this would lead to a clear duplication of effort
and waste of resources. The critical questions here are: to what extent these overlaps in
mandates mean duplication of efforts and conflict of mandates? An equally important
issue is to what extent are these overlaps minimized through joint planning and
coordination? Furthermore, who is responsible, mandated by law, for regulating that tasks
and responsibilities are fulfilled by the responsible ministries and agencies? What
specific linkages and information sharing mechanisms are in place to ensure institutional
harmony and efficient information and resource flows?
As indicated earlier, MoWR is responsible for water resources that are transboundary in
nature and not confined within a regional state while regional Water bureaus are
responsible for water resources within their jurisdiction. At the same time, MoWR is
responsible for developing medium and large scale schemes in the whole country while
responsibility to develop small scale schemes falls under the jurisdiction of regions, to be
more precise under the Bureau of Agriculture and Rural Development. This separation of
mandates between the federal water ministry and the regional water bureaus is artificial,
to say the least, and is contrary to the principles of IWRM. In this line, an important point
here is whether central ownership of these resources is compatible with decentralized
management, one of the principles of IWRM, which is also advocated in the Ethiopian
water policy documents. Several questions also arise from this situation: what is the role
of the regional bureau of Water Resources Development? Is its role limited to provision
of domestic water supply in the regions as small scale irrigation also falls under the
jurisdiction of the Bureau of Agriculture and Rural development? Is the MoWR in a
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
213 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
position to issue water permits and collect water charges at national scale? Or could be
more efficient to delegate parts of its mandate to regional water Resources Bureaus? The
same questions could be raised on the relationship of other ministries (i.e. MoARD and
EPA) to their counterpart in the regions.
In addressing these questions we developed an actor linkage matrix for the Tana Beles
Sub-Basin (see Table 2) where we explored information flows and linkages. We found
three types of information exchange and linkages within the federal ministries and
regional and between the two. There are, at least in theory, formalized and
institutionalized information flows and linkages between organizations falling within the
same sector, example between the MoWR and BoWR or MoARD and BoARD, etc.
There are indirect information flows and linkages between close neighbor sectors (e.g.
land and water). The mechanisms of indirect information flows and linkages are usually
through reports to a higher body (regional president or Prime Minister) and discussions at
the regional/federal council of ministers level. As stated earlier, the EPE calls for the
establishment of Environmental Protection Council (EPC), which oversee EPA‘s
activities, as well as the activities of sectoral agencies and environmental units with
respect to environmental management. It is also expected to ensure coordination among
sectoral ministries and agencies on environmental matters. Although whether EPC is
operational as yet or not is not known, a project based ad-hoc coordination platform,
where national steering committee is established, is usually used to oversee the planning
and implementation of a project. The committee defines, terms of reference for
contractors/consultants, evaluates the outputs thereof. Any water related project is, in
principle, subject to EIA based on EPA guidelines. Horizontal communications between
ministries and bureaus belonging to different sectors is seldom common. There are hardly
any information flows and linkages between sectors not apparently related. The lack of
Integrated Information Management System exacerbates this problem of poor
communication. The organization of ministries, bureaus and departments, hence, seems
to follow ‗disciplinary‘ orientation while problems in the sector call for interdisciplinary
and integrated approach. For instance, there is no structural and coordinated linkage
among the various stakeholders that are involved in the water sector activities, even
between the two key institutions, i.e. Ministry of Water Resources and the Regional
Water Bureaus (Gizaw, 2004). On the other hand, research institutes have limited direct
linkage the development ministries/bureaus. There is hardly any linkage and information
flow between the formal and informal organizations.
In summary: a high frequency of overlapping and conflicting roles and responsibilities
between institutions reported (NBI, 2006: p. 3). NBI (2006) also identified poor inter-
sectoral collaboration and control as one of problems related to roles and responsibilities
of organizations. Concerns existed that roles and responsibilities between levels remained
ill-defined and resulted in implementation inertia and even failure (NBI, 2006). This
could lead to inability to achieve the goals of the sectors. Additionally, the stakeholders
may not collectively drive some synergic benefit from being able to integrate their
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
214 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
administrative efforts. Both protective institutional responses and lack of effective
coordinating mechanisms are featured as reasons (NBI, 2006).
In this line, the organizations involved in land and water were marked by frequent
restructuring and re-organization over the last few years and the process seems to be
going on. While adjusting institutional responsibilities and redesigning organizational
structures may be called for in the light of the changes and development needs of the
country, the frequent, at times endless, restructuring process has certainly produced
uncertainties, made capacity building difficult and affects the political will to push for
change. NBI (2006) documented many challenges related to implementation within weak
institutional environments that were evident, with particular awareness of the need to
build substantial capacity at decentralized levels (p.5).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
215 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 2 Actor linkage matrix in the Tana Beles sub-Basin (map of information flow and
linkages between major actors)
BARD BWRD EPLAUA AARI SHWISA
(NGO)
Water
Aid
(NGO)
MoARD MoWR EPA EIAR
BARD IFL IFL FFL FFL NFL FFL IFL IFL IFL
BWRD IFL IFL IFL IFL FFL NFL FFL IFL NFL
EPLAUA IFL IFL IFL IFL NFL NFL NFL FFL IFL
AARI FFL IFL IFL NFL NFL IFL NFL NFL FFL
SHWISA
(NGO)
FFL IFL IFL IFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL
Water Aid
(NGO)
NFL FFL NFL NFL NFL NFL IFL NFL NFL
MoARD FFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL IFL IFL FFL
MoWR NFL FFL NFL NFL NFL IFL IFL IFL IFL
EPA NFL NFL FFL NFL NFL NFL IFL IFL IFL
EIAR NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL NFL
Codes: FFL= Institutionalized flow & Linkage; IFL= Indirect flow& Linkage; NFL=
No flow & Linkage at all.
In terms of the role of different organizations in the development of new polices and
laws, in relation to natural resource management, the federal ministries were instrumental
in developing key policies and laws while regional bureaus kept a lower profile (see
Table 3). In some case, regional bureaus developed proclamations and guidelines to
implement federal policies and in some cases they adopted federal polices as they are.
The regional Rural Land Administration and Use proclamations and guidelines falls
under the former category while water related policies, regulations and guidelines have
remained fall into the second category. Noticeably, there was limited research input in
the development policies, as policy research in the country is at best fragmented and
rudimentary to yield outputs that are worth of policy uptake.
Lev
el
of
infl
uen
ce
Roles Responsible
High EPA/MoWR/MoARD
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
216 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 3 Role and influence of organization in policy change in the Tana Beles sub-basin:
Land and water management
The policies and laws hitherto developed in Ethiopia are said to reflect global policy
changes or the widespread adoption of the IWRM principles (NBI, 2006). Not
surprisingly, the policies are reflections of the institutional arrangements as the major
intents and objectives of the policies and laws reflected the roles and responsibilities of
organizations that developed them. The narrow disciplinary orientation that we witnessed
in organizational arrangement is also manifest in the key trusts of these policies. It is
known that sustainable land management has a lot of bearing on water availability and
quality, the water policy in Ethiopia, however, does not consider the need for improved
land management in relation to water resources development. The limited coordination
between MoWR and MoRAD also manifests in this. Informal institutions seem to play a
critical role in the modus operandi of many organizations.
There is no doubt that a lot of progress has been made lately in creating an institutional
framework for improved land and water management in Ethiopia. However, there are
cases where informal institutions substitute formal institutions. Informal institutions here
are understood as those, contrary to the written polices and laws, unwritten codes of
practice that shape organizations behavior. One policy gaps that still calls for immediate
action is the management of transboundary waters. The Ethiopian water policies (for that
matter all other riparian countries in the Nile) advocate for integrated water resources
development, where the planning unit should be a river basin. Practices, however, deviate
a lot form the written policy. Actual water development interventions follow a piecemeal
approach. There is uncoordinated and unregulated harvesting of the countries‘ ground
and surface water resources. Adequate upstream and downstream considerations are also
lacking in the implementation process. Mechanisms for cost and benefit sharing between
upstream users (who cause the degradation and could control it if they have the incentive)
and downstream users (who could gain more from improved management of land and
water upstream and loose due to poor management of the same) are not in place in the
water policy of the country. At the basin scale, while important progress has been made
though the NBI and individual efforts of countries (e.g. promulgation of proclamation for
the establishment of river basin organizations in Ethiopia), still the riparian countries
could not come up with mechanisms for equitable and efficient distribution of the Nile
water. Still old rules govern in the distribution of the Nile water in general and the Abay
Blue Nile in particular.
Medium EPLAUA/BARD/
BWRD
Low EIAR/AARI
Negative
Neutral Positive
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
217 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
The focus of all the water organizations is on surface water and groundwater, i.e. blue
water. While rain water is the major contributor to livelihood in the basin, particularly in
the Ethiopian highlands, little attention is given to it in the policies and strategies and in
the organizational arrangement of the water sector. Polices leave out rain water
management which has a great bearing in the sustenance of both surface water and
groundwater (NBI, 2006). The lack of focus on green water is another policy gaps that
cells for remedy.
Furthermore, there is discrepancy between the stipulations of the law and the practice in
cost recovery. The laws indicate that water schemes, potable or irrigation, are expected to
operate on a cost recovery basis. The policy, for instance, stipulates that if these schemes
are located in rural areas, they are at least expected to cover operation and maintenance
costs of those schemes. However, practices throughout the country (not only Tana Beles
sub-basin) indicate that farmers are not made to pay for operation and maintenance. This
encourages overuse of water and poor management of water structures. Moreover, lack of
effective cost recovery mechanisms often inhabits the ability of organizations to sustain
themselves and fulfill their mandates (Gizaw, 2004; NBI, 2006).
While Ethiopia‘s water development and environmental protection policies and laws
recognize the need and importance of taking proper EIAs in pursuing any water related
development intervention, traditional practices still dominate: environmental
considerations are given limited consideration in water resources development. Or if they
did, this is done without the involvement of EPA/ EPLAUA. As indicated earlier, both
EPA and MoWR resources seem to be mandated to care for the protection of water
pollution. This has become a potential source of conflict, where MoWR, and specially the
regional BoWR, does not seek to secure environmental clearance from EPA/EPLUA for
water related intervention. MoWR/BoWR seems to grant permits without go-ahead from
EPA/EPLUA.
There is also confusion in the definition of the appropriate scale. Regional bureaus and
federal office are organized on the basis of administrative scale, i.e. regions or the
country. On the other hand, the relevant water resources policy and watershed
management guidelines advocate the basin or watershed to be the basic planning unit for
intervention. A critical constraint against effective river basin management is the
commonly prevalent conflict between boundaries of river basins and those of political
units (nations, regions, districts, etc). The administrative boundaries also pose potential
constraint in management of small watershed that fall between two districts or PAs. This
calls for establishing viable and acceptable institutional mechanisms for shared
management of water resources in the river basin or watershed. While the major rivers in
the Abay Blue Nile are transboundary in nature, there are no transboundary organizations
as yet responsible for the management of water resources at a basin scale. Many
development interventions within the sub-basin are not centered on watersheds. However,
the ground for the establishment of river basin organizations seems to be in the making
although taking watersheds as development domains is hardly practiced.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
218 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Enforcement capacity of institutions is another indicator against institutional performance
is evaluated. The issue here is: how are violations of accepted institutions dealt with and
what are the typical forms of enforcement by land and water institutions. If there are
enforcement problems, what are the major causes of these problems? Overall, assessment
is that regulations on water resources management, pollution control, land use rights
related to water, watershed development, environmental quality and pollution control
standards are not effective or enacted because of enforcement capacity (NBI, 2006). The
major government regulatory agency, EPA, complains of inadequate staff and resources
to do proper enforcement of environmental provisions. The same story is also heard in
the regions, where inadequate manpower and resources constrain enforcement. Moreover,
in the regions, they complain of lack of environmental pollution standards to do effective
job of enforcement and EIA. On the development wide, there is lack of systematic
monitoring and evaluation of policy implementation (NBI, 2006). The poor record in
monitoring and evaluation is highly linked with the absence of an integrated system of
information management at the country level or at the sub-basin level. While the land
and water organizations, both in the country and regions, are mandated to collect and
store relevant data to support decision making, the data collection is at best inadequate
and haphazard. There are attempts, for instance, to establish Water Resource Information
Center (WRIC) at the MoWR. In fact, the Ethiopian Water Management Policy (MoWR,
1999, p. 10) calls for the establishment of Water Resources Information Center (WRIC)
and indeed to this effect the Ministry has now created Data and Information and GIS
Center (WoWR, UNESCO and GIRDC, 2004). However, as yet there is no Integrated
Information Management System in place to enable information sharing and exchange
between organizations and support timely policy decision making. In the light of this,
various organizations keep and maintain a wide range of data to meet their purposes
although the quality and coverage of the data maintained by each organization is
generally appraised as weak (MoWR, UNESCO and GIRDC, 2004; p. 75). On top of
this, there is a considerable weakness at all levels of the regional water sector institutions
in keeping proper records of data and information. There is also a lack of standard
procedures for gathering and storing of data and information. Data management is not
done in a way conducive to enable easy data sharing. This is more so at the basin scale,
i.e. across countries.
We have described the various land and water institutions in Ethiopia and the Tana-beles
basin. Interesting in this regards is to assess how these institutions evolved, particularly
the type of adaptive management pursued. Although, a rigorous analysis is called for in
how specific polices, laws and organizations evolved. It seems apparent that adaptive
evolutionary management is the typical type of strategy followed in drafting
institutionalizing these policies and organizations. Institutions – broadly meant the rules
of the game and the actors – in the Tana Beles sub-basin or Ethiopia are developed
through a series of trial and error. This explains partly the omnipresent process of
restructuring of the ministries/ bureaus and revisions of policies and laws in the country
/regions.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
219 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Another related issue is the adaptive capacity of institutions to changes in socio-economic
and bio-physical contexts, i.e. technology, climate change and water scarcity, market
factors, environmental and health risks, etc. Institutional efficacy is measured not only in
fulfilling daily work mandates but also in developing forward looking solutions to
emerging issues. Looking into the dynamics of the institutional settings in the Abay Blue
Nile basin, there is hardly any indication that the emerging challenges are reflected upon
and strategies to address these issues developed. There are allusions in the policy
documents that envisaged water sector and broader development strategies in the country
(sub-basin) are expected to provide mechanisms to mitigate some, if not all, of these
challenges. However, these strategies assume that there is plenty of water potential to tap
in from in the sub-basin. Economic water scarcity is considered a greater challenge than
physical water scarcity. Climate change scenarios and their impact on water resources are
hardly taken into account in the development of these strategies.
Choice of policy instruments
We described the overall intent and main features of the various land and water related
policies in Tana Beles sub-basin in the proceeding sections. Now we make a more
focused discussion of the choice in policy instruments to enforce these policies and laws.
These policies and laws will be understood in the light of their intent to influence actors
(policy makers, practitioners, land and water users, etc.) to change their behavior such
that the policy goals of sustainable resource use are met and externalities are minimized.
Externalities are internalized if individuals account for effects of their actions on others.
Imposing costs on others requires compensating them, and providing benefits for others
requires being compensated for them (Kerr et al., 2007).
According to Kerr et al. (2007), the most important criteria in designing effective policy
instruments include: cost-effectiveness (administratively feasible, with low transaction
costs); direct targeting (addressing the problem more directly will have fewer side
effects); creates strong incentives to comply (easily monitored or self-monitoring are
more feasible and cost-effective); has long-term impacts (avoid short time fixes); protects
poor people‘s livelihood (helping poor people or at least not harming them); does not
concentrate costs on a particular group (avoids uneven distribution of costs and benefits
to encourage collective action) and replicable across scale and context (mechanisms
effective in multiple settings). Policy makers will take account of these criteria in
developing certain policy instruments. However, the weight given to a given criteria in
choosing policy instruments could vary from context to context. The performance of
different instruments is not the same in all contexts either. The performance of the same
policy measure judged against these criteria could vary a well: different approaches for
internalizing externalities tend to perform better against some criteria than others, so
tradeoffs are inevitable (Kerr et al., 2007).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
220 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
There are different types of policy instruments and approaches to internalize externalities
(Pagiola et al., 2002; Sterner, 2003; Kerr et al., 2007). These include: moral suasion and
social conventions; regulatory limits and economic penalties; taxes on negative
externalities; tradable environmental allowances (permits for negative externalities);
investment subsidies; indirect incentives; payment for environmental services; change in
property rights; facilitation in negotiation and conflict resolution. For the sake of
convenience, theses instruments could be broadly classified in to two broad categories:
economic incentives and market-based instruments and command-and-control (coercive)
instruments (Kolstad, 2000). OECD (2007) indicates that instrument mix rather than a
single instrument are effective in addressing specific environmental problems because of
two main reasons: many environmental problems are of multi-aspect nature; certain
instruments can mutually underpin each other. Our intention here is to uncover the policy
instruments chosen in the major land, water and environmental policy of the country and
assess whether they are effective in addressing the major environmental problems in the
sub-basin and the country in general. The focus here will be on the Environmental Policy,
Land Use and Land Administration, Integrated Watershed Management Guideline and
Water Resources Management Policy.
Table 4 Essential elements of water and land management policies
Instrument/element WRMP EPP LULA WSG
General intent of the policy/law
Jurisdiction – spatial and administrative scales
Responsibility (establishes or enables commitment)
Goals and objectives ? ? ? ?
Duty of care (Ethical, legal responsibility, attitude,
responsibility or commitment)
Hierarchy of responsibilities (‗rights and obligations‘
of hierarchies) ?
Institutional changes (statements of an intended
course of action/ needed reform or legal change)
Climate change scenarios X X ? ?
Upstream-downstream linkages X X
Role of educational activities X X X X
Need for research and investigation X X X X
Community participation
Water/land use planning ? ? ?
Financing ? ? ?
Enforcement/regulation (SE vs. TPE) ? ?
Mechanisms for dispute resolution ? ? ?
Codes: WRMP is for Water Resources Management Policy/ Regulation/ Guideline; EPE
is for Environmental policy of Ethiopia; WSG is for Watershed Management Guideline ;
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
221 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
LAUP is for Land Administration and Use policy; X is for not clear, is for clearly
reflected, ? is for uncertain
The Ethiopian Environmental Policy document, without making any serious discussion,
lists a series of policy instruments with the aim of improving environmental management
in Ethiopia. The possible policy options listed to control/minimize environmental
pollution (i.e. air, water, land, etc.) are summarized on Table 5
Command-and-control (coercive) instruments
Regulation/administrative and legal measures against offenders, technology standards
(requirements to install sound technology or apply methods to recycle waste, if required),
closure or relocation of any enterprise and permits in the case of hazardous waste or
substances fall under this category. However, EPA has not developed relevant pollution
standards for different kinds of effluents. In fact, in Tana Beles project, lack of standards
was considered as one of the bottlenecks for effective pollution control and EIA.
The new proclamations on land use and administration also have specific regulations on
land use obligations of the land user. The land use obligation requires any rural land shall
have land use plan prepared and approved by EPLAUA. In actual land use, any rural land
with 60 % slope and above shall not be used for farming and free grazing other than
forestry, perennial plants and development of forage for animals (CANRS 2006b, p. 8).
The policy also lists a set of obligations of the land user to protect the land under his/her
holding or land obtained in rent and conserve the surrounding; to plant trees around
his/her land and properly protect them; undertake trench terracing and favorable soil
conservation activities to use the land forms which are 31 to 60 % slope for perennial
plants and to use land based on land use plan (CANRS 2006b, p. 21). Non-compliance is
likely to lead to deprivation of use rights and penalty.
The Water Resource Management Policy underpins the need to make the basin as a major
planning unit for water resources development. And this is expected to influence the
behaviors of many stakeholders involved in land and water management, although its
realization into action is falling behind.
Incentives and market-based instruments
Pollution charges (clean up or pay the cost of cleaning up), registration, labeling and
packaging (in the case of hazardous materials) as per the applicable standards fall under
this category. EPA may also issue waiver to newly established firms from applying these
stringent standards. The guideline also provides incentives for the introduction of
methods that enable prevention or minimization of pollution into an existing undertaking.
In this case, importation of new equipment that is destined to control pollution shall, upon
verification by the authority, be exempted from payment of custom duty. It also promises
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
222 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
to provide any environmental rehabilitation or pollution prevention or clean up project
with financial and technical support, to the extent that its capacity allows (FDRE, 2002c).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
223 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 5 Typology of policy instruments in Environmental Management (X= not clear,
= clearly reflected,?= uncertain)
Policy instruments IWSM
LULA
WRMP EP Responsible
Information and education X X ?
Regulations/standards ? ? EPA/EPLAUA
Incentive-based
EPA/EPLAUA Subsidies ? ?
Taxes ? ? ? ?
Charges/penalties ?
Certification (property rights) ? ? ?
Cost and benefit sharing ? ? ? MoWR
Cost Recovery ? ? ? MoWR
Public programs (PSNP, FFW,
CFW/ Free labor contribution,
etc.)
? ? ? MoARD/ BoARD
Conflict resolution ? ? EPLAUA/social
courts
Codes: IWSM is for Integrated Watershed Management; LAUP is for Land
Administration and Use policy; is for WRMP is for Water Resources Management
Policy/ Regulation/ Guideline; EP is for Environmental protection policy/guideline
As far as incentives for improved agricultural land management include (FDRE, 1997;
2005; CANRS 2006b) providing unlimited right to use land; right to transfer holdings in
bequeath or donation or lease; right not to be expropriated without consent and without
due compensation for the permanent property developed on the land; and the right of the
state to deprive holding rights if gross damage occurs over land due to mismanagement;
and land measurement and registration and granting of a legal land holding certificate.
The water policy has specific stipulations pertaining to tariff setting that call for rural
tariff settings to be based on the objective of recovering operation and maintenance costs
while urban tariff structures are based on the basis of full cost recovery. However, it also
calls for adoption of a ―social tariff‖ to enable poor communities to cover operation and
maintenance costs and to establish progressive tariff rates, in urban water supplies, tied to
consumption rates and flat rate tariffs for communal services like hand pumps and public
stand pipes. Users from irrigation schemes are also required, at least, to pay to cover
operation and maintenance costs. The institutionalization of cost recovery schemes and
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
224 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
tariff setting is expected not only to generate funds for maintaining water points/schemes
but also change users‘ consumption behavior.
The WSM guideline aims to institutionalize community-based participatory watershed
efforts to enable watershed development planning at the grass-roots level. The guideline
provides more of a working tool to implement participatory watershed management. The
intent is to provide development agents and communities with a workable and adaptable
planning tool. Another objective of the guideline is to provide practical guidance on the
correct selection of technologies under different conditions and their correct
implementation (Lakew et al. 2005). However, the implementation modalities are not
clearly spelt out.
In summary the various policy documents propose a mix of policy instruments, some
incentive based and other command-and control type instruments. The policy instruments
are clearly formulated in terms of their general intents, although lacking in terms of
specific objectives and goals, jurisdiction and responsibility, hierarchy of responsibilities
and proposed institutional changes (see Table 4). On the other hand, some features of the
policy instruments are not well articulated. Particularly lacking are issues related to
climate change scenarios, upstream-downstream linkages, role of education and research,
financing, conflict resolution and enforcement.
Overall there is tendency to focus on command-control type policies, this more so in the
environmental policy documents, than carefully devised incentive mechanisms for
improved environmental management. The tone in the policy documents is heavily
loaded with the need for third party enforcement (the relevant ministry/agency
supervising and regulating economic agents‘ behavior) than to relay on self-enforcement.
This does not mean the government should not assume a role in environmental
management. On the contrary, international and local experiences indicate that the
government has a key role to play in providing incentives to actors to adopt improved
environmental management strategies. Through proper incentives farmers, for instance,
could be motivated to build up their soil capital, prevent soil loss and nutrient leakage,
and hence reduce downstream externalities. But there is a consensus that policy
instruments building on command and control, like regulations and mandatory soil
conservations schemes, have limited or negative effects (Pagiola et al., 2002; Sterner,
2003; Kerr et al., 2007; Ekborn, 2007). Likewise, information and extension advise have
had limited, although generally positive impacts. Arguably extension advice is a
necessary but insufficient measure to reduce downstream damage, mainly due to poor
farmer incentives to fully prevent soil loss (Ekborn, 2007). There are suggestions for
increased use of positive incentives, like payment for environmental services, to address
land degradation problems in Developing countries (Ekborn, 2007). Gebremedhin
(forthcoming) argues that various forms of incentives have been provided to land users to
conserve the land resources in Ethiopia and elsewhere in eastern Africa. However, most
of the incentives were aimed at mitigating the effects of the direct causes of land
degradation. The underlying causes of land degradation remained largely unaddressed.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
225 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Hence, there is a need to carefully assess whether the proposed policy instruments
address incentive problems of actors form improved environmental management.
Conclusions and Policy Recommendations
Land and water institutions play a vital role in managing and sustaining land and water
resources as well as in enhancing economic development and poverty alleviation. The
institutional issues that the Ethiopian land and water sector is grappling with include
restoring ecological destruction due to high level of environmental (mainly land)
degradation; improving the poor performance of rainfed agriculture, low level of water
resources development, and transition from a soil conservation focus to an integrated land
and water management system that takes the hydrological boundaries into account. While
a lot of concerted efforts are going on redress these problems doing it in integrated
manner so that upstream and downstream linkages are understood remains a big
challenge. On the research side also, a lot has been done in terms of understanding the
micro determinants of farmers‘ decisions in land and water conservation, however, there
is a little attempt to understand the broad macro and institutional and organizational
issues that influence land and water management decisions. The objective of the study
was, hence, to carryout a preliminary assessment and review of institutional arrangements
for improved land and water in Ethiopian part of the Blue Nile. The study describes the
various formal and informal institutional arrangements (with more focus on the former)
that are in place currently and their design features in order to identify those institutions
related to superior performance. The analysis of institutions and their design features
provides useful insights, contributing to institutional reform debate in land and water
management in Ethiopia.
Our results indicate that the institutional arrangements for land and water, in Ethiopia in
general and BNB in particular, are fairly well defined. There are organizations with clear
mandates, duties and responsibilities. The organizational settings have been organized in
such a way that organizations that have to do with land and water, directly or indirectly,
have been identified and given by law duties and responsibilities. The policies and laws
in place have also clear objectives and some have developed strategies and policy
instruments to meet these objectives. In spite of these improvements, there is a high
frequency of overlapping and conflicting roles and responsibilities between institutions
besides poor inter-sectoral collaboration and control as one of problems related to roles
and responsibilities of organizations. Particular concerns exist that roles and
responsibilities between levels remained ill-defined and resulted in implementation
inertia and even failure. This could lead to inability to achieve the goals of the sectors.
Additionally, the stakeholders may not collectively drive some synergic benefit from
being able to integrate their administrative efforts. Both protective institutional responses
and lack of effective coordinating mechanisms are featured as reasons (NBI, 2006).
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
226 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Moreover, the organizations involved in land and water management were marked by
frequent restructuring and re-organization over the last few years and the process seems
to be going on. While adjusting institutional responsibilities and redesigning
organizational structures may be called for in the light of the changes and development
needs of the country, the frequent, at times endless, restructuring process has certainly
produced uncertainties, made capacity building difficult and affects the political will to
push for change.
The policies and laws hitherto developed in Ethiopia are said to reflect global policy
changes or the widespread adoption of the IWRM principles (NBI, 2006). Not
surprisingly, however, the policies are reflections of the institutional arrangements as the
major intents and objectives of the policies and laws reflected the roles and
responsibilities of organizations that developed them. The narrow disciplinary orientation
that we witnessed in organizational arrangement is also manifest in the key trusts of these
policies.
There is no doubt that a lot of progress has been made lately in creating an institutional
framework for improved land and water management in Ethiopia. However, there are
cases where informal institutions substitute formal institutions, pointing to
dysfunctionality of formal institutions. Cases where practices deviate a lot form the
written policy include: lack of integrated water resources development (in spite of the
written policy for it); inadequate upstream and downstream considerations in
development interventions; lack of mechanisms for cost and benefit sharing between
upstream users (who cause the degradation and could control it if they have the incentive)
and downstream users (who could gain more from improved management of land and
water upstream and loose due to poor management of the same); and at the basin scale,
absence of agreement for equitable and efficient distribution of the Nile water.
Furthermore, while Ethiopia‘s water development and environmental protection policies
and laws recognize the need and importance of taking proper EIAs in pursuing any water
related development intervention, traditional practices still dominate: environmental
considerations are given limited consideration in water resources development. Or if they
did, this is done without the involvement of EPA/EPLAUA. Informal institutions seem to
play a critical role in the modus operandi of many organizations.
There is also confusion in the definition of the appropriate scale. Regional bureaus and
federal office are organized on the basis of administrative scale, i.e. regions or the
country while the relevant water resources policy and watershed management guidelines
advocate the basin or watershed to be the basic planning unit for intervention. A critical
constraint against effective river basin management is the commonly prevalent conflict
between boundaries of river basins and those of political units (nations, regions, districts,
etc). The administrative boundaries also pose potential constraint in management of small
watershed that fall between two districts or PAs. This calls for establishing viable and
acceptable institutional mechanisms for shared management of water resources in the
river basin or watershed.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
227 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Judged by their enforcement capacity, another indicator of institutional efficacy shows
that regulations on water resources management, pollution control, and land use rights
related to water, watershed development, environmental quality and pollution control
standards are not effective or enacted because of enforcement capacity (NBI, 2006). The
major government regulatory agency, EPA, and its regional counterparts complain of
inadequate staff and resources to do proper enforcement of environmental provisions.
Moreover, lack of environmental pollution standards are cited as reasons for weak
enforcement in environmental protection and EIA. On the development side, there is lack
of systematic monitoring and evaluation of policy implementation which is linked with
the absence of an integrated system of information management at the country level or at
the sub-basin level.
With regards to adaptiveness of institutions in the Tana Beles sub-basin or Ethiopia, it
seems apparent that adaptive evolutionary management is the typical strategy followed in
drafting and institutionalizing these policies and organizations. Institutions are developed
through a series of trial and error type adaptations. This explains partly the omnipresent
process of restructuring of the ministries/ bureaus and revisions of policies and laws in
the country /regions. In terms of the adaptive capacity of institutions to changes in socio-
economic and bio-physical contexts there is hardly any indication that emerging
challenges are reflected upon and strategies to address these issues developed. There are
allusions in the policy documents that envisaged water sector and broader development
strategies in the country (sub-basin) are expected to provide mechanisms to mitigate
some, if not all, of these challenges. However, these strategies assume that there is plenty
of water potential to tap in from in the sub-basin. Economic water scarcity is considered
a greater challenge than physical water scarcity. Climate change scenarios and their
impact on water resources are hardly taken into account in the development of these
strategies.
The various policy documents propose a mix of policy instruments, some incentive based
and other command-and-control type instruments. The policy instruments are clearly
formulated in terms of their general intents (although found lacking in terms of specific
objectives and goals), jurisdiction and hierarchy of responsibilities and proposed
institutional changes, etc. Overall there is tendency to focus on command-and-control
type policies, more so in the environmental policy documents, than carefully devised
incentive mechanisms for improved environmental management. The tone in the policy
documents is heavily loaded with the need for third party enforcement (the relevant
ministry/agency supervising and regulating economic agents‘ behavior) than to relay on
self-enforcement. This does not mean that the government should not assume a role in
environmental management. On the contrary, international and local experiences indicate
that the government has a key role to play in providing incentives to actors to adopt
improved environmental management strategies. But there is a consensus that policy
instruments building on command and control, like regulations and mandatory soil
conservations schemes, have limited or negative effects (Pagiola et al., 2002; Sterner,
2003; Kerr et al., 2007; Ekborn, 2007). Likewise, information and extension advise have
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
228 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
had limited, although generally positive impacts. There is a need for increased use of
positive incentives, like payment for environmental services, to address land degradation
problems in developing countries (Ekborn, 2007). Gebremedhin (forthcoming) also
suggests the need to carefully assess whether the proposed policy instruments address
incentive problems of actors form improved environmental management.
Acknowledgement
The study leading to this result is financially supported by the Challenge Program on
Water and Food (CPWF). The authors are grateful for their generous support. Our
gratitude also goes to the farm households who were willing to respond to our questions.
References
Ananda, J., Crase, L. and Pagan, P.G. 2006. Preliminary assessment of water institutions in
India: An Institutional design perspective. Review of Policy Research. Volume 23, 4:
927-953.
Awulachew, S. B., McCartney, M., Steinhaus, T. and Ahmed, A. M. 2008. A review of
hydrology, sediment and water resources use in the Blue Nile Basin. Draft. International
Water Management Institute.
Bandaragoda, D. J. 2000. A Framework for institutional analysis for water resources
management in a river basin context. IWMI Working Paper 5. Colombo, Sri Lanka:
International Water Management Institute.
BGRS (Benishangul Gumuz Regional State). 2006. Revised Benishangul Gumuz National
Regional State Executive Organs Re-establishment, Organization and Determination of
their Powers and Duties. Proclamation no. 56/2006). Lissane Hig Gazeta, 13th
year No.
56, May, 2006. Assosa.
Bojo, J and Cassells, D. 1995. Land Degradation and Rehabilitation in Ethiopia: A
Reassessment. AFTES Working Paper No. 17, Washington D.C: World Bank.
Council of Amhara National Regional State (CANRS). 2006a. Revised Amhara National
Regional State Executive Organs Re-establishment, Organization and Determination of
their Powers and Duties. Proclamation no. 120/2006). Zikre Hig, 11th
year No. 2, January
25, 2006. Bahir Dar.
Council of Amhara National Regional State (CANRS). 2006b. The Revised Amhara National
Regional State Rural Land Administration and Use. Proclamation No. 133/2006). Zikre
Hig, 11th
year No. 18, May 29, 2006. Bahir Dar.
Deininger,K.; Daniel Ayalew Ali, Stein Holden, and Jaap Zevenbergen. 2007. Rural land
certification in Ethiopia: Process, initial impact and implications for other African
countries. World Bank Policy Research Working Paper 4218. The World Bank. 33 p.
Desta, L. Kassie, M. S. Benin and J. Pender. 2000. Land degradation and strategies for
sustainable development in the Ethiopian highlands: Amhara Region. Socio-economics
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
229 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
and Policy Research Working Paper 32. International Livestock Research Institute.
Nairobi, Kenya.
EFAP. 1993. Ethiopian Forestry Action Program: 3 Volumes, Ministry of Natural
Resource Development, Addis Ababa.
Ekborn, A. 2007. Economic Analysis of Agricultural production, Soil Capital and land Use in
Kenay. PhD thesis, Department of Economics, University of Gothenburg.
EPLAUA (Environmental Protection, Land Administration and Land Use Authority). 2007. Soil
Conservation Works Implementation, Monitoring and Evaluation Guideline. November,
2007. Bahir Dar. Mimeo. PP..
FAO. 1986. The Highlands Reclamation Study – Ethiopia. Final Report. Volumes 1 and 2. Food
and Agriculture Organization of the United Nations, Rome.
FDRE. 1996. National Conservation Strategy: The Resources Base, Its Utilization and Planning
For Sustainability. Volume I. National Conservation Strategy Secretariat, Environmental
Protection in collaboration with Ministry of Economic Development and Cooperation.
Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 1997a. Environmental Policy of Ethiopia. Environmental Protection Authority In
collaboration with the Ministry of Economic Development And Cooperation. Addis
Ababa, Ethiopia. 28 Pp.
FDRE. 1997B. RURA1 LAND ADMINISTRATION PROCLAMATION, NO. 89/1997. ADDIS ABABA.
FDRE. 2002a. Environmental Protection Organs Establishment Proclamation. Proclamation No.
295/2002. Federal Negarit Gazeta, 9th
year no. 7. Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 2002b. Environmental Pollution Control Proclamation. Proclamation No. 300/2002.
Federal Negarit Gazeta, 9th
year no. 12. Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 2002c. Environmental Impact Assessment Proclamation. Proclamation No. 299/2002.
Federal Negarit Gazeta, 9th
year No. 11. Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 2005a. Definition of Powers and Duties of the Executive Organs of the Federal
Democratic Republic of Ethiopia Proclamation. Proclamation No. 471/2005‖ Federal
Negarit Gazeta. 12th Year No. 1. ABABA 17th November, 2005
FDRE. 2005b. Expropriation of landholdings for Public Purposes and Payment of
Compensation. Proclamation No. 455/2005‖.Federal Negarit Gazeta. 11th
year no. 43.
15th
July 2005. Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 2005c. Federal Rural Land Administration and Use Proclamation. Proclamation No.
456/2005‖. Federal Negarit Gazeta. 11th year no. 44. 15th July 2005. Addis Ababa.
FDRE. 2007. River basins and Authorities Proclamation. Proclamation No. 455/2005‖.
Proclamation No. 534/2007‖Federal Negarit Gazeta. 13th
year no. 40. 23rd July 2007.
Addis Ababa.
Gebremedhin, B. Forthcoming. Incentives for soil conservation and their application in the east
African countries. In Investments in Sustainable Agriculture in east Africa. Resources
for the Future.
Gebremedhin, B., and Swinton, S.M., 2003. Investment in soil conservation in Northern
Ethiopia: the role of land tenure security and public programs. Agricultural Economics
29: 69–84.
Gebremedhin, B., Pender, J. and Ehui, S. 2003. Land Tenure and Land Management in the
Highlands of Northern Ethiopia. Ethiopian Journal of Economics, 3(2): 46–63.
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
230 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Gizaw, T. 2004. River Basin Institutions – The Ethiopian Experience: Institutional Set up Studies
of The Ethiopian Nile (Abbay) Basin Project. Working Paper for Discussion.
Hagos, F. (2007). Impact of Land Registration and Certification on Investment: The Case of
Tigray Region. Mekelle Draft.
Hagos, F. and S. Holden (2006). Tenure security, resource poverty, risk aversion, public
programs and household plot level conservation investment in the highlands of northern
Ethiopia. Agricultural Economics, 34, 1-13.
Hagos, F., J. Pender and Nega Gebreselassie (1999) Land degradation and strategies for
sustainable land management in the Ethiopian highlands: Tigray region, Socio-economic
and Policy Research Working Paper, 25, International Livestock Research Institute,
Nairobi, Kenya.
Haileslassie, A., Peden, D., Negash, F., Gidyelew, T. (2006). Sediment sources and sinks in the
Gumera watershed, Ethiopia: implications for livestock water productivity in the Nile
River Basin. Proceeding of international conference on ‗The role of the River Nile in
Poverty Reduction and Economic Development‘, November 30 –December 2, United
Nations Conference Center, Addis Ababa, part II, pp 156-164
Haileslassie, A., Priess, J., Veldkamp, E., Teketay, D. and Lesschen, J.P., 2005. Assessment of
soil nutrient depletion and its spatial variability on smallholders‘ mixed farming systems
in Ethiopia using partial versus full nutrient balances. Agriculture, Ecosystems and
Environment. 108 (1), 1-16.
Hannam, I. 2003. A method to identify and evaluate the legal and institutional framework for the
management of water and land in Asia. The outcome of a study in Southeast Asia and the
People‘s Republic of China. Research Report, 73. International Water Management
Institute.
Hurni H., 1988. Degradation and conservation of resources in the Ethiopian highlands. Mountain
Research and development 8: 123-130
Hydrosult Inc, Tecsult, DHV and their Associates Nile Consult, Comatex Nilotica and T and A
Consulting. 2006. Transboundary Analysis: Abay – Blue Nile Sub-Basin. NBI-ENTRO
(Nile Basin Initiative-Eastern Nile technical regional Organization).
Kerr, J., Milne, G., Chhotray, V. Baumann, P., and James, A. J. 2007. Managing watershed
externalities in India: theory and practice. Environmental, Development and
Sustainability 9: 263-281.
Kolstad, C. D. 2000. Environmental Economics. Published by Oxford University Press. 400 pp.
Merrey, Douglas, J. 1993. Institutional contexts for managing irrigated agriculture. In The
institutional framework for irrigation, 1996, ed. C. Abernethy, 7–22. Proceedings of a
Workshop held in Chiang Mai, Thailand, 1-5 November 1993. Colombo, Sri Lanka:
International Irrigation Management Institute.
Ministry of Water Resources (MoWR). 2007. Tana Beles Integrated Water Resources
Development Project: Institutional and Capacity Building Studies. Draft Report.
December 2007.
MoWR, UNESCO and GIRDC, 2004. National Water Development Report for Ethiopia United
Nations Educational, Scientific, and Cultural Organization. World Water Assessment
Program. Addis Ababa. 284 pp..
Assessment of Local Land and Water Institutions in the Blue Nile and their Impact on Environmental Management
231 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
NBI. 2006. Baseline and needs assessment of national Water Polices of the Nile basin Countries:
A regional Synthesis. Shared Vision Program. Water resources planning and management
project. pp.70
OECD (Organisation for Economic Co-Operation and Development). 2007. Instrument Mixes
for Environmental Policy. 230 pp.
Pagiola, S., Bishop, J. and Landell-Mills., (Eds.). 2002. Selling Forest Environmental Services:
Market Based Mechanisms for Conservation and Development, London, Earthscan.
Saleth, M. R.; Dinar, A. 1999a. Water challenge and institutional response (A cross country
perspective), Policy Research Working Paper 2045. Washington DC: World Bank.
Saleth, M. R.; Dinar, A. 1999b. Evaluating water institutions and water sector performance.
World Bank technical Paper No. 447. Washington DC: World Bank.
Shiferaw, B., Okello, J., Reddy, R.V. 2007. Adoption and adaptation of natural resource
management innovations in smallholder agriculture: reflections on key lessons and best
practices. Environmental, Development and Sustainability 9: 263-281.
Stein Holden, Klaus Deininger and Hosa‘ena Ghebru. 2007. 2007. Land Certification, Land-
Related Investment and Land Productivity Impacts. Department of Economics and
Resource Management, Norwegian University of Life Sciences. Mimeo.
Sterner, T. 2003. Policy Instruments for Environmental and Natural Resource Management.
Washington D. C., Resources For the Future. 504 pp.
Sutcliffe, J. P. 1993. Economic Assessment of land degradation in the Ethiopian highlands: A
case study. Addis Ababa: National Conservation Strategy Secretariat, Ministry of
Planning and Economic Development.
Yesuf, M. and Pender, J. J. 2005. Determinants and Impacts of Land Management Technologies
in the Ethiopian highlands: A Literature Review. Mimeo. 96p.
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
232 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins:
The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
Tesfaye Tafesse1
1Addis Ababa University, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
In some parts of the world, including Africa, problems related to water scarcity and water stress (which is even worse) is evident. Currently, about one-third of the African population is experiencing water scarcity. For countries sharing transboundary rivers, the adoption of water governance in all their strategies is of paramount importance. For this to happen, cooperation among riparian states becomes indispensable. Cooperation can help in availing more water in the basin, reducing soil erosion, mitigating drought and ensuring food security. At present, there is more emphasis on the sharing of transboundary benefits rather than physical water per se. Whereas the former can bring about a zero-sum negotiation the latter can yield a positive sum outcome. The benefits that can be accrued through cooperation could be economic, environmental, social and political. The aim of this study is to highlight the concept of benefit sharing and benefit-sharing framework in general terms as well as in the context of the Eastern Nile Subbasin. By doing so, the study looks into some of the ongoing and planned Eastern Nile projects, with particular emphasis on the Joint Multipurpose Program (JMP), to test the degree of relevance of the issue of the benefit-sharing framework and to suggest the way forward. The findings of the study have indicated that benefit sharing in transboundary river basins is an outcome of a collaborative effort by the co-riparian states to reduce costs and increase outputs. It could also mean the management of shared waters more efficiently and effectively across all sectors, so-called sectoral optimization. The effects and impacts of joint investments in both upstream and downstream states can yield a bundle of benefits including, but not restricted to, flood control, reduction of sedimentation, availability of more water in the basin and hydropower production. These, in turn, can ensure food security, mitigate drought and avail renewable energy. For transboundary rivers such as the Nile, attempts should be made to identify the typologies of benefits, aspects of benefit sharing, scenarios of benefit sharing, and the optimization/maximization of benefits. With the better management of ecosystems cooperation can provide ‘benefits to the river’; with cooperative management of shared rivers benefits can be accrued ‘from the river’ (e.g., increased food production and power); with the easing of tensions between riparian states costs ‘because of the river’ could be reduced; and with cooperation between riparian states leading to economic integration comes ‘benefits beyond the river’. In terms of aspects of benefit sharing, issues related to benefit sharing for whom, by whom and because of who need to be addressed. Similarly, scenarios of benefit sharing
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
233 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
should be considered as phases or time perspectives by anchoring short-term works of strengthening the hitherto existing riparian links, medium-term tracking and improvement of in-country and transborder institutional arrangements for resource use and cooperation, and long-term efforts on investment in basin-wide joint development and programs. Due to the prevalence of centuries of hydropolitical stalemates in the Nile Basin, costs ‘because of the river’ remained high. The lack of cooperation impeded many of the basin states to reap little or no benefits from the river. The establishment of the Nile Basin Initiative (NBI) in 1999 has been marked as a strong departure compared to its predecessors. The Eastern Nile Subsidiary Action Program (ENSAP) and with it the Eastern Nile Technical Regional Office (ENTRO) have identified a number of projects, of which JMP stands out as one of the most significant ones. It aims to undertake multipurpose and multi-country programs of activities encompassing watershed and environmental management; and enhanced agricultural production and renewable energy. When this project gets grounded, it could mitigate natural resources degradation, alleviate poverty and enhance agricultural production. There is a possibility for the three Eastern Nile countries to accrue transboundary benefits. As things stand now, the three Eastern Nile countries need to first and foremost identify the bundle of benefits that can be generated from the project and then agree on the mechanisms by which they can realize the ‘equitable sharing of benefits’. They also need to formulate and sign a benefit-sharing treaty, develop a sound financial framework to realize the equitable sharing of benefits, costs and risks and the joint ownership of assets. Last but not least, the Eastern Nile countries should establish institutions that will manage benefit-sharing schemes and address issues such as mechanisms of delivering benefits.
Introduction
Water is a unique resource that plays a central role in the functioning of human society
and ecosystems. Now-a-days, as the demand for freshwater begins to outstrip the
available supply global water crisis is becoming more evident. Currently, one billion
people in the world live without access to clean water and about two billion have got no
access to sanitation. The UN forecast has shown that more than half of the world‘s
population suffers from the direct consequences of water scarcity. If the current situation
continues unabated, the same organization believes that over the next two decades the
average supply of water per person worldwide will drop by a third. For instance, it is
projected that by 2025 half of African countries will experience water stress and the
sharing of water will play a significant role in inter-state relations amidst a combination
of burgeoning population and recurrent drought/famine in some parts of the continent
(Tesfaye, 2001). Such water scarcity and even worse water stress in the African continent
will limit the growth of nations, brings about declines in their human health and further
degrades their resource base (Alavian 2000).
Although 60 percent of the African landmass is covered by transboundary river basins
that produce more than half of the continent‘s renewable water resources, about one-third
of its population (ca. 300 million people) is experiencing increasing water scarcity. As
stated by Lautze et al (2007), such a large dependence on transboundary waters requires
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
234 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
the adoption of transboundary water governance in all regional water strategies in the
continent. The key to these strategies is forging cooperation among riparian states that
share the dozens of transboundary rivers found in Africa. As stated by Grey and Sadoff
(2007), cooperative management of shared river basins can provide opportunities to (a)
increase the scope and scale of benefits, (b) generate basin-wide benefits and (c) establish
and sustain transboundary institutions. Cooperation becomes important not only to
improve water availability but also to tackle problems of soil erosion, mitigate drought,
ensure food security, avail hydropower and to prevent and monitor water pollution. In
short, cooperative transboundary water resource development is critically important in
helping to alleviate poverty and obtain economic benefits, including but not restricted to
flood control, irrigation and hydropower development activities.
Now more than ever before, there is a stronger emphasis on the sharing of benefits rather
than physical water. Many writers consider volumetric water allocations among riparian
states in shared river basins as obsolete and traditional (Grey and Sadoff , 2007; Giordano
and Wolf, 2003; Lautze and Giordano, 2007). They believe that such a stance brings
about winners and losers or zero-sum negotiations. Instead, they opt for equitable sharing
of benefits that is based on mutual agreement. The distribution of water benefits, they
believe, can bring about positive sum outcomes as has empirically been observed in the
case of the Mekong, Senegal, Orange and Columbia River Basins. According to
Qaddumi (2008), benefit sharing has been proposed as an approach to bypass the
contentious issue of property rights. The idea is that if the focus is switched from physical
volumes of water to the various values derived from water use in multiple spheres,
including economic, social, political, and environmental– riparians will correctly view
the problem as one of positive-sum outcomes associated with optimizing benefits rather
than the zero-sum outcomes associated with dividing water. Even then, the author of this
paper believes that the significance of water allocation for the hitherto disadvantaged co-
basin states such as Ethiopia should not be minimized or sidelined.
The aim of this study will hence be to highlight the concept of benefit sharing and benefit
sharing framework in general terms as well as in the context of the Easter Nile sub-basin.
By so doing, the study attempts to define and conceptualize benefits in the context of
shared water resources and discuss the framework of benefit sharing in terms of
typologies, scenarios, directions, valuations, optimization/ maximization, distributions
and costs. The study has looked into on-going and planned EN projects, most particularly
the joint multi-purpose project (JMP) to test the relevance and applicability of benefit
sharing and to suggest the way forward.
It should at the outset be stated that the issue of benefit sharing is in its infancy, having
neither a fully tested methodology nor a planned worldwide experience (Woodhouse and
Phillips, 2009). Most of the international literature generated to date on the sharing of
benefits is of a ‗soft‘ nature, and there is a need for much greater specificity. The
aforementioned authors stated that where transboundary benefit sharing currently exists,
it is more often the result of long-term influences and activities than a deliberately
planned approach. Besides, the fact that benefit sharing encompasses economic,
environmental, social and political elements with some of them being measurable and
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
235 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
others not makes the issue much more complex. It is against these sets of limitations that
the study tries to shed some light into the concept and framework of benefit sharing, with
particular reference to the Eastern Nile sub-basin.
The concept of benefit sharing
Benefits can mean anything that society recognizes as valuable, such as livelihood
improvement, food security, gender equality, amelioration of ecosystems and
biodiversity, aesthetics, ethics etc. As stated by Woodhouse and Philips (2009), benefit
sharing is an outcome of a collaborative effort at different levels that in the end can
reduce costs and increase outputs. In the context of transboundary basins, benefit sharing
can mean the management of water more effectively across all sectors with the intent to
generate benefits to all stakeholders. The idea of benefit sharing revolves in and around
sectoral optimization, with the optimization of water use in one sector leading to
optimization of water use in another sector.
Looked at from upstream-downstream perspective, for instance watershed management
projects in upstream states can yield shared benefits through control of floods, reduction
of siltation, prevention of water pollution, availability of more water in the basin and
reduction of erosion in downstream states. Similarly, upstream joint investments in the
production of hydropower can avail power at reasonable price to the co-riparian states.
The effects and impacts of joint investments will be felt in the basin via developments
such as irrigation and power, which in turn can ensure food security, mitigate drought and
avail renewable energy.
In any transboundary river basin, cooperation can yield economic, environmental, social
and political benefits. The economic benefits may include power production and
transmission, agricultural intensification, fisheries and industry, while the environmental
benefits include watershed management, soil conservation, water regulation, flood
control and afforestation. Similarly, the social capital benefits may include capacity
building, training and skill sharing, while the political ones stability, integration,
cooperation, rural water supply and rural electrification. The list is not exhaustive and
may include more benefits that may or may not be measurable. That is why it becomes a
difficult and complex task to calculate benefit sharing. It is hence incumbent upon the
riparian states to identify value and share the bundle of benefits in a manner that is agreed
as fair and transparent.
Benefit sharing should also include all forms of available water while building scenarios.
These include blue water (surface plus ground), green water (water entrenched in the soil)
and grey water (water that can be re-usable after treatment). Similarly, the ‗basket of
benefits‘ approach is preferred and recommended than a project by project approach. The
importance of the ‗basket of benefits‘ approach lies in the fact that it spells out all
possible benefits from common resources and joint investments. As argued by
Woodhouse and Phillips (2009:9), ―negotiating on a project by project basis can easily
result in a stalemate – whereas the basket of benefits approach means opportunities can
be modified and changed until an acceptable outcome is agreed by all‖.
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
236 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Benefit sharing framework
In this section, attempts will be made to illustrate the underlying set of ideas or
frameworks of benefit sharing in terms of typologies, aspects and scenarios.
Typologies of benefits
As stated by Sadoff and Grey (2002a), with better management of the ecosystems
cooperation can provide ‗benefits to the river‘; with cooperative management of shared
rivers benefits can be accrued ‗from the river‘ (e.g. increased food production and
power); with easing of tensions between riparian states costs ‗because of the river‘ could
be reduced; and with cooperation between riparian states leading to economic integration
comes ‗benefits beyond the river‘.
As exemplified in Table 1, there are challenges and opportunities embedded in the
aforementioned benefits. Transboundary cooperation could enable basin states to
overcome various challenges, such as degraded watersheds, increased demand for water,
tense regional relations and regional fragmentation and furnishes opportunities, such as
improved water supply, soil conservation, more agricultural and power production,
cooperation and integrated regional markets and cross border trades.
Table1: Types of cooperation and benefits on international rivers
Types of cooperation The challenge The opportunities
Type 1: increasing
benefits to the river
Degraded water quality,
watersheds, wetlands, and
biodiversity
Improved water quality, river flow
characteristics, soil conservation,
biodiversity and overall
sustainability
Type 2: increasing
benefits from the river
Increasing demands for
water, sub-optimal water
resources management and
development
Improved water resources
management for hydropower and
agricultural production, flood-
drought management,
environmental conservation and
water quality
Type 3: reducing
costs because of the
river
Tense regional relations
and political economy
impacts
Policy shift to cooperation and
development
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
237 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Type 4: increasing
benefits beyond the
river
Regional fragmentation Integration of regional
infrastructure, markets and trade
Source : Sadoff and Grey. 2002: 393
Some real world examples of economic and non-economic benefits that can be accrued as
a result of cooperation endeavors will be mentioned hereunder (summarized from Sadoff
and Grey, 2002a).
(a) ‗Benefits to the River‘ (‗Ecological River): Cooperative efforts to restore and protect
shared river basins have been exemplified by Rhine River (ibid). Due to the pollution of
the Rhine, Salmon (fish) disappeared from the river in the 1920s. In due cognizant of the
problem, the ministers of the eight riparian states met in 1987 and came up with a plan to
repopulate the river with Salmon under the motto ‗Salmon 2000‘. As a result of the
concerted efforts made by the basin states and the allocation of enough fund, Salmon
resurfaced in Rhine as planned in 2000. The lessons one can draw from this example is
how cooperation on shared water resources yields ecological benefits to the river.
(b) ‗Benefits from the River‘ (Economic River): in this context, two examples could be
given. The first one refers to the Senegal River where Mali, Mauritania, Guinea and
Senegal are cooperating to regulate river flows and generate hydropower using common
resources and designing fair benefit sharing mechanisms. The Senegal River Basin
Organization (OMVS) achievements to date include: (a) the construction of two dams
and hydropower plants, (b) implementation of environmental management projects, (c)
creation of the observatory of the environment and (d) adoption of a water charter
(ENTRO, 2007).
The second example takes us to the Lesotho Highlands Water Project (LHWP) that has
been designed to harness the Orange River for the benefit of both Lesotho and South
Africa. As noted by Vincent Roquet & Associates Inc. (2002: 50), LHWP had dual
purposes: (i) to control and redirect a portion of the water of the Orange River from the
Lesotho mountains to the Vaal River basin through a series of dams and canals for
utilization in the Guateng Province of South Africa, (ii) to take advantage of the head
differential between the highlands and lowlands of Lesotho to generate hydropower in
Lesotho to meet its own needs.
In order to attain both purposes, the two parties have agreed to share the cost of
construction in rough proportion to the share of their anticipated benefits. According to
the agreements reached between the two countries, South Africa has agreed to pay
Lesotho royalties for water transferred for 50 years (it currently accounts for 5% of
Lesotho‘s GDP) and Lesotho will receive all the hydropower generated by the project.
Both parties have considered the water and power deals as equitable allocations of
benefits (Sadoff et al, 2002a).
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
238 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
(c) ‗Because of the River‘ (Political River): the costs incurred due to the presence of
shared water resources have remained higher in rivers flowing through arid and semi-arid
environments, such as the Jordan, Nile and Euphrates-Tigris. Tensions and disputes,
which have long remained the norms than exceptions in these river basins, inhibited
regional integration and facilitated fragmentation. As noted by Sadoff et al (2002a: 398)
with reference to the above-stated rivers, ―little flows between the basin countries except
the river itself – no labor, power, transport or trade‖.
(d) ‗Benefits beyond the River‘ (Catalytic River): it envisages other flows than the river
itself, such as improved communication and trade (ibid). The same authors (2002a: 399)
stated that ―cooperation on shared river management can enable and catalyze benefits
‗beyond the river‘, more directly through forward linkages in the economy and less
directly through diminished tensions and improved relationships‖. A good example for
such a benefit is the Mekong Basin. During years of conflicts in the region, Laos always
provided hydropower to Thailand. Similarly, Thailand has always purchased gas from
Myanmar and Malaysia and hydropower from Laos and China. In effect, the riparian
transactions brought about mutual dependency.
Aspects of benefit sharing
In line with the above-stated typologies of benefits, one can assert that the most important
aspects of benefit sharing that need to be addressed include benefit sharing for whom, by
whom and because of whom. One needs to identify the stakeholders who are involved in
benefit sharing, i.e. whether it is government to government or people to people or civil
society to civil society. In other words, benefit sharing should be looked at different
levels and need not be restricted at the macro level alone. One also needs to go beyond
large infrastructure projects such as, the generation of streams of electricity or the
prevention of watershed degradation. The grass root benefits that trickle to the rural poor
be it in terms of rural electrification or small-scale irrigation need to be identified.
In order to trace the direction of benefits, we need to pose questions, such as where do
benefits go and whether they go to the people or the private sector. This will lead us to
the fundamental question of valuing benefits by which we need to weigh, for instance,
watershed/flood protection benefits versus increments in high value cash crops because
of irrigation benefits. Once this is done, the next task will be to monetize (value) benefits
and share them by building mechanisms. One also needs to take into consideration the
different aspects of benefit sharing including direct vs. indirect, tangible vs.
immeasurable, planned vs. spillover and domestic vs. transboundary.
In line with what has been stated above, the basin states need to ponder over issues
related to the mechanisms of benefit sharing in the basin, the time scale involved in
reaping shared benefits, the likelihood of benefits being realized in terms of planning in
time scales (ten, fifteen, twenty years or more), the degree to which the existing political
economies in the basin affect the fairness and transparency of benefit sharing. There must
be a minimal level of benefit sharing in a descending order that will take us into a real
economic integration on the basis of shared resources, i.e. ‗benefits beyond the river‘. For
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
239 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
instance, the planned power transmission between Ethiopia and the Sudan should not be
taken as end in itself but rather as a means to an end. The grids should rather be used as
drivers of integration irrespective of the time it takes to generate benefits to Ethiopia or to
translate the benefits to real growth. One needs to bring in lessons from attempted
regional integrations in Africa and elsewhere where there had been problems of
translating political agreements into economic benefits. The integration attempts failed
simply because there was a major lag between political will and economic benefits that in
turn resulted in the frustrations of people.
Benefit sharing does not only mean the generation of benefits. It should also look at the
distribution of benefits and the distribution of costs. Costs have to be part of the benefit-
sharing framework with a built-in benefit-cost sharing mechanism.
Scenarios of benefit sharing
Prior to the construction of big dams in upstream states (e.g. Ethiopia, DRC), there is a
need to come up with short, medium and long-term scenarios. Scenarios could be
considered as phases or time perspectives of benefit sharing. Short-term works of
strengthening the already established links and benefits through different initiatives and
continuous rational dialogue among co-basin states could be considered as short-term
scenario. A medium-term scenario could be tracking and improving in-country
institutional arrangements for shared resource use and cooperation as well as in building
benefit-cost sharing mechanisms. In the long term, one can think of efforts needed to
bring about investments in multi-purpose joint development projects and programs that
can potentially yield a ‗basket of benefits‘.
The short-term scenario in shared river basins may dwell on the benefits that have already
been achieved in the basin. These include, among others, the establishment of river basin
institutions, such as the NBI (‗benefits to the river‘), the continuous dialogue that is
taking place between Nile riparian states to come up with a permanent Nile Basin
Commission and the building up of confidence among the relevant stakeholders who
have got a stake in the river. The medium scenario could, for instance, be changes in the
regulation of reservoirs, which would maximize hydropower potential, develop irrigation,
control flood and reduce siltation. These benefits can facilitate cross-border trade
amongst the riparian states. Lastly, long-term impacts could be funding joint multi-
purpose projects such as, large-scale irrigation, watershed conservation and biodiversity
conservation.
There are also medium-term long impacts and long-term high impacts. The former
include a bundle of benefits related to access to markets for different goods, development
of joint flood protection measures and joint water management, while the latter the
development of integrated river basin management system combining power transmission
with dams and irrigation, so called high impact multi-purpose projects. A good example
for the latter could be the envisaged/planned multi-purpose project on the Blue Nile River
at Kara Dobi site in Ethiopia.
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
240 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Although, in principle, cooperation is a search for win-win solutions, still optimization or
maximization of benefits needs to be quantified in time, place and in terms of the
maximum value that can be generated. Different types of intervention in different
countries jointly or unilaterally may have multiple benefits and costs differentiated by
space/place and time. Optimization of benefits among basin countries needs also to be
considered in the context of dynamic economic, social and political relations in the basin.
Trade relations, experience of joint programs, similarity in major policy direction,
tradition of cultural and social relations and history are among factors that would
influence the venture of benefit sharing and cooperative arrangement.
An important task that deserves close attention is identifying the focus of the benefit
sharing and ensuring ways of supporting the economic and social development of the
people in the basin without losing sight of conserving water resource for long term use,
controlling watershed degradation, minimizing any political upheavals among the basin
states, and facilitating cross-border trade. Of course, every measure to realize each
component would have effects on other components of the basin network.
It should also be made clear that in reality the political economies of some basin states
may not low other basin states to have an optimal benefit. For instance, more
environmental benefits may bring about less economic benefits and vice versa. The
former may have long-term economic benefits but may not generate short-term gains. For
instance, the benefits of watershed program may require 20 to 30 years of realization
times. Each basin state can hence seek to optimize but need to agree on the nature of the
framework of optimization. In order to sort out such benefits, the Nile basin states need to
draw lessons from the Lesotho Highlands Conservation Project where there have been
lots of debates about benefit sharing frameworks. As has been discussed in the previous
section, the Lesotho Highlands Project brought about water for South Africa, power and
royalties for Lesotho but miseries for people who used to live in the inundated areas.
Examples for the latter include externalities such as, displacement, resettlement and
environmental changes. The parties have failed to give support measures for
development and welfare opportunities for local and regional communities that have
negatively been affected by the project, e.g. cash compensation. Despite the completion
of the Lesotho Project, there are still quite a lot of controversies on the actual impact,
with the resettlement issue being still outstanding.
Benefit sharing in the context of the eastern Nile sub-basin
The Nile is the longest river in the world that traverses 10 states. The basin encompasses
3.35 km2 areas, i.e. 10 percent the continent‘s landmass, and is inhabited by 40 percent of
Africa‘s population. The Nile Basin is home to 160 million people in ten riparian states,
namely Burundi, Democratic Republic of Congo (DRC), Egypt, Eritrea, Ethiopia, Kenya,
Rwanda, Sudan, Tanzania and Uganda. Of the ten Nile riparian states, four of them live
under ‗water scarcity‘ situations.
Due to the prevalence of centuries of hydropolitical stalemates in the Nile Basin, costs
‗because of the river‘ have remained high in the basin. The various attempts that were
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
241 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
made to forge cooperation and bring ‗benefits to the river‘ amongst the co-basin states via
Hydromet, Undugu and TECCONILE did not bring the desired fruit. A strong departure
has been made with the launching of the Nile Basin Initiative (NBI) in 1999 in Dar es
Salaam, Tanzania. It has been established as a transitional mechanism pending the
establishment of a permanent Nile Basin Commission. The latter requires, inter alia, the
signing or ratification of a Cooperative Framework Agreement (CFA), which is still in
limbo. The major objectives of the NBI include addressing the region‘s brewing water
conflict, reducing poverty and promoting economic integration (ibid). The establishment
of the NBI is in conformity with the 1992 Dublin Principles and the Rio Conference,
which called for global consensus for a participatory cooperative approaches to water and
water resources development. As stated by Alavian (2008:8) ―the fact that this many
countries [10] with very different economic, political and development objectives and
positions have recognized that there is more to be gained by cooperation than conflict,
with water as the catalyst, is a major step forward‖.
The NBI is composed of two complementary programs, namely the all-basin Shared
Vision Program (SVP) and the sub-basin Subsidiary Action Programs (SAP). The latter
are meant to come up with investment programs with the intent to translate the vision into
action. In the Eastern Nile sub-basin, ENTRO has come up with a number of projects,
which include, among others, watershed management, irrigation & drainage, Ethio-Sudan
power transmission, regional power trade and Joint Multipurpose Program (JMPs). Some,
if not all of the projects, have gone through feasibility stages and are awaiting funds for
their implementation. Of these projects/programs, this study has considered JMP as an
example to contextually discuss the benefit sharing framework.
JMP is a joint undertaking by the three EN countries, namely Egypt, Ethiopia and Sudan,
to use the shared resources as entry points to foster economic integration through multi-
purpose projects that go beyond the water sector (ENTRO, 2008). Its immediate
development objective is to undertake cooperative and sustainable development and
management of the shared Blue/Main Nile water resources through multipurpose
storage/dam and power systems infrastructure, watershed and floodplain management
and the ‗selective‘ development of irrigation systems. According to ENTRO (2007), four
elements are included under JMP: (i) watershed and environmental management, (ii)
enhanced agricultural production, (iii) infrastructure with linked river and power systems,
and (iv) leveraged Growth and Integration.
It has been recognized by ENTRO that cooperative development and management of the
Eastern Nile Basin, as one river system, offers tremendous opportunities for economic
development. This could be achieved through a multi-country, multipurpose program of
activities that could increase power supplies, build reservoir capacity and enhance
agricultural production that can mitigate natural resource degradation, alleviate poverty
and support more sustainable livelihoods for the peoples of the EN sub-basin. According
to Blackmore and Whittington (2008), a large dam with over-year storage on the Abbay
(Blue Nile) is suggested to achieve the aforementioned benefits. The same authors
believe that a large multipurpose dam on the Abbay would meet the criteria for JMP
investments, including the generation of multipurpose benefits to all the three EN
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
242 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
countries in terms of hydropower, irrigation, flood control and regional cooperation. Put
in a nutshell, such JMP activities ―would make better use of the Blue Nile water to
produce more food and fiber, while at the same time reducing sedimentation and
enhancing environmental values‖ (Ibid:73).
Blackmore and Whittington (2008) have also itemized the benefits that can be accrued to
all the three EN countries after the construction of a large dam on the Blue Nile. The
authors mentioned that Ethiopia stands to benefit in financial terms from the sale of large
amounts of hydropower to downstream riparians; Sudan would benefit in several ways,
including flood control, improvements in seasonal navigation and reduction in sediment
loads reaching Sudanese reservoirs, while Egypt benefits from upstream storage by
receiving alternative sources of reliable power and increased opportunities for trade,
regional integration and cooperation.
Of the various projects of the JMP, special attention has been given to the development of
sustainable watershed management due to the existence of close inter-relationships
between watershed, environmental management and enhanced agricultural production.
ENTRO (2008) asserted that in the absence of watershed management interventions, soil
erosion, environmental degradation and deforestation will continue at accelerated rates,
reducing agricultural productivity and increasing the numbers of households falling at
and below the poverty line.
The JMP and other ENTRO projects should however consider a number of things related
to the identification of bundle of benefits (water and non-water related ‗basket of
benefits‘) and the realization of the ‗equitable sharing of benefits‘ to the Eastern Nile
countries. In the context of benefit sharing, the power benefits in Ethiopia should be
weighed against the bundle of downstream benefits in terms of flood control, availability
of more water downstream that could be used for irrigation due to regulated release as
well as watershed management in Ethiopia. Thus, for example, the downstream co-
riparians should generate benefits for Ethiopia, if the latter releases flows which could
otherwise be utilized upstream (at least theoretically).
Under the joint development program, i.e. JMP, there must be (a) a benefit sharing treaty
of the EN countries that should entitle the three riparian states to a lump sum payment for
various downstream and upstream benefits, (b) a sound financial framework for
transboundary water resources development which includes, among others, methods for
equitable sharing of the costs, the benefits and the risks and (c) building financial
mechanisms for joint ownership of assets. It should also be borne in mind that the
perception of benefits (and their usefulness) will alter over time, and any international
agreement based on benefit-sharing scenarios will need to take account of this.
The challenge appears not only in the identification of benefits but also to put them in a
realistic framework as funded and agreed upon by EN governments on multilateral basis.
Once this is done, the next important step would be to treatise the benefit sharing. Efforts
should hence be made to come up with the Eastern Nile Basin Benefit sharing Treaty
rather than restricting ourselves to the Eastern Nile Basin Waters Agreement.
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
243 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Conclusions
Due to the growing demand for freshwater in many parts of the world, including Africa,
water scarcity is becoming the norm than exception. In Africa, where there is a large
dependence on transboundary waters and about one-third of its people live under water
scarcity situation, transboundary cooperation becomes imperative. Cooperation does not
only avail more water in the basins but also tackle problems related to soil erosion,
drought, food insecurity, and power shortage and water pollution.
Transboundary cooperation can yield positive sum outcomes if more emphasis is made
on the sharing of benefits rather than water. This does not however mean that the
volumetric allocation of shared waters should be shelved aside. The emphasis on sharing
of benefits than water is borne more out of pragmatism and convenience than persuasion.
Looked at from upstream-downstream perspective, joint or cooperative investments at
both levels can yield a stream of shared benefits, including flood control, silt reduction,
power production and added water. These shared benefits in turn enable the riparian
states to ensure food security, mitigate drought and avail renewable energy. It is
incumbent upon the riparian states to list out, value and share the benefits in a manner
that will be taken as fair and transparent.
For transboundary rivers such as the Nile, attempts should be made to identify the
typologies of benefits, aspects of benefit sharing, scenarios of benefit sharing, and the
optimization/maximization of benefits. With the better management of ecosystems
cooperation can provide ‗benefits to the river‘; with cooperative management of shared
rivers benefits can be accrued ‗from the river‘ (e.g. increased food production and
power); with easing of tensions between riparian states costs ‗because of the river‘ could
be reduced; and with cooperation between riparian states leading to economic integration
comes ‗benefits beyond the river‘. In terms of aspects of benefit sharing, issues related to
benefit sharing for whom, by whom and because of whom need to be addressed.
Similarly, scenarios of benefit sharing should be considered as phases or time
perspectives by anchoring short-term works of strengthening the hitherto existing riparian
links, medium-term tracking and improvement of in-country and transborder institutional
arrangements for resource use and cooperation and long-term efforts on investment in
basin-wide joint development and programs.
Due to the prevalence of centuries of hydropolitical stalemates in the Nile Basin, costs
‗because of the river‘ remained high. The lack of cooperation impeded many of the basin
states to reap little or no benefits from the river. The establishment of the NBI in 1999
has been marked as a strong departure compared to its predecessors. ENSAP and with it
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
244 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
ENTRO have identified a number of project, of which JMP stands as one of the most
significant ones. It aims to undertake multipurpose and multi-country programs of
activities encompassing watershed and environmental management; enhanced
agricultural production and renewable energy. When this project gets grounded, it could
mitigate natural resources degradation, alleviate poverty and enhance agricultural
production in the Eastern Nile sub-basin. There is a possibility for the three Eastern Nile
countries to accrue transboundary benefits.
As things stand now, the three EN countries need to first and foremost identify the bundle
of benefits that can be generated from the project and then agree on the mechanisms by
which they can realize the ‗equitable sharing of benefits‘. They also need to formulate
and sign a benefit sharing treaty, develop a sound financial framework to realize the
equitable sharing of benefits, costs and risks and the joint ownership of assets. Last but
not least, the EN countries should establish institutions that will manage benefit sharing
scheme and address issues such as mechanisms of delivering benefits.
References
Alavian, V. 2000. Shared Waters: Catalyst for Cooperation. Rankin International Inc.
Amer, El-Din S., Yacob Arsano, El-battahani, A., Hamad, El-Tom; Hefny, Magdy and
Imeru
Tamrat. 2005. ―Sustainable Development and International Cooperation in the Eastern
Nile Basin‖. Aquatic Science, Vol. 67, pp. 3-14
Blackmore, D. and Dale Whittington. 2008. Opportunities for Cooperative Water
Resources
Development on the Eastern Nile: Risks and Rewards. An Independent Report of the
Scoping Study Team to the Eastern Nile Council of Ministers.
ENTRO. 2007. The Management of a Transboundary River: An African Cross-Learning.
Report on NBI‘s Eastern Nile Joint Multipurpose Program (ENJMP) Knowledge
Exchange study Tour to the Senegal River Basin. Addis Ababa (unpublished).
----------. 2008. Cooperative Regional Assessment (CRA) for Watershed Management:
Benefits of Watershed Management in the Context of a Joint Multipurpose Program.
Addis Ababa (unpublished).
----------. 2008. Joint Multipurpose Program Launch Phase Draft Report Executive
Summary. Addis Ababa (unpublished).
Fischer, Carolyn. 2005. Review of International Experience with Benefit Sharing
Instruments. A Report for the World Bank, Southeast Asia Division.
Giordano, M.A. and Aaron Wolf. 2003. ―Sharing Waters: Post-Rio International Water
Management‖. Natural Resources Forum, Vol. 27, pp. 163-171.
Kitissou, M. 2004. Hydropolitics and Geopolitics: Transforming Conflict and Reshaping
Cooperation in Africa. Africa Notes.
Lautze, J. and M. Giordano. 2007. ―Demanding Supply Management and Supplying
Demand
Management: Transboundary Water in Sub-Saharan Africa‖. The Journal of Environment
and Development, 16, 3, 290-306.
Benefit-Sharing Framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of the Eastern Nile Subbasin
245 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Pottinger, Lori. 2004. Can the Nile States Dam their way to Cooperation? International
Rivers Network (unpublished).
Qaddumi, H. 2008. Practical Approaches to Transboundary Water Benefit Sharing.
London: Overseas Development Institute.
Radis, A.M. 2006. The Role of Resource Sharing Initiatives in Peace Building: The Case
of Peace Parks. Unpublished BA Thesis.
Sadoff, W.C and D. Grey. 2007. ―Sink or Swim? Water Security for Growth and
Development‖. Water Policy Vol. 9, pp. 545-571.
------------------------------. 2002a. Beyond the river: the benefits of cooperation on
international rivers. Water Policy 4: 389-403.
-----------------------------. 2002b. Africa‘s International Rivers: an Economic Appraisal.
Washington, D.C.: The World Bank.
------------------------------. 2003. Cooperation on International Rivers: a continuum
for Securing and Sharing Benefits. Unpublished Manuscript.
The World Bank Group. 2002. Benefit Sharing from Dam Projects, Phase I Desk Study
Final Report.
Transboundary Management Guidance Committee. 2002. Development of a Sharing
Allocation Proposal for Transboundary Resources of Cod, Haddock and
Yellowtail on Georges Bank. Fisheries Management Regional Report, Canada.
Tesfaye Tafesse. 2001. The Nile Question: Hydropolitics, Legal Wrangling, Modus
Vivendi
and Perspectives. Muenster/Hamburg: Lit Verlag. Vincent Roquet & associates Inc.
2002. Benefit Sharing from Dam Projects – Phase I Desk
study (Final Report). World Bank.
Woodhouse, M. and David Phillips. 2009. Transboundary Benefit Sharing Framework:
Training Manual (Version 1). Prepared for Benefit Sharing Training Workshop.
Addis Ababa.
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
246 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture:
Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
Everisto Mapedza1, Amare Haileslassie2, Fitsum Hagos1, Matthew McCartney1, Seleshi
Bekele Awulachew1 and Tesfaye Tafesse3
1International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
2International Livestock Research Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 3Addis Ababa University, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
Transboundary water resource governance is premised on equitable water and water-related benefit sharing. Using the case of the Blue Nile (Ethiopia and Sudan), we explore the conceptual issues that need consideration in the crafting of cross-border cooperation within the water sector. First, drawing on global experiences with transboundary water management, we evaluate how upstream and downstream concerns are addressed by transboundary water management institutions. Second, we explore the kinds of institutional design and the issues which need to be considered to result in ‘win-win’ scenarios for both upstream and downstream users, as well as the mechanisms of benefit sharing negotiated amongst different stakeholders. Third, we examine ways of addressing equity and livelihoods in transboundary institutional arrangements. Finally, we attempt to assess how transboundary institutions can address broader historical, political and economic issues and their implications for sustainable transboundary water governance. This paper raises key issues that need to be addressed in establishing transboundary governance institutions.
Introduction
According to IWMI‘s 2006 Comprehensive Assessment Report, water scarcity (both
physical and economic) is a major concern for developing countries in their effort to
move out of poverty and meet the Millennium Development Goals (Molden 2007). The
Comprehensive Assessment also argues that with the current global water demands and
the increasing population, the demand for water will outstrip the available and potential
water resources if the current water development model is continued. Furthermore, water
resources do not coincide with administrative or political boundaries. Consequently, there
is a need to go beyond national interests and engage in transboundary water cooperation.
This paper is based on the ongoing upstream-downstream project which is being carried
out by IWMI and its partners in Ethiopia and Sudan. This project covers the
transboundary Blue Nile River, which is known as the Abbay in Ethiopia.
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
247 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
The concept of transboundary natural resources management is strongly related to
‗bioregionalism‘, which views the world as consisting of contiguous but discrete
‗bioregions‘ with the boundaries of each bioregion defined by nature rather than
legislation or political expedience (cf. Wolmer 2003). According to Tessera ―The Nile
River Basin in general hosts problems which call for regional or sub-regional
cooperation‖ (Tessera 2006: 44)‖ The severe erosion in the upper catchments of the
Abbay/Blue Nile River Basins has impacts downstream within and across political
borders. Since river basin problems cut across political borders, cooperation across the
Nile River Basin is necessary. In river basin management, absolute sovereignty does not
work since transboundary cooperation is needed. Sudan, for instance, views upstream
reservoirs in Ethiopia as being an efficient way to control floods and an efficient way to
store water as it reduces loss of water through evaporation in either Sudan or Egypt
which have higher temperatures compared to Ethiopia. The Wall Street Journal adds that
‗Engineers from both countries agree that dams in the cool and moist Ethiopian
highlands, storing water in deep natural gorges, would lose far less water to evaporation
than the Aswan Dam in the hot, dry Egyptian desert. They calculate the savings on
evaporation could compensate for the amount of water Ethiopia proposes to use for
irrigation‘ (The Wall Street Journal 23 November 2003).
The Nile Basin Initiative is an attempt to promote an Integrated Water Resource
Management approach within the Blue Nile River Basin. This is based on the realization
that sedimentation and siltation of dams and reservoirs downstream is a function of
upstream land uses. The increased frequency and magnitude of drought in the Ethiopian
Highlands has also affected the quality and quantity of water downstream in Sudan and
Egypt (cf. Tessera 2006). The impact of environmental degradation is forcing countries to
cooperate in order to address ‗common dangers‘ which cannot be effectively addressed
without the cooperation of other countries. Tessera (2006) notes that the impact of land
degradation in the sub-basin can hardly be solved by any means other than cooperative
watershed management. Silt accumulation in the Roseires Dam in Sudan is largely
attributed to the upstream activities in the Ethiopian Highlands. The Atbara and Blue Nile
are said to contribute 53% of seasonal waters but contribute 90% of the sediment in the
Nile (Tessera 2006). Sedimentation is also negatively affecting the Sennar and Aswan
Dams and the related irrigation schemes. The Upstream-Downstream project has found
that total storage loss in Sennar due to sedimentation is 660 Mm3 (i.e. 70% of its original
capacity) since the dam was built in 1925 and for Roseires is 1,200 Mm3 (i.e. 40% of
original capacity) since the dam was built in 1964 (Field visit 22-27 February 2008).
Despite sedimentation being bad for most dams and water reservoirs, in Egypt the
building of the Aswan High Dam has further denied downstream farmers the rich silt
which made the Nile valley very productive. This complicates assessment of costs and
benefits of upstream downstream water users within a river basin.
Downstream impacts of sedimentation include reduced benefits from irrigation,
hydropower, navigation, water quality, water quantity, flood control, fishing, and
recreation. Poor water quality will result in more expensive water purification methods
such as the special filters for the Khartoum water supply (Shapland 1997). Removal of
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
248 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
sediment in Sudan‘s reservoirs and related irrigation schemes accounts for half of the
operation and maintenance budget (cf. Ahmed 2000; Conway 2000). Sudan is further
spending US$800 million in flood mitigation measures. If mechanism could be put in
place upstream which would result in the reduction of, say, the flood mitigation budget,
Sudan may be willing to contribute financially towards sustainable upstream watershed
management costs. The Payment for Environmental Services (PES) component of this
study has found out that farmers are largely willing to pay in kind – rather than in cash
for improved upstream land and water management which benefits the downstream
dwellers (Alemayehu et al. 2008).
Steps towards transboundary cooperation
Attempts at cooperation and benefit sharing within the Blue Nile Basin go back to the
1960s. The 1959 Water Sharing Agreement allocated the Nile waters as follows: Egypt
66%, Sudan 22% and surface evaporation and surface seepage at High Aswan Dam at
12%. Ethiopia was not included in this water sharing agreement, nor were the other basin
countries (FAO 2007, p.8).
In 1967 the Hydrometeorological Survey of the Equatorial Lakes (Hydromet) was
launched with the support of the United Nations Development Fund (UNDP), with the
primary objective of enhancing the collection of hydro meteorological data. Hydromet
operated until 1992. In 1993 the Technical Cooperation Commission for the Promotion
and Development of the Nile (TECCONILE) was formed whose intention was to
promote development (World Bank 2005). In 1993, the Canadian International
Development Agency (CIDA) funded 10 Nile 2002 Conferences which aimed at
promoting dialogue and cooperation within the Nile Basin. In 1995 CIDA supported the
development of a Nile Basin action plan under the auspices of TECCONILE. In 1997 the
Nile Basin Council of Ministers requested the World Bank to lead and coordinate their
donor activities (World Bank 2005). In 1997, with UNDP support, the riparian countries
also established a forum for dialogue on a ‗Cooperative Framework‘ for the Nile Basin,
with three representatives from each riparian country.
In February 1999, the Nile Basin Initiative succeeded the TECCONILE. The NBI was
spearheaded by the Council of Ministers of Water Affairs of the Nile Basin states (Nile
Council of Ministers or Nile-COM). ‗The NBI seeks to develop the river in a cooperative
manner, share substantial socioeconomic benefits, and promote regional peace and
security. The NBI started with a participatory process of dialogue among the riparian
countries that resulted in their agreeing on a shared vision: to achieve sustainable
socioeconomic development through the equitable utilization of, and benefit from, the
common Nile Basin water resources, and a Strategic Action Program to translate this
vision into concrete activities and projects‘ (World Bank 2005).
Institutional Design Issues
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
249 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Transboundary River Basin institutions must represent the interests of the member states
without bias. This will result in the transboundary institutions acquiring legitimacy and
the necessary support.
Enabling policies and institutions should be in place to be able to monitor and enforce
compliance. The institutions carrying out this exercise must have meaningful powers but
they must also be accountable to both the upstream and downstream water users, with
higher level institutions having oversight powers only. It is important to recognize that
the need to satisfy societal requirements has expanded beyond the objective of simply
water supply. Increasingly a diversity of concerned parties and organizations seek input
into water related decision-making processes. The downstream and upstream water users
need to participate actively, not only in the first negotiation process, but also in the fine-
tuning of the transboundary water management arrangements over time.
Transboundary water governance institutions must not be disconnected from local level
institutions. This entails that there must be nested institutional arrangements where small
local institutions form the building blocks, which come together to create larger
management institutions. Thus multiple layers of management that link small-scale
interactions to larger, and ultimately basin scale actions. Experiences elsewhere
demonstrate that there tends to be a disconnection between the river basin management
institutions and the water users who are supposed to be served by the transboundary
water management institutions. For instance, at societal level, the Mekong River
Commission remains far removed from the basin water users (Hirsch 2006).
Experiences from the southern Africa region through the Southern African Development
Community (SADC) Protocol on Shared Watercourse Systems and its subsequent
amendments has helped to de-securitize the issue of transboundary water management
(Turton 2008; Ramoeli, 2002) and enabled Transboundary water management institutions
to be viewed as part of regional integration.
An institutionalized transboundary knowledge database is an important component of
sharing knowledge and resulting in confidence in the data used by the transboundary
institutions. The data is available to all stakeholders. In the Nile River Basin – the Nile
Basin Initiative is attempting to do that. The southern African countries have similar
initiatives for the Limpopo and Zambezi River Basins (Turton 2008; Ramoeli 2002). The
Volta Basin Technical Committee also includes all the six riparian countries in data
collection and validation (Lautze et al. 2008).
Benefit sharing in transboundary water governance
Whilst benefit sharing seems to have made significant strides theoretically, there are still
a number of operational issues which need to be resolved in the context of benefit sharing
in transboundary water governance. In this paper, benefit sharing is viewed as offering
flexibility to riparians to separate the physical distribution of river development (where
activities are undertaken), from the economic distribution of benefits (who receives the
benefits of those activities.) This allows riparians to focus firstly on generating basin-
wide benefits (a positive-sum exercise), and secondly on sharing those benefits in a
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
250 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
manner that is agreed as fair (see Sadoff and Grey 2005; cf. Turton 2008). Research
findings in the Upstream-Downstream study have to be juxtaposed to the wealth of global
experience on benefit sharing (Sadoff and Grey 2002, 2005; Yu 2007). The Payment for
Environmental Services (PES) results under the upstream-downstream project are an
important move in that direction. Benefit sharing takes place at various scales and levels.
In Ethiopia for instance, it may vary from a small watershed project, to regional
government, which may or may not coincide with hydrological zones, going up to the
transboundary level where international law and conventions begin to apply.
Who benefits and who loses from benefit sharing – some studies from Latin America are
beginning to caution that benefits can potentially accrue to the most powerful whilst not
addressing the needs of the poor and female headed households. An understanding of the
power relationships at different scales will help inform the structuring of benefit sharing.
In the Senegal River Basin, for instance, an artificial river flood is provided each year in
order to support local livelihoods (UNESCO 2003).
How do you develop sustainable and targeted funding mechanism which will be used to
‗compensate‘ those bearing the costs of watershed and transboundary river basin
management? Selling electricity at a cheaper price to the upstream country might benefit
the country as a whole – but not the specific watershed community. This might result in
poorly targeted incentives which might not reward the poor upstream farmers who are
bearing the cost of upstream river basin management. How are the payments going to be
made? Should the reward be for only good management or also for actively improving
the upstream areas within the river basin? Who pays and for what? (Poras and Grieg-
Gran, 2007). Most current transboundary benefit sharing initiatives are largely funded by
donors and non-governmental organizations.
Upstream-downstream cooperation delves into broader international relations and
political economy issues. What makes transboundary basin level management successful?
What is the power balance amongst the states that are involved (Hegemony, neo-
hegemony or realisms in international cooperation)? Transboundary Basin Management
in the Blue Nile seems to indicate power asymmetry that might be reflected in who
shapes what is considered ‗knowledge‘. Despite the establishment of ENTRO,
‗scientific‘5 data still seem to be contested and hardly shared (although this could be
improving). Confidence building and establishing trust will need to take place first before
detailed discussions on benefit sharing (cf. Sadoff and Grey 2005).
Transboundary benefit sharing presents different benefit sharing matrices in which water
allocation need not be the only potential benefit. It is possible to share benefits from
water without sharing the actual water (cf. Sadoff and Grey 2005). Within the Blue Nile
this is still a contested issue which needs to be resolved especially in light of the 1959
Water Sharing Agreement between Egypt and Sudan. Any transboundary river basin
management has to be grounded within the specific political and historical settings rather
than being an imposition of blue print solutions (cf. Merrey et al 2007).
5 Scientific data especially concerning the Nile can easily be politically ‘tainted’ in order to reflect the various country positions?
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
251 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Finally, transboundary benefit sharing is premised on the assumption that it‘s feasible to
establish these costs and benefits. In most river basins good practices take a lot of time to
produce results and this is further complicated by natural phenomenon such as climate
change and changing rainfall patterns which also potentially contribute towards land
degradation. Establishing causality in most river basins causes a lot of difficulties.
‗Values‘ are also normative, and largely depend on the specific contexts and communities
and it is often difficult to have a common understanding across sub-national level – let
alone international boundaries. The physical size of the basin means that local level
institutions dealing with local issues often find it difficult to acknowledge issues facing
others in the basin, who may be located many hundreds of kilometers away, and for
whom the key issues may be very different.
Conclusion
While transboundary water governance is the way forward for an integrated approach to
water management, there are number of issues that such an institutional architecture
needs to address. For the fluid ‗benefits beyond boundaries‘ to be meaningful to all the
individual countries involved, the issue of benefit sharing mechanisms need to be
critically reviewed in practice. Equity has also to be assessed at various levels from the
transboundary to the local level. Will equity at the transboundary level necessarily imply
equity at local level? How can all the stakeholders‘ maxmize the benefits whilst
minimizing the costs. Finally, transboundary institutional architecture has to be grounded
in the water historical trajectories. How do you deal with past agreements on water
sharing while moving forward with one shared vision on transboundary water
management? This is a further complex equity issue which addresses the weight that
needs to be given to existing water use.
Acknowledgements
This paper presents conceptual issues from the ongoing CP19 - Improved Water and
Land Management in the Ethiopian Highlands and its Impact on Downstream
Stakeholders Dependent on the Blue research being carried out in Ethiopia and Sudan, a
project of the CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food. This paper is a result of
the ongoing research work being carried out by IWMI and its partners.
References
Ahmed, S. E. 2000. Environmental Impact of the alluvial nature of the Nile on irrigated
agriculture in Sudan. In Comprehensive Water Resource Development of the Nile
basin: Priorities for the new century, 8th Nile2002 conference proceedings, Addis
Ababa, Ethiopia, June 26-30, 2000: 390-402.
Alemayehu, B., F. Hagos, A. Haileslassie, E. Mapedza, S. Gebreselassie, S. B.
Awulachew and D. Peden. 2008. Prospects for Payment for Environmental
Services in the Blue Nile Basin. Paper prepared for the CPWF Conference.
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
252 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Conway, D. 2000. The climate and hydrology of the Upper Blue Nile River. The
Geographical Journal 166 (1), 49-62.
Council of Ministers of Water Affairs of the Nile Basin States. 2001. Nile Basin Initiative
Shared Vision Program: Socio-Economic Development and Benefit-Sharing. Project
Document.
Food and Agriculture Organization (Content source); Jim Kundell (Topic Editor). 2007.
Water profile of Sudan. In: Encyclopedia of Earth. Eds. Cutler J. Cleveland
(Washington, D.C.: Environmental Information Coalition, National Council for
Science and the Environment). [First published in the Encyclopedia of Earth March
19, 2007; Last revised March 25, 2007; Retrieved January 28, 2008].
<http://www.eoearth.org/article/Water_profile_of_Sudan>
Hirsch, P. 2006. Water Governance Reform and Catchment Management in the
Mekong Region. The Journal of Environment & Development Volume 15 no. 2,
June 2006: 184-201
Lautze, Jonathan, Barry, Boubacar and Youkhana, Eva. 2008. Changing paradigms
in volta basin water management: customary national and transboundary. Water
Policy: 1-19.
Merrey, D.J., R. Meinzen-Dick, P. Mollinga and E. Karar. 2007. Policy and institutional
reform: the art of the possible. In Water for Food, Water for Life: A Comprehensive
Assessment of Water Management in Agriculture, ed. David Molden. UK: Earthscan
and IWMI.
Molden, D. 2007. Water for Food, Water for Life: A Comprehensive Assessment of
Water Management in Agriculture. Earthscan and IWMI: UK and USA.
Porras, I. and M. Grieg-Gran. 2007. All that Glitters: A Review of payments for
watershed services in developing countries. London: IIED.
Ramoeli, P. 2002. SADC Protocol on Shared Watercourses: Its History and Current
Sadoff, C. and Grey, D. 2005. Cooperation on International Rivers: A Continuum for
Securing and Sharing Benefits. Water International: 30 No. 4: 420-427. December
2005.
Sadoff, Claudia W. and David Grey. "Beyond the River: the Benefits of Cooperation on
International Rivers." Water Policy, Vol. 4 (5) pp. 389-403. 2002.
Shapland, G. 1997. River of Discord: International water disputes in the Middle East.
London: Hunt and Company.
Status. In Hydropolitics in the Developing World: A Southern African Perspective, ed.
Antony Richard Turton and R. Henwood, Pretoria: African Water Issues Research
Unit (AWIRU).
Tafesse, A. 2006. Watershed management approach in reversing soil degradation:
Ethiopian experiences and lesson learnt. In proceedings of Nile Basin development
forum: the role of the river Nile in poverty reduction and economic development in
the region. November 30- December 2 2006. Addis Ababa, Ethiopia page 174-195.
Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from Ethiopia and Sudan
253 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Transboundary Waters. Paper Presented at the First African Water Week Hosted by
AMCOW and the African Development Bank Tunis, Tunisia, 26-28 March 2008.
Turton, A.R. 2008. Reflections from South Africa on a Possible Benefit-Sharing
Paradigm for
UNESCO. 2003. Water for People Water For Life. UNESCO: Paris.
Wall Street Journal. 2007. Ravaged by Famine: Ethiopia finally gets help from the Nile.
Rodger Thurow, Electronic version on www.cindybeads.com/famine.htm accessed
on 16 September 2007.
Wolmer, W. 2003 Transboundary Conservation: The Politics of Ecological Integrity in
the Great Limpopo Trans-frontier Park, Journal of Southern Africa Studies 29 no. 1:
261-278.
World Bank 2005. Nile Basin Initiative, Efficient Water Use for Agricultural Production,
a Project Appraisal Document, AFRICA/MNA Region, AFTS2.
Yu, Winston. ―Benefit-Sharing Case Study: The Development of the Senegal River
Basin.‖ World Bank, unpublished 2007.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
254 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue
Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds,
Ethiopia
Befikadu Alemayehu1, Fitsum Hagos2, Amare Haileslassie1, Everisto Mapedza2, Seleshi
Bekele Awulachew2, Don Peden1 and Tesfaye Tafesse3
1 International Livestock Research Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia 2 International Water Management Institute, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
3 Addis Ababa University, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia
Abstract
In transboundary river basins, like the Blue Nile, conflicts over the use of water resources are growing and recent advances in sustainable resource management recognizes the need for approaches that coordinate activities of people dependent on a common resource-base to realize sustainability and equity. Payments for Environmental Services (PES) are a component of a new and more direct conservation paradigm and an emerging concept to finance conservation programs by fostering dialogue between upstream and downstream land users. Those kinds of approach are particularly useful if applied in basins where irrigation schemes are emerging and the service life of reservoir and irrigation canals, in downstream areas are threatened by the sediments moved from upstream region. Here we report the results of our study on the determinants of Willingness to Pay (WTP) and Willingness to Compensate (WTC) for improved land and water management practices in the Blue Nile Basin (Gumera and Koga watersheds). A total of 325 sample households were selected using a multi-stage sampling technique, and a structured and pre-tested questionnaire was used to collect data from the sample households. We applied Contingent Valuation Method (CVM) to elicit WTP using monetary and material payment vehicles. Our results showed that more households are willing to pay in labor than in cash. The mean WTP for improved land and water management was estimated at US$1.06 and US$1.3 months-1 household-1 for upstream and downstream farmers, respectively. Besides, 83.56% of the sample farm households showed WTC the upstream farmers in cash. However, the aggregate WTP falls far short of the estimated investment cost needed for ecosystem restoration. Among others, the number of livestock, size of arable land, access to education and credit by the sample farm households were identified to positively influence sample farmers’ WTP for restoration of ecosystem services and downstream farmers’ WTC for improved ecosystem regulation services. Therefore, institutions and policy measures that enhance environmental education, reduce poverty and foster stakeholders’ cooperation must be promoted.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
255 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Key words: Upstream; downstream; improved land and water management; Blue Nile
Basin; Transboundary Rivers
Introduction
The Nile Basin is one of the oldest river basins in the world where its ancient inhabitants
managed the land and water resources to make the valley a cradle of civilization, and
hitherto the national economy of the riparian countries remains heavily dependent on land
and water resources (Arsano, 2004). Competition for water exists between nations and
economic sectors. Present and potential conflict over water in the basin and watershed
scales stems from the increased food and agricultural needs generated by a rapidly
growing population. This potential conflict can also be viewed from the perspective of
deteriorating regulating ecosystem services in upstream and its impacts on water quality
and irrigation and hydropower infrastructures (e.g. sedimentation) in downstream parts of
the basin (Arsano, 2004; Haileslassie et al., 2008). In view of postulated new
development projects (e.g. irrigation and hydropower) along the Blue Nile, to meet
countries growing food demand, it is important to explore mechanisms that can restore
healthy ecosystem functioning and sustainable water uses in upstream and downstream
regions of the basin.
Payment for Environmental Services (PES) is a new and more direct conservation
paradigm to finance conservation programs. The principle of PES referred as those who
provide environmental services should be compensated for doing so and those who
receive the services should pay for the provisions (Stefano, 2006; Wunder, 2005). Thus,
PES is a sound principle to share the costs and benefits of environmental conservation on
an equitable basis among all stakeholders. This also applies to a watershed and means:
upstream communities produce watershed protection services at an opportunity cost,
while the downstream communities are consumers of these services with no payment.
Such benefits are positive externalities to the downstream communities and PES aims at
internalizing these benefits and to channel it to the upstream communities as an incentive
to pursue their watershed conservation practices. In addition to its offsite impacts, erosion
directly affects the livelihoods of the upstream community through land degradation and
dwindling agricultural productivity.
Therefore, PES principles applied to watershed management must accommodate the
downstream farm households willingness to compensate (WTC) the ecosystem service
provider and willingness of the both upstream and downstream farmer to pay (WTP) for
restoration of watershed‘s ecosystem services. To date little attention has been paid to the
use of PES as a tool for improved land and water management. This study was
undertaken in Gumara and Koga watersheds of the Blue Nile Basin (Ethiopia). Large
scale irrigation schemes are under construction in the downstream parts of these
watersheds. In both watersheds, high rates of erosion and sedimentation are anticipated
and mechanisms to mitigate impacts on the livelihoods of the community in upstream and
reservoirs in downstream are a major concern. The major objectives of this study were:
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
256 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
i) To investigate willingness of the sample farm households to pay (WTP) for
restoration of ecosystem services and to examine the downstream farm
households willingness to compensate (WTC) the ecosystem service provider
(i.e. the upstream farmers);
ii) To explore socio-economic and institutional drivers of WTP and WTC.
iii) To estimate the mean value of WTP and WTC.
Material and Methods
Location and biophysical settings of the study areas
Gumera and Koga watersheds are located in Tana sub-basin (Eastern part of the Blue
Nile, (Figure 2.1.)). The rivers draining Koga watershed originate from Mount Wezem
and discharge into Gilgel Abay which eventually drain into Lake Tana (Figure 2.1.).
While Gumera originates from Mount Guna and discharges into Lake Tana. The high
run-off and associated sediment flow from the upper part of these watersheds have
serious consequences on the downstream users and water bodies (e.g. Lake Tana and
reservoirs developed for irrigation). Koga and Gumera watersheds exhibit an elevation
range of 1890-3200 and 1782-3704 meter above sea level (masl (EMA, 1980))
respectively.
Figure:1 Location map of Koga and Gumera watersheds
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
257 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
As the result of this elevation difference, variables such as climate, vegetation and soils
show discrepancy (WRDA, 1994; FAO, 1986; FAO, 1984). The study watersheds exhibit
two major traditional climatic zones in Ethiopia: the DEGA (2300-3200 MASL) AND
WOYNADEGA (1500-2300 MASL). Woynadega climatic zone has a cool to warm semi
humid climate, with mean annual temperatures more than 200C. Dega climatic zone has a
cool and humid climate with annual temperature ranging between 100C and 20
0C. The
highest mean monthly rainfall, for both study watersheds, is recorded in July while the
highest potential evapotranspiration is in May.
Agriculture is the main stay of livelihood in both study watersheds. Crop and livestock
production are fully integrated and thus the production system can be referred as crop-
livestock mixed system. Traditionally, rainfed production of cereals, dominated by barley
(Hordeum vulgare) and wheat (Triticum durum and Triticum aestivum) in upstream areas
and teff (Eragrostis tef), millet (Eleusine coracana), noug (Guizotia abyssinica) maize
(Zea mays) in the downstream, is the main livelihood strategy in the two watersheds.
Additionally rice (Oryza sativa) and pulses such as chickpea (Cicer arietinum) and rough
pea (Lathyrus hirsutus) are important crops in the downstream of the Gumera watershed.
In the study watersheds, livestock play an increasingly important role in household
budget and coping strategies during times of drought. Livestock provide meat, milk,
energy. Manure fulfils important role through nutrient cycling between and within farms,
which enables the continued use of smallholder farms. Farmers usually have cattle
(e.g.Bos indicus), sheep (Ovis aries), goat (Capra hircus), horse (Equus caballus), and
donkey (Equus asinus).
Frequent flooding and severe erosion (1,643 Mg km-2
yr-1
) are major problems in the
downstream and upstream of Gumera watersheds respectively. In Koga watershed,
erosion rate as high as 1.66 Mg km-2
yr-1
are reported (MOWR, 2005). In response to
increasing demand for food and contrastingly dwindling agricultural production, the
Ethiopian government is considering Tana sub basin as the development corridor and
thus embarked on irrigation and hydropower development projects in the sub basin.
Accordingly dams in Gumera and Koga are under construction to irrigate 23,000 and
7,000 ha respectively (MoWR, 2005).
Sampling and data collection technique
This study is part of the project called ―Improved water and land management in the
Ethiopian highlands and its impact on downstream stakeholders dependent on the Blue
Nile Basin‖. The primary goal of the project is to enhance food security and improve
sustainability of livelihoods of poor rural people in the Ethiopian highlands of the Blue
Nile through better management and use of water and land, with minimum negative
impacts – and possibly positive impacts – downstream within Ethiopia and across
international borders (e.g. Sudan). Therefore the sampling process focused on highlands
of the Blue Nile basin and stratification of community into upstream and downstream.
In this study a multi-stage sampling technique was used to select the sampled farm
households. In the first stage, Koga and Gumera watersheds were objectively selected as
irrigation schemes are under development and upstream of the watersheds are degrading
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
258 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
due to strong magnitude of erosion. More importantly, it is often indicated that the
sedimentation of those dams and reservoirs will reduce the lifespan of the schemes and
thus mechanisms of improving regulating ecosystem services are strongly sought. In the
second stage, Peasant Associations (PAs), the lowest administrative units in Ethiopia,
were selected using random sampling procedure. In the third stage, sample farm
households were selected from each PAs using the lists of the farm households (in each
PAs) obtained from the PAs offices. 175 respondents from the upstream and 150 farmers
from the downstream communities were selected and a total of 325 farmers were
interviewed. Finally structured and pretested questionnaire was administered to the
sample farm households, in March 2008, to collect data on socioeconomic, policy and
institutional characteristics that related to households‘ WTC and WTP for improved land
and water management activities.
Theoretical and analytical models
Theoretical framework and hypotheses
Households decision whether to participate in a PES scheme or not could be modeled
using random utility theory (RUT). Consider an individual who has to choose between
two choice set of alternatives, for instance whether to participate or not participate.
Assuming that the individual has perfect discriminatory power and unlimited
information-processing capacity, allowing the individual to rank the alternatives in a
well-defined and consistent manner, then the individual acts rationally and chooses the
alternative with the highest level of utility. The researcher however does not observe the
individual‘s utility function. The indirect utility function iU can be decomposed into a
utility function that depends solely on factors that are observed by the researcher iV and
other unobservable factors that influence the consumer‘s choice i . The utility faction
could, hence, be written as:
iii VU
Equation 3 gives the true but unobservable (latent) utility for alternative i , iV is the
observable systematic component of utility, and i is the factor unobservable to the
researcher and treated as a random component (Hanemann, 1984). iV thereby becomes
the explainable proportion of the variance in the choice and i the non-explainable. As
the researcher cannot observe the individual‘s true utility function, a probabilistic utility
function is used in the estimation. The most appropriate probabilistic choice model to
apply depends on the assumptions made about the random parameter.
Assuming that the individual can choose between two alternatives, i and j , then the
probability that alternative i is chosen is given by:
jjijii VVobUUobP PrPr=
jji VVobPr ji
From this it can be seen that the higher the probability for choosing an alternative, the
larger the difference in observed utility. Since probability is defined on a cardinal scale,
so are the estimated utility scores (which is the reason why we obtain meaningful WTP
estimates). The input of the model is the observed choices, while the output, i.e. what is
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
259 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
to be estimated, is the difference in utility for the two alternatives, ( iV– jV
), characterized
by the utility for each attribute. Every respondent makes a discrete choice and has chosen
either alternative i or alternative j . As the choices are aggregated over individuals
(taking personal characteristics into account, if possible), the total observed per cent of
the sample that chooses alternative i is interpreted as the probability that an individual
with specific personal characteristics chooses alternative i . This is the same as saying that
the probability of choosing alternative i increase as the difference in estimated utility
between the two alternatives increases. Treating iV as a conditional indirect utility
function and assuming that utility is linearly additive, the observable utility for alternative i can be written as:
iV iix
where ix= piii xxx ,...,, 21 is the vector of the attributes (including a possible price
attribute) and covariates that influence the choice for alternative i , and is the
weighting (parameters) of the attributes.
The model given in Eq. 5 can be used to model the determinants of WTP. Furthermore,
following the theoretical model and empirical results of different studies on PES
elsewhere as well as considering the information from the informal survey, the following
ix variables were hypothesized to influence farmers WTP and WTC
Educational level of the household head: This is a dummy variable, which takes a value
1 if the household head is literate and 0 otherwise. Farmers‘ ability to acquire, process
and use information could be increased by education. Thus, education has been shown to
be positively correlated with farmers WTP and WTC for improved land and water
management practices (Tegegne, 1999; Ervin and Ervin, 1982; Noris and Batie, 1987,
Pender and Kerr, 1996, Asrat et al., 2004). Education is expected to reflect acquired
knowledge of environmental amenities. Therefore, it is hypothesized to have a positive
role in the decision to participate in improved land and water management practice so as
to be farmers WTP and WTC for improved land and water management activities.
Age of the household head: The effect of farmer‘s age in improved land and water
conservation decision can be taken as a composite of the effect of farming experience and
planning horizon. Whereas, longer experience has a positive effect, young farmers on the
other hand may have longer planning horizon and hence, may be more likely willing to
participate in improved land and water management. With more age farmer can become
risk averse to engage in improved land and water conservation practices. The net effect
could not be determined a priori. Featherstone and Goodwin (1993) suggested that age
greatly matters in any occupation and it generates or erodes confidence. As a matter of
fact, older farmers are more likely to reject in practicing improved land and water
management practices. On the contrary, younger farmers are often expected to take risk
due to their longer planning horizon (Tesfaye et al., 2000; Befikadu et al. 2008).
Therefore, in this study it is hypothesized that age has a negative influence on the
willingness to participate on improved land and water conservation activity.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
260 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Asset holdings: This variable represents the total amount of asset such as livestock and
tree. Animal raring is one component of the farming system of the study area. The
number of livestock owned (in tropical livestock unit ( TLU)) by a farmer was
hypothesized to positively relate to farmers‘ willingness to participate in improved land
and water management practices (Haileslassie et al., 2008, under review). Farmers own
more number of livestock, the probability of willing to pay for improved land and water
management increases (Dasgupta (1989). On the other hand, number of trees (e.g.
Eucalyptus camaldulensis) on homestead and distance farm plots was hypothesized to
influence WTP and WTC positively. Farmers in the study areas are claiming that tree
plating is becoming the best strategy to generate cash for the farm household (Pender and
Kerr 1997).
Size of own cultivated land: This variable represents the total owned cultivated land by a
household. It is an indication for the wealth status of a household. As land ownership is
equated with asset ownership, a farmer with large cultivable land is considered to be
wealthy. In addition, a farmer who owned a large size of cultivated land is expected to
have enough land to practice improved land and water management activities. Farm size
is often correlated with the wealth that may help ease the needed liquidity constraint
(Bekele and Holden, 1998). Norris and Batie (1987) found that large farms are more
likely to use conservation technology than small farms. Therefore, it is hypothesized that
size of the cultivated land is positively related with WTP and WTC the cost of improved
land and water conservation activity.
Distance to the nearest development center: This variable refers to the time a household
may need to walk to get the extension agent. The further an extension office located from
farmers‘ home, the less likely it is that farmers would have access to information.
Therefore, distance to the nearest development center is expected to be negatively related
to farmers‘ willingness in improved land and water management practices.
Dependency ratio: An increase in consumer – worker ratio (dependency ratio) reduces
the capability to meet subsistence needs, and also increase the personal rate of time
preference (Bekele and Holden, 1998). Thus, this variable is expected to have a negative
effect on farmers‘ willingness to participate in improved land and water conservation
activities.
Slope of the parcel: This variable is a dummy variable for slope category of a parcel,
which takes a value 1 if the slope is steep and 0 otherwise. The slope category of the
parcel has been found to positively affect the farmer‘s decision to invest in conservation
technology (Ervin and Ervin, 1982; Norris and Batie, 1987; Gould et al, 1989). The slope
variable is thus expected to have a positive effect on farmers‘ willingness to participate in
soil conservation practices.
Information, training and visit: Information, training and visiting has big role in
awareness creation about improved land and water management practice. It increases
farmers‘ willingness to practice improved land and water management activities. In the
context of this study, it refers to farmer participating in soil and water conservation
training program, radio/video show, participation on farmers' field day, and participation
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
261 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
in land and water conservation related meetings. If a nation desires a progressively
increasing number of farmers to undertake improved watershed conservation activities,
the implementation of substantial training program should get a high priority (Joyce,
2001). Therefore, information, training and visiting were expected to be correlated
positively and significantly with farmers‘ willingness to participate in improved land and
water management practices.
Assistance in land and water conservation practice: This variable is a dummy variable,
which refers to any form of watershed conservation support provided to the farmers in the
study area. It takes a value 1 if the respondent received any assistance from any source
and 0 otherwise. It is obvious that improved land and water conservation activity is costly
and it is difficult to see the benefit in the short term planning horizon. In other words,
physical watershed conservation practices require more labor, cash and materials, which
the farmer cannot afford. It is expected assistances in cash, material, technical and any
other incentives encourages the farmers to engage in conservation practices and in this
study we hypothesized that assistance will have positive and significant effects on
farmers‘ willingness to participate in improved land and water management practices.
Contingent valuation methods and scenario settings
For this study, contingent valuation method (CVM), econometric estimation and
descriptive statistics were applied. Contingent valuation method (CVM) can estimate the
value that a person places on a good. Many applications of the CVM deals with public
goods such as measuring WTP for environmental changes, for risk assessment, in
litigation, in policy formulation and for evaluating investments (Alberini and Cropper,
2000). In this study, we used the so-called double-bounded dichotomous-choice format to
illicit users‘ WTP. Initially land degradation impacts, possibilities and benefits of
rehabilitation covering the following scenarios were elaborated to the sample farmers:
Soil erosion has a serious on-site impacts agricultural productivity through
removal of the most nutrient-rich top soil (e.g. 1,643 Mg km-2
yr-1
in Gumera
and 1.66 Mg km-2
yr-1
for Koga watershed (show photos). On average this will
result in a yield loss of equivalent to 200US$ ha-1
yr-1
.
Off-site damage of erosion consists of deterioration in the quality of water and
downstream sediment deposition on reservoirs (show photos). For instance, in
Gumara, if the current situation will continue, the reservoirs capacity will
decrease by 2% in five years and this has strong implication on irrigable areas
and yield.
But this trend can be mitigated through an integrated watershed management
intervention that involves participation of upstream and downstream farmers.
The estimated average investment for such land rehabilitation in Ethiopia is
1370 ha-1. Farmers‘ participation will be through WTP and WTC either in
labor or in cash.
Next, a dichotomous choice payment question asks the respondent if he/she would pay
iB (initial bid amount) to obtain the good. There are only two possible responses to a
dichotomous choice payment question: ‗yes‘ and ‗no‘. Then following the response, a
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
262 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
follow up bid is presented as n
i
d
i andBB , where d
iB u
ii BB ). The bid value ( iB
) is
varied across respondents. It is important to note that the dichotomous choice approach
does not observe WTP directly: at best, we can infer that the respondent‘s WTP amount
was greater than the bid value ( d
iB ) or less than the bid amount ( n
iB ), and form broad
intervals around the respondent‘s WTP amount. Mean WTP is estimated statistically
from the data of responses obtained from respondents using STATA software.
Econometric estimation
Double-bounded dichotomous choice payment questions typically require a different type
of statistical analysis, based on the assumption that if the individual states his/her willing
to pay for the given bid amount, his/her WTP might be greater than the bid. If the
individual declines to pay the stated amount, than his/her WTP might be less than the bid.
In both cases, the respondent‘s actual WTP amount is not observed directly by the
researcher. Let WTP* be unobserved willingness to pay, which is assumed to follow a
distribution F ( ), where is a vector of parameters, and form an indicator, I that takes
on a value of one for ‗yes‘ responses and zero for ‗no‘ responses. The probability of
observing a ‗yes‘ (or I =1) when the respondent has been offered a bid equal to Bi is:
;1Pr1Pr *
iiii BFBWTPI ,
Whereas the probability of observing a ‗no‘ (or I =0) is simply ;iBF
, i.e. the
cumulative density function (CDF) of WTP evaluated at the bid value. The log likelihood
function of the sample is:
n
i
iiii BFIBFI1
;log.1;1log.
If WTP is normally distributed, F is the standard normal cumulative distribution
function and ;; ii BBF
, where the symbol denotes the standard normal
CDF, is mean WTP and is the standard deviation of the distribution. The parameters can be estimated directly by maximizing (2) using Maximum likelihood estimation
technique. The econometric results are reported in section 4 below.
Results and Discussion
Descriptive results
Sample household characteristics for selected continuous variables
Table 1 depicts eight continuous variables that characterize households‘ WTP and
MWTP across the sample strata. The mean age of the sample farm household head was
42.8 and the mean age values for willing and non willing farmer, to pay for improved
watershed management practices, were 41.1 and 46 respectively (Table1). A closer look
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
263 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
at the age structure of the sample farmers indicates that the mean age of those willing
farmers were younger than non willing farmers.
The mean size of land holding by the sample farm household is depicted on Table 1. The
overall mean value of land holding in the study sites was 1.8ha. There were no apparent
differences, in mean size of land holding, between upstream and downstream. Mean
differences in size of land holdings by willing and non-willing farmers was not also
strong (about 1.81 ha for willing and 1.84 ha for non-willing with T value of 0.292).
Perhaps frequent land redistribution that took place in the region can better explain this
weak disparity. Despite the increasing trends of land leasing practices in the study
watersheds, the mean value of leased-in land by the sample household was only 0.0002
ha and thus could not influence the overall mean of land owned.
Unlike the size of land holding, mean values of assets on land (e.g. number of trees and
livestock measured in Tropical Livestock Units (TLU6)) showed apparent differences
between upstream and downstream and between the willing and non-willing farmers. For
example the mean values of trees per sample farm households for downstream farmers
were three times higher than the upstream. There were also distinct differences between
non-willing (149.6 trees per sample farm households) and willing (556.2) farmers. We
found that number of trees owned were negatively correlated with distances of the farm
to nursery sites (r= 0.56; p=0.03). Similar trends of TLU possession were observed. In
general, the association between farmers‘ willingness to pay in cash for improved land
and water management and the assets on land could be accounted for by the fact that
trees and livestock are major sources of household cash income and thus enable the
farmers to invest in improved land and water management.
Based on adult male equivalent (Table1), the mean available labor force per sample
households was 3.04 and 2.64 for male and female respectively. In both upstream and
downstream the mean values for adult labor forces tends to be stronger for male than the
female and clustered around 3 and 2.5 respectively.
Sample household characteristics for selected dummy variables
Descriptive result of selected seven dummy variables is indicated on Table 2. Three of
those are related to smallholders‘ institutional environment (i.e. access to credit,
assistance and training in improved land and water management). Institutions are critical
for farmers‘ decision in interventions. They create an environment and incentives that can
either enable or undermine their efforts (e.g. Asrat et al., 2003). In upstream part of the
study watersheds, 62% willing and 38% non-willing farmers got credit during the past
twelve months. Respective figure for the downstream area was 80% and 20%. This result
indicated that shortage of money (liquidity constraint) might discourage farmers to
engage in improved land and water conservation activities. Farmers‘ willingness to spent
6 The TLU values for different species of animals are: 0.7 for cattle; 0.8 for horse/mule; 0.5 for donkey; 0.1 for goat/sheep and one Tropical Livestock Unit (TLU) is equal to 250 kg
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
264 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
time for improved land and water management practices was higher than to spend some
amount of money. This could be related to limited income source (see Appendix 1).
Education increases farmers‘ ability to get process and use information (Asrat et al.,
2003). Our results show that 53 per cent of the sample farm households were illiterate.
There was no significance difference between the upstream and the downstream
community. Interestingly, the respective percentages for willing and non-willing farmers
vary across upstream and downstream and, in both cases, indicated that the majority of
farmers who were willing to pay for improved land and water managements were literate
(Table 2). A very closely related dummy variable is farmers training in land and water
conservation practice. This helps farmers to know available options for soil conservation
and makes land users more receptive to conservation structures. In our result, a good
proportion of those willing to pay, reported to have participated in different trainings
related to improved land and water management practices. For example, out of the total
upstream sample household heads, 65% of the willing and 35% of non willing farmers
have participated in training respectively. Respective values for the downstream sample
farm household were 72% for willing and 28% for non willing farmers (Table 2 and
Appendix 2). There were also stronger relation between farmers‘ willingness to pay and
institutional variables such as access to credit, distances to nursery sites and access to
development center.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
265 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table1 Descriptive results of continues variables for WTP in cash (Koga and Gumera watersheds, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Strata WTP in cash
Age Tree DOA
(in km)
DNR
(in km)
TLU CLI Labor
Adult
female
Adult
male
Upstream
Non willing Mean 46.50 78.57 14.80 6.24 4.20 0.26 2.79 3.22
Std. D 13.61 158.72 4.96 5.91 2.64 0.51 1.16 1.39
Willing Mean 41.14 264.48 13.12 4.77 5.77 0.17 2.62 3.05
Std. D 12.95 738.25 3.80 3.88 4.94 0.43 1.34 1.41
Total Mean 43.47 183.74 13.85 5.41 5.09 0.21 2.69 3.13
Std. D 13.47 571.28 4.41 4.90 4.17 0.47 1.26 1.40
Downstream
Non willing Mean 44.95 291.68 16.49 3.54 4.88 0.21 2.71 3.32
Std. D 12.84 816.84 5.64 3.90 2.34 0.61 1.21 1.97
Willing Mean 41.13 814.08 13.04 3.54 5.83 0.21 2.54 2.82
Std. D 12.09 1691.80 5.43 2.40 4.32 0.48 1.18 1.46
Total Mean 42.09 681.74 13.91 3.54 5.59 0.21 2.58 2.95
Std. D 12.35 1532.93 5.67 2.84 3.93 0.51 1.19 1.61
All samples
Non willing Mean 45.98 149.61 15.36 5.34 4.42 0.24 2.76 3.25
Std. D 13.32 495.35 5.23 5.45 2.55 0.54 1.17 1.60
Willing Mean 41.13 556.21 13.08 4.12 5.80 0.19 2.57 2.93
Std. D 12.47 1357.50 4.73 3.23 4.61 0.46 1.26 1.44
Total Mean 42.83 413.59 13.88 4.55 5.32 0.21 2.64 3.04
Std. D 12.97 1147.93 5.02 4.18 4.06 0.49 1.23 1.50
Source: the survey result
DNR is for distances to nursery; DOA is for distance to Woreda office of agriculture; Std.D is for standard deviation, CLI is for crop
land irrigated
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
266 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 2 Descriptive results of dummy variables for WTP in cash (Koga and Gumera watersheds, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Attributes
Upstream Downstream Total
Willing Non-willing Total Willing Non -willing Total
N % N % N % N % N % N % N %
Education
Illiterates 50 54.35 42 45.65 92 52.57 60 74.07 21 25.93 81 54 173 53.23
Otherwise 49 59.04 34 40.96 83 47.43 52 75.36 17 24.64 69 46 152 46.77
ALD
No 12 70.59 5 29.41 17 9.71 28 73.68 10 26.32 38 25.33 55 16.92
Yes 87 55.06 71 44.94 158 90.29 84 75 28 25 112 74.67 270 83.08
Assistant ILWM
No 77 58.78 54 41.22 131 74.86 68 75.56 22 24.44 90 60 221 68
Yes 22 50 22 50 44 25.14 44 73.33 16 26.67 60 40 104 32
Training
No 63 52.5 57 47.5 120 68.57 62 76.54 19 23.46 81 54 201 61.85
Yes 36 65.45 19 34.55 55 31.43 50 72.46 19 27.54 69 46 124 38.15
Access to credit
No 48 51.61 45 48.39 93 53.14 53 69.74 23 30.26 76 50.67 169 52
Yes 51 62.2 31 37.8 82 46.86 59 79.73 15 20.27 74 49.33 156 48
Slope of the parcel
Otherwise 16 43.24 21 56.76 37 21.14 2 66.67 1 33.33 3 2 40 12.31
Flat 83 60.14 55 39.86 138 78.86 110 74.83 37 25.17 147 98 285 87.69
Responsibility
No 63 53.85 54 46.15 117 66.86 76 72.38 29 27.62 105 70 222 68.31
Yes 36 62.07 22 37.93 58 33.14 36 80 9 20 45 30 103 31.69
Source: the survey result
ILWM is for improved land and water management; ALD is for awareness of land degradation
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
267 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Households willingness to pay for environmental service restoration
In this section, we evaluated the sample households‘ WTP in cash or labor for improved
land and water management practices. About 64.9% of the samples were willing to pay in
cash (Table 3). All respondents were offered with follow-up questions to determine
whether they were expressing a protest bid against the valuation or they placed no value
on the resource, due to the course of CVM. Accordingly, 66.7% of the upstream farmers
were not willing to contribute money. We observed a stronger willingness from the
downstream sample households compared to their fellow farmers in the upstream.
Accordingly, 53.1% were willing to contribute in cash for improved land and water
management practices. These differences between upstream and downstream can be
accounted for by the discrepancy of benefits that can be generated from such intervention
(e.g. direct benefits from irrigation schemes, reduced flood damages, etc) and also from
the differences in resources holding between the two groups (e.g. number of trees and
TLU). In general our findings of farmers‘ willingness to pay in cash differ with Pawlos
(2002), who reported insignificant farmers WTP in cash. We argue that Pawlos (2002)
observation could be a bit generalization as farmers‘ willingness to pay in cash depends
on the envisaged returns from investment and farmers‘ financial capacity to invest.
Interestingly, farmers‘ willingness to pay in labor was twofold higher compared to their
willingness to pay in cash. This implies that farmers are willing to invest in improved
environmental services but obstructed by low level of income. Here, the major point of
concern is also whether this farmers‘ contribution (either in cash or in labor) could cover
the financial demand required for investment and maintenance of conservation structure
and if this is not the case what can be the policy and institutional options to fill the gaps?
Table 3 Farmers WTP in cash and labor units (Koga and Gumera watersheds, Blue Nile
basin, Ethiopia)
Attributes Upstream Downstream Total
Willing Non-
willing
Willin
g
Non-
willing
Willing Non-
willing
WTP (cash
month-1
)
99
76
112
38
211
114
WTP (labor MD
month-1)
169
6
147
3
316
9
Source: the survey result
WTP is for willingness to pay; MD is for man day
As indicated in Table-4, the average labor contributions for upstream and downstream
farmers were 3.3 and 3.9 man-days per month (MDmonth-1
) respectively. Whereas the
average cash contribution of the upstream and downstream farmers were 10.4 and 13.1
Ethiopian Birr (ETB month-1
) respectively. Values of MWTP fails far short of covering
the investment and maintenance cost for improved land and water management. The
MoWR (2002) reported an estimated watershed management cost of 9216 ETB (760
US$ha-1
). Taking mean current land holding per household and inflation since the time of
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
268 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
estimate in to account, a farm household may require about 13,104 ETB (1,365 US$) to
implement improved land and water management on his plots. In general, the results
suggest that the general public in the two watersheds are willing to pay for cost of
activities to restore the regulating ecosystem services, although this amount is
substantially less than the estimated costs of restoration. This trend could be argued from
Stefanie et al. (2008), point of view. Stefanie et al. (2008), suggested that PES is based on
the beneficiary-pays rather than the polluter-pays principle, and as such is attractive in
settings where Environmental Services (ES) providers are poor, marginalized landholders
or powerful groups of actors. The authors also make distinction within PES between user-
financed PES in which the buyers are the users of the ES, and government-financed PES
in which the buyers are others (typically the government) acting on behalf of ES users. In
view of those points it can be concluded that improved ES will required the coordinated
effort of all stakeholders: including the government, upstream and downstream
community
Table-4 Estimated mean WTP in cash and labor units (Koga and Gumera watersheds,
Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Mean WTP N Mean value C-I (95%) P > t
MWTP ETB month-1
(upstream)
175 10.4 8.2 12.6 0.0029
MWTP in ETB month-1
(downstream)
150 13.1 11.8 14.5
MWTP ( in labor MD month-1
(upstream)
175 3.3 3.15 3.40 0.0000
MWTP in labor MD month-1
(downstream)
150 3.9 3.69 4.01
Source: the survey result
MWTP is for mean willingness to pay; ETB is for Ethiopian currency which is 1US$ is
equivalent to 9.6 ETB; MD is for man day
Determinants of upstream and downstream farmers’ willingness to pay
In this section, selected explanatory variables were used in the interval regression model
to analyze determinants of farmers‘ WTP for improved land and water management. A
total of 23 explanatory variables (14 continuous and 9 dummy) were included in the
model of which only significantly related variables are presented in this report (Table 5).
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
269 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 5 Estimate of the interval regression model (Koga and Gumera watersheds)
Explanatory Variables Downstream users Upstream users All samples
Coeff. SD.E P>z Coeff. SD.E P>z Coeff. SD.E P>z
Educational level -1.87 4.67 0.69 -11.24 3.79 0.00*** -6.29 2.91 0.03**
Age of the household head -0.45 0.19 0.02** -0.19 0.15 0.22 -0.33 0.12 0.01**
Start Bid ~y 0.60 0.17 0.00*** 0.46 0.14 0.00*** 0.55 0.11 0.00***
Financial and technical
assistant
5.37 3.95 0.17 4.31 3.48 0.22 5.76 2.64 0.03**
Training -3.99 3.95 0.31 6.81 3.78 0.07* 1.78 2.72 0.51
Own cultivated land -0.26 0.42 0.54 0.35 0.18 0.06* 0.17 0.17 0.33
Access to credit 1.98 4.11 0.63 5.31 3.69 0.15 4.73 2.65 0.08*
Number of trees owned 0.00 0.00 0.04** 0.00 0.00 0.86 0.00 0.00 0.03**
Distance to output market -0.08 0.53 0.88 -0.42 0.49 0.38 -0.54 0.28 0.05**
Distance to nursery site -0.18 0.78 0.82 -0.74 0.42 0.08* -0.63 0.37 0.08*
Distance to agricultural
office
-0.78 0.35 0.02** -0.72 0.64 0.26 -0.77 0.29 0.01**
Livestock owned in TLU 0.67 0.58 0.24 1.22 0.45 0.01** 0.74 0.34 0.03**
Slope of the parcel 9.91 13.74 0.47 7.74 4.54 0.09* 10.44 4.29 0.02**
Adult male in the household 2.80 1.52 0.07* -1.19 1.36 0.38 0.56 1.00 0.57
Adult females in the
household
-1.20 1.82 0.51 -3.23 1.57 0.04** -2.25 1.20 0.06*
Constant 7.88 18.13 0.66 12.25 12.64 0.33 12.01 9.65 0.21
Lnsigma 2.99 0.08 0.00*** 2.90 0.09 0.00 2.99 0.06 0.00***
Sigma 19.79 1.64 18.18 1.59 19.89 1.19
N =150
LR chi2 (24) = 37.11 Prob >
chi2=0.0317 Log likelihood
= -212.27658
52 left-censored observations
0 uncensored observations
0 right-censored
observations
98 interval observations
N =175
LR chi2 (23) =74.79
Prob > chi2=0
Log likelihood = -186.71088
83 left-censored
observations
1uncensored observation
0 right-censored
observations
91 interval observations
N =325
LR chi2 (25) =103.70
Prob > chi2=0.0000 Log
likelihood = - 409.16806
135 left-censored
observations
1 uncensored observation; 0
right-censored observations
189 interval observations
Source: the survey result***, ** and * indicate significant level at 1%, 5% and 10%
respectively.
The maximum likelihood estimate of the interval regression model shows 15 explanatory
variables to significantly determine farmers‘ WTP. Of the 23 explanatory variables
hypothesized to influence farmers‘ WTP for improved land and water management
practices, fourteen variables were less powerful in explaining farmers' willingness to pay
in cash. The Log-likelihood ratio test for the significance of the overall mode is -
409.16806 for 135 left-censored observations and 1 uncensored observation; 0 right-
censored observations and 189 interval observations. A host of household, asset holding,
plot characteristics and institutional support related variables were found to be significant
in explaining households‘ WTP. More specifically, the coefficients of educational level,
age of the household head were found significant at 10% probability level or less. From
the households‘ asset holdings, number of trees planted, number of livestock holdings in
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
270 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
tropical livestock unit (TLU), and total adult female household member were found to be
significant at 5% probability level. Institutional support related factors such as training
(information and visit), and assistance in land and water conservation techniques and
distance to the office of agriculture (proxy measure of access to extension service) were
found to be significant at 1% probability level. Finally, plot level characteristics such as
slope of the parcels and average land holding were found significant. The specific effects
of these variables and their policy implications are discussed blow.
Educational level of the household head: the education level variable was significant at
(P< 0.01) and had a positive association with farmers‘ willingness to pay in cash for
improved land and water conservation practices. Farmers‘ ability to acquire, process and
use information could be increased by education. Besides, education reflects acquired
knowledge of environmental amenities. Thus, this variable positively correlated with
farmers‘ willingness to pay in cash for improved land and water management practices.
Number of studies suggested similar results (e.g. Tegegne, 1999; Ervin and Ervin, 1982;
Noris and Batie, 1987; Pender and Kerr, 1996; Asrat et al., 2004). From our results it can
be also realized that keeping the influences of other factors constant, every extra year of
schooling increase the probability of farmers‘ willingness to pay cash by 3.62%. This
implies that education could be an important policy instrument for improved
environmental management.
Age of the household head: this variable was significant at (P<0.05) and had a negative
influence on farmers willingness to pay in cash for land and water conservation activities.
This contradicts with Bekele and Drake (2003) who suggested that farmers‘ age does not
influence the conservation decision. This means also with more age farmer can become
risk averse to engage in improved land and water conservation practices. The effect of
farmer‘s age in improved land and water conservation decision can be taken as a
composite of the effect of farming experience and planning horizon (e.g. Tesfaye et al.,
2000). In general, older farmers are more likely to reject practicing improved land and
water conservation practices. On the contrary, younger farmers are often expected to take
risk due to their longer planning horizon (e.g. Befikadu, 2007). The result shows that a
one year increase in age, keeping other factor constant, decrease the probability of
farmers‘ WTP in cash for improved land and water conservation practice by 0.01%. In
general, this suggests that research has to come up with conservation technologies that
can reduce risks and yield returns in the short term.
Asset holdings: we report on the effects of livestock, tree holding and labor availability
on the households‘ WTP. Livestock holding represents the total number of livestock,
measured in Tropical Livestock Unit (TLU). Livestock is important household asset and
is claimed as important means of cash income for households in both study areas (e.g.
Haileslassie et al., 2008, under review). This is particularly important in farming system
where farmers are producing non-cash crops and off-farm income is very limited (e.g.
upstream areas of both watersheds). The model showed a significant and positive relation
at 5% probability level for this variable. In other words as farmers own more number of
livestock, the probability of WTP increases. This can be explained by two main reasons:
firstly more livestock ownership means more assets possession, which in turn increases
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
271 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
households‘ ability to make investment decisions. Secondly, as farmers own large
livestock population, they need to have land and water available to them to provide their
livestock population with sufficient and quality feeding and drinking water increasing
investment in land and water conservation. Dasgupta (1989) and Rogers and Shomaker
(1971) reported similar result. With the ceteris paribus condition holding, the probability
of being willing to pay increases by a probability of 0.14% as livestock ownership
increased by 1 TLU. Probably this may contrasts with recent thought about effects of
increasing livestock population and resultant ecosystem degradation (e.g. overgrazing). In
practical terms policy makers must focus on increasing the products and services per unit
of livestock than the mere increase in number to attain the impacts of livestock ownership
on farmers‘ willingness to invest in land and water management. Interestingly farmers in
both study areas (mainly downstream) plant trees (e.g. Eucalyptus camaldulensis) on
homestead and distance farm plots. Farmers in the study areas are claiming that tree
planting is becoming the best strategy to generate cash for the farm household. Which is
why the coefficient of number of tree on farm of the household was significant at 5%
probability level and affects farmers‘ willingness to pay positively. Pender and Kerr
(1997) also suggested that farms income have a significant effect on land and water
management investment. A unit increase in this variable, with the assumption of ceteris
paribus; the probability of farmer‘s willingness to pay in cash for improved land and
water conservation activates increase by 2.6%. Moreover, on the effect of households‘
labor endowment on their WTP, we found that households with more number of female
adults have significantly lower probability (1.08 %) of being willing to pay. This could be
related to their female adults‘ income generating capacity as labor markets could be
gender segregated.
Size of own cultivated land: this variable represents the total cultivated land owned by a
household and it is significant for upstream farmers at 5% probability level. For an
agrarian community, like our study areas, land size is an indication of wealth status of a
household (e.g. Bekele and Drake, 2003). As land ownership is equated with asset
ownership, a farmer with large cultivable land is considered wealthy (Haileslassie et al.,
2007). The size of cultivated land is also often associated with a means that might help
ease the needed liquidity constraint (e.g. Bekele and Drake, 2003) as land could be
transferred temporarily through land transactions. Number of empirical study suggested
that farmers who have large farms in the upstream are more likely to use conservation
technology (e.g. Bekele and Holden 1998; Norris and Batie, 1987). It can be argued also
that farmers with smaller plots were not willing to pay for soil conservation practices
because of inconveniences created by some physical conservation measures during farm
operation : e.g. turn oxen during ploughing and cultivation, further squeezing the small
parcel owned by the farm household (Asrat et al., 2004).
The result of our model agrees with those suggestions and revealed that farmers‘
willingness to pay increase by the probability of 0.008% as the size of own cultivated
land increase by one unit with the assumption of ceteris paribus. This could be argued
from perspective of policy options that eradicate poverty and increase land and water
productivity, as increasing land size could not be an issue in the face of high population
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
272 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
pressure in the area. However, policy maker could still enhance conservation by
promoting technologies that do not compete for more space.
Distance to the offices of agriculture: this variable is significant at 1% probability level
and affects farmers‘ WTP negatively. It refers to the time a household may need to walk
to get to the agricultural office. The negative sign of the coefficients indicates that as the
distance of agricultural office from homestead increases, farmers would have less access
to information and other services. Thus, they would not be willing to participate in
watershed conservation activity (DBOA, 2007). This result showed that keeping the
influences of other factors constant, farmers‘ WTP decrease by 0.16 % as distance of the
district increases by 1 kilometer. Perhaps policy and institution measures that improve
farmers‘ access to information and other services could help in increasing farmers‘
willingness to participate in such activities.
Information, training and visit: information and training increases farmers‘ willingness to
practice improved land and water management activities (Pender and Kerr, 1998). In
context of this study, this variable refers to farmer participation in improved watershed
conservation training program. It also refers to radio or video shows related to watershed
conservation and make use of improved land and water management practices,
participating on farmers' field day, meetings, and visits of other farmers who practiced
improved land and water management. If the nation desires a progressively increasing
number of farmers to undertake improved watershed conservation activities, the
implementation of substantial training program should get a high priority (e.g. Joyce
2001; Pawlos 2002). A unit increase in this variable, all other things being kept constant,
leads to an increase in the probability of farmers‘ WTP in cash for improved land and
water conservation activates by 0.18%. Finally, policy and institutional measures that
improve farmers‘ access to information, skills and training must be a target to achieve the
objectives of improved ecosystem services.
Assistance in land and water conservation practice: this variable was significant at 1%
probability level and affects positively farmers‘ WTP in cash. Assistance refers to any
form of watershed conservation support provided to the farm household in the study
areas. Physical soil conservation measures are labor intensive and require technical,
financial and material inputs, which farmers may not be able to afford by themselves (e.g.
Asrat et al., 2004). This implies also that assistance from any source encourages farmers
to adopt physical conservation measures. In Ethiopia, involvement of Non-Governmental
Organizations (NGOs) and Governmental Organization (GO) in the soil and water
conservation has a long history (Gebremedhin and Swinton, 2003). Thus, assistances in
the form of safety net or food for work program were almost a norm for decades of soil
and water conservation initiatives. Besides these farmers are also provided with technical
support through the regular extension channel or specific NGO interventions that ranges
from defining contours to establishing different types of SWC measures. This study
indicated that the probability of farmers‘ willingness to pay increase by 6.6% as
assistance in land and water conservation practice increase by one unit, keeping other
factors constant.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
273 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Slope of the plot: specific plot level characteristics may predispose farm plots to erosion.
For instance, sloppy lands are more susceptible to erosion. Including such variables in
adoption regression is quite vital. Accordingly, we found that slope of household‘s plots
have significant and positives effect on farmers‘ WTP in cash for improved land and
water management practice at 10% probability level. This implies that households that
have on average sloppy plots are more willing to pay for improved conservation as they
have the understanding that such plots are susceptible to degradation. Our model outputs
and empirical studies in Ethiopia and elsewhere showed similar trends (e.g. Shiferaw and
Holden 1998; Ervin and Ervin, 1982; Norris and Batie, 1987; Gould et al, 1989). Finally
it can be concluded that targeting farm households with steeper landscape unit can bring
tangible changes in designing PES schemes.
Downstream households’ willingness to compensate for the upstream farmers
The downstream users‘ of environmental services WTC the upstream environmental
service providers in cash were also assessed in this study. Land degradation has serious
on-site and off-site impacts for upstream and downstream users in the study area (e.g.
Awulachew et al., 2008). The off-site damage through sedimentation and flooding
instigated major concern mainly as related to safety and sustainable uses of ongoing
construction of irrigation infrastructures. The result of this study showed that, of all
downstream sample farm households, 83.6 % were willing to compensate the upstream
farmers for the ecosystem regulation services they provided. The remaining 16.4 % were
not willing to compensate the upstream farmers in cash. As indicated in previous section
the mean values of WTP/WTC indicated by farmers will not be sufficient to undertake
the commensurate measures to reduced land and water degradation. Therefore a policy
measure that encourages community and intergovernmental cooperation and also
considering watershed management as part of the investment in irrigation infrastructure is
important. In the subsequent paragraph we shed light on selected explanatory variables
for willingness to compensate.
A total of 13 explanatory variables (10 continuous and 3 dummy) were included in the
model (Table 6). The maximum likelihood estimate of the interval regression model
shows six explanatory variables to significantly determine downstream farmers‘ WTC.
These are access to credit, total family size, ratio of irrigation to cultivated land, livestock
holdings (in TLU), and distance to agricultural office. Interestingly, the model indicates
stronger willingness from Koga watershed service users when the two watersheds are
separated. Though 7 explanatory variables were not significant in explaining downstream
farmers' WTC, clear trend of relation between the dependent and independent variables
could be traced. Most of those explanatory variables correspond with those for
willingness to pay presented in section 3.3 and therefore further explanation of variables
can be referred to particular section.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
274 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Table 6 Estimate of the interval regression model for farmers WTC (Koga and Gumera
watersheds, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Explanatory Variables Coef. dy/dx Std. Err. P>z
Start bid 0.013728 0.002388 0.012163 0.259
Age -0.01751 -0.00305 0.011794 0.138
Educational level (dummy 1=illiterate and 0
otherwise)
-0.13372 -0.02349 0.325927 0.682
Access to credit 0.643803 0.114452 0.329956 0.051**
Sex -1.02892 -0.28513 0.693857 0.138
Total family size -0.23304 -0.04053 0.083337 0.005***
Adult male in the household 0.070711 0.012298 0.108249 0.514
Ratio of irrigated to cultivated land -3.82163 -0.66466 1.936619 0.048**
Number of trees owned 6.58E-05 1.15E-05 0.000107 0.538
Off farm income -9E-05 -1.6E-05 0.000163 0.579
Livestock owned (TLU) 0.110001 0.019131 0.056892 0.053**
Distance to agricultural office -0.05925 -0.01031 0.033094 0.073*
Watershed (1=Gumera and 2=Koga) 1.035345 0.181854 0.381166 0.007***
_Cons 2.334752 1.051206 0.026
Number of observation =146
LR chi2 (24) = 32.34
Prob > chi2= 0.0021
Log likelihood = -49.073538
Pseudo R2= 0.2478
Source: the survey result
***, ** and * indicates significant level at 1%, 5% and 10% probability respectively.
Access to credit: this variable is significant at 5% probability level and affects farmers‘
WTC positively. It refers to whether the sample farm household had credit in the last
couple of years or not. Access to credit for agricultural purposes can relax farmers'
financial constraints. Our results show that downstream farm households with access to
institutional credit are willing to compensate the upstream farmers for ecosystem services
they provide. In this study, with the assumption of ceteris paribus, the probability of
being willingness to compensate the upstream farmers increases by 0.11% for additional
increment in access to credit service.
TLU owned is found significant at (P< 0.05) and affects, positively, the downstream
users‘ decision to compensation. This means also as the downstream farmers own large
livestock units, the chance of WTC increasing. With the assumption of ceteris paribus,
the probability of being willingness to compensate the upstream farmers increases by
0.64% for additional increment in livestock ownership.
Total family size was also found significant at 1% probability level and affects farmers‘
WTC negatively. This refers to the total number of family members in a household.
Accordingly, keeping the influences of other factors constant, downstream farmers‘ WTC
decrease by 0.23% as the total family increases by 1 person. This may imply that farm
households with larger family size are relatively cash constrained. Distance to the
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
275 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
agricultural office was also found significant at 10% probability level and affects
farmers‘ WTC negatively. The negative sign of the coefficients was as anticipated
indicating that as the distance of agricultural office from homestead is long, farmers
would have less access to information and services, thus, they would not be willing to
participate in watershed conservation activity and will not be willing to compensate.
Keeping the influences of other factors constant, downstream farmers‘ willingness WTC
decrease by 0.06 % as distance of the district increases by 1 kilometer.
Unlike our expectation the ratio of irrigated land to total land holding of sample farmers
shows a negative relationship to farmers WTC. This may contrast with the suggestion
given with the land size and the underlying reason may need further study. The result also
showed that there are differences between sample farmers in Goga and Gumera in terms
of the proportion of WTP and WTC: sample farmers in Koga watershed showed more
WTP and WTC than Gumera watershed. This can be explained for by the fact that
farmers in Koga watershed have great expectation, since the constriction of Koga dam is
almost completed.
Conclusion and Policy Implications
The major objectives of this study were to investigate farmers‘ WTP for restoration of
ecosystem services and to examine willingness of the downstream environmental service
users to compensate for the cost of improved land management in the upstream areas and
to explore socio-economic and institutional drivers WTP and WTC. We also estimated
the mean value of WTP and WTC. In view of the results the following conclusion and
policy implications can be drawn:
i) More than half of the respondents were willing to pay in cash and 97.2%
were willingness to pay in labor for restoration of environmental services.
Furthermore, 83.6% of downstream sample farm households indicated their
WTC the upstream farmers for the ecosystem regulation services they
provided. Those finding substantiate our hypothesis of PES as an instrument
for conflict resolution between upstream and downstream users and
sustainable uses of land and water resources. However, the low magnitude
of farmers‘ bid can be a challenge for its realization and thus a sole user-
financed PES scheme may not be feasible in short term. Alternatively, we
suggest a combination of environmental service paid by the users and
government-financed PES schemes. The modality for government support
can be part of investment in irrigation infrastructure. This can be also linked
to global target of increasing soil carbon through land rehabilitation and tree
plantation.
ii) As part of this study, number of livestock, size of arable land, and number of
trees owned by the sample farm households were identified to positively
influence sample farmers‘ WTP for restoration of ecosystem services and
downstream farmers‘ WTC for improved ecosystem regulation services. In
agrarian community access to those productive resources is strongly linked
to level of poverty (e.g. Haileslassie et al., 2007). Also the positive relation
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
276 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
between the probability of accepting the start bid, farmers‘ total income, and
tree plantation substantiate this argument. Therefore policy options that
target poverty reduction through intensification of agriculture must be
promoted. These approaches may include increased adoption of
technologies that improves product and productivity of the livestock and
crop production.
iii) Explanatory variables such as education, awareness and access to
information and credit were also influencing those farmers‘ decision
positively. Institutions and policy measures that enhance environmental
education must be promoted. This means also that policy makers must target
both formal and informal education and include watershed management,
upstream downstream relation and sustainable resources use into the formal
education curricula to achieve the desired result.
Acknowledgement
The study leading to this result is financially supported by the Challenge Program on
Water and Food (CPWF). The authors are grateful their generous support. Our gratitude
also goes to the farm households who were willing to respond to our questions.
References
Alberini, A. and Cooper, J. 2000. ―Application of Contingent Valuation Method in
Developing Countries‖. Economic and Social Development Paper. FAO, No. 146,
Rome.
Allen M. F., Barry K., Goodwin, B.K. (1993). Factors Influencing a Farmer's Decision to
Invest in Long-Term Conservation Improvements. Land Economics, Vol. 69, No.
1 (Feb., 1993), pp. 67-81
Amahric version) Unpublished.
Arsano, Y., 2004. Ethiopia and the Nile dilemmas of national and regional hydro
politics. PhD Dissertation submitted to the Philosophical Faculty of the University
of Zurich, Switzerland
Asrat, P., Belay, K., and Hamito, D., (2004). Determinants of farmers‘ willingness to pay
for soil conservation practices in the southeastern highlands of Ethiopia. Land
Degrad. Develop. 15: 423–438
Awulachew, S. B. Ayalew, M., Steenhuis, T. S. , Easton , Z. M., Ahmed A. A. , and
Bashar, K.E. ,Haileslassie. A. (2008). Characterizing erosion, modeling flow,
sediment and impact of interventions in Blue Nile. Proceeding of the Second
International conference of for The Challenge Program on Water and Food
(CPWF), 10th - 14th November 2008. Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
Befikadu Alemayehu, 2007. ―Policy and Institutional Analysis of Smallholder Cattle
Production in Dano District Of Western Showa, Ethiopia‖. M.Sc. Thesis
Presented to the School of Graduate Studies, Alemaya University.116p.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
277 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Bekele, W. and Drake, L., (2003). Soil and water conservation decision behavior of
subsistence farmers in the Eastern Highlands of Ethiopia: a case study of the
Hunde-Lafto area. Ecological Economics 46: 437-451
CSA, 2005. Statistical Abstract. CSA, Addis Ababa.
Dasgupta, S., 1989. Diffusion of Agricultural Innovations in Village India. Department of
Sociology and Anthropology, University of Prince Edward Island. Canada. 74-
86p
DBOA, 2007. Socio economics and demographic characteristics of Gumera district
Ervin, C.A., and Ervin, E.D. 1982. ―Factors Affecting the Use of Conservation
Practices‖: Hypothesis, Evidence and Policy Implications. Land Economics,
58(3), 97-307.
Ethiopian Mapping Agency (EMA), 1980. Contour map of Ethiopia (1:50,000). EMA,
Addis Ababa.
FAO, 1984. Provisional soil map of Ethiopia. Ethiopian Mapping Agency (EMA), Addis
Ababa.
FAO, 1986. Ethiopian highlands reclamation studies. Vol. 1 and 2. FAO, Rome
Featherstone, A.M., and Goodwin, B.K. 1993. ―Factors Influencing a Farmer‘s Decision
to Invest in Long-Term Conservation Improvements‖. Land Economics, 69(1),
67-81.
Gould, B.W., Saupe, W.E., Klemme, R.M. 1989. Conservation Tillage: ―The Role of
Operator Characteristics and Perception of Soil Erosion‖. Land Economics 65,
167-182.
Haileslassie, A, Fitsum Hagos and Seleshi Bekele Awulachew, Don Peden Solomon
Gebreselassie, Fekahmed Negash, 2008. Indicators of Environmental Degradation
in the Blue Nile Basin: Exploring Prospects for Payment for Environmental
Services. Proceeding of Nile basin development forum. 16-19 November, Sudan
Khartoum
Haileslassie, A., Priess, J., Veldkamp, E., and Lesschen, J.P., 2007. Nutrient flows and
balances at the field and farm scale: exploring effects of land-use strategies and
access to resources. Agricultural System 94: 459-470.
Hanemann, W. M. 1984, "Welfare Evaluations in Contingent Valuation Experiments
with Discrete Responses", American Journal of Agricultural Economics, 66, 3:
332-341.
Joyce, N.N, 2001. Community intervention in livestock improvement: The case of
Kathekani, Kenya. pp. 77-84. Proceedings of Symposium on Community-based
management of animal genetic resources. Mbabane, Swaziland, 7-11 May
2001,FOA.
Moses K. Tesi, 2000. The Environment and Development in Africa. Lexington Books,
Murfreesboro, Tennessee, USA. 329 pages.
MOWR, 2005. Koga Irrigation and Watershed Management Project: Koga Small Scale
Irrigation, Rural Water Supply and Sanitation. Volume-I main report, Addis
Ababa, Ethiopia.
MoWR. 2002. Assessment and Monitoring of Erosion and Sedimentation Problems in
Ethiopia. Final Report Volume V, MoWR/ Hydrology Department, Addis Ababa,
Ethiopia.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
278 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Norris, P.E., Batie, S.S., 1987. ―Verginia Farmers‘ Soil Conservation Decisions‖. An
Application of Tobit Analysis. Southern Journal of Economics 19, 79-90.
Paulos Asrat, Desta Hamito and Belay Kassa , 2002. Determinants of Farmers‘
Willingness to Participate In Soil Conservation Practices in the Highlands of
Bale: The Case of Dinsho Farming System Area. M.Sc. Thesis Presented to the
School of Graduate Studies, Alemaya University.130p.
Pender JL, Kerr JM. 1998. Determinants of farmers‘ indigenous soil and water
conservation investments in semi-arid India. Agricultural Economics 19: 113–
125.
Pender, J., Kerr, J. 1996. Determinants of Farmers‘ Indigenous Soil and Water
Conservation Investments in India‘s Semi-Arid Tropics. EPTD Discussion Paper
No.7.International Food Policy Research Institute, Washington, D.C.
Shiferaw, B. and Holden, S.T. 1998. ―Resource Degradation and Adoption of Land
Conservation Technologies in the Ethiopian Highlands‖: A case Study in Andit
Tid, North Shewa. The Journal of the International Association of Agricultural
Economists, 18(18), 233-247.
Stefanie, E., Stefano, P., Sven, W. (2008). Designing payments for environmental
services in theory and practice: An overview of the issues 6 5: 6 6 3 – 6 7 4
Stefano P., 2006. Payments for Environmental Services: An Introduction. Environment
Department, World Bank. Washington DC, USA.
Storck, H., Bezabih Emana, Berhanu Adnew, A.Borowiecki and Shimeles W/Hawariate,
1991. Farming systems and farm management practices of small holders in the
Hararghe highlands: Farming systems and resources economics in the tropics.
Wissenshafts verlag vauk, Kiel, Germany. 11. 41-48p
Tegegne Gebere Egziabher, 1999. ―Willingness to Pay for Environmental Protection‖:
An Application of Contingent Valuation Method (CVM) in Sekota District,
Northern Ethiopia. Ethiopian Journal of Agricultural Economics, 3(1), 123-130.
Tesfaye Zegeye, Bedassa Tadesse and Shiferaw Tesfaye, 2000. Determinants of high
yielding maize technology adoption: empirical evidence from southwestern
Oromia.EARO, Addis Ababa Ethiopia.
WRDA (Water Resources Development Authority (1994). feasibility study of the Birr
and Koga irrigation project. Volume I main report. WRDA, Addis Ababa,
Ethiopia. pp71
Wunder, S. 2005. Payments for Environmental Services: Some Nuts and Bolts. CIFOR,
Occasional Paper No.42. Jakarta, Indonesia.
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
279 CP 19 Project Workshop Proceedings
Appendixes
Appendix Table-1 Descriptive results of continues variables of WTP in labor by strata
(Koga and Gumera watersheds, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Strata WTP in labor
Age Tree Distance
to agr.
Off.
in km
Distance
to nursery
site in km
TLU** Crop
land
irrigate
d
Adult
female
Adult
male
Upstream Non willing Mean 46.33 14.17 12.33 7.45 5.28 0.17 2.17 3.17
Std. D 16.79 15.94 5.13 6.50 3.49 0.41 1.33 1.72
Willing Mean 43.37 189.76 13.91 5.34 5.08 0.21 2.71 3.12
Std. D 13.39 580.47 4.39 4.85 4.20 0.47 1.26 1.39
Total Mean 43.47 183.74 13.85 5.41 5.09 0.21 2.69 3.13
Std. D 13.47 571.28 4.41 4.90 4.17 0.47 1.26 1.40
Downstream Non willing Mean 52.00 2666.67 14.59 3.06 4.76 0.00 1.33 4.00
Std. D 6.93 1258.31 1.23 1.22 3.25 0.00 1.53 2.00
Willing Mean 41.89 641.23 13.90 3.55 5.61 0.22 2.61 2.93
Std. D 12.37 1514.55 5.72 2.86 3.95 0.52 1.17 1.61
Total Mean 42.09 681.74 13.91 3.54 5.59 0.21 2.58 2.95
Std. D 12.35 1532.93 5.67 2.84 3.93 0.51 1.19 1.61
All samples Non willing Mean 48.22 898.33 13.08 5.98 5.11 0.11 1.89 3.44
Std. D 14.01 1467.97 4.25 5.62 3.21 0.33 1.36 1.74
Willing Mean 42.68 399.78 13.90 4.51 5.33 0.21 2.66 3.03
Std. D 12.93 1137.44 5.04 4.14 4.09 0.49 1.22 1.50
Total Mean 42.83 413.59 13.88 4.55 5.32 0.21 2.64 3.04
Std. D 12.97 1147.93 5.02 4.18 4.06 0.49 1.23 1.50
Source: the survey result
Prospect of Payments for Environmental Services in the Blue Nile Basin: Examples from Koga and Gumera Watersheds
280
Table 2 Descriptive results of dummy variables of WTP in labor by strata (Koga and Gumera
watersheds, Blue Nile basin, Ethiopia)
Attributes
Upstream Downstream
All samples Willing Non -willing Total Willing Non -
willing
Total
N % N % N % N % N % N % N %
Educational states Illiterates 87 94.57 5 5.43 92 52.57 78 96.30 3 3.70 81 54.00 173 53.23
Otherwise 82 98.80 1 1.20 83 47.43 69 100.00 0 0.00 69 46.00 152 46.77
ALD
No 15 88.24 2 11.76 17 9.71 38 100.00 0 0.00 38 25.33 55 16.92
Yes 154 97.47 4 2.53 158 90.29 109 97.32 3 2.68 112 74.67 270 83.08
Assistant ILWM
No 128 97.71 3 0.29 131 74.86 88 97.78 2 2.22 90 60.00 221 68.00
Yes 41 93.18 3 6.82 44 25.14 59 98.33 1 1.67 60 40.00 104 32.00
Training No 116 96.67 4 3.33 120 68.57 80 98.77 1 1.23 81 54.00 201 61.85
Yes 53 96.36 2 3.64 55 31.43 67 97.10 2 2.90 69 46.00 124 38.15
Access to credit No 88 94.62 5 5.38 93 53.14 75 98.68 1 1.32 76 50.67 169 52.00
Yes 81 98.78 1 1.22 82 46.86 72 97.30 2 2.70 74 49.33 156 48.00
Slope of the parcel Otherwise 36 97.30 1 2.70 37 21.14 3 100.00 0 0.00 3 2.00 40 12.31
Flat 133 96.38 5 3.62 138 78.86 144 97.96 3 2.04 147 98.00 285 87.69
Responsibility No 114 97.44 3 2.56 117 66.86 102 97.14 3 2.86 105 70.00 222 68.31
Yes 55 94.83 3 5.17 58 33.14 45 100.00 0 0.00 45 30.00 103 31.69
ILWM is for improved land and water management; ALD is for awareness of land
degradation
Source: the survey result
281
Session V: Minutes Summary, List of Posters and Annexes
Minutes summary
282
Minutes summary
Session I. Opening and General Session
Opening Remarks
The upstream-downstream project workshop is aimed at bringing together key stakeholders
and present and validate the intermediate results of the project. The project leader, Dr. Seleshi
Bekele Awulachew welcomed participants and expressed his appreciation for traveling to
participate in this workshop. He invited Prof. Gamal Abdo to facilitate the session.
The facilitator requested the participants to introduce themselves. After the introduction of the
participants, he kindly requested Dr. Akissa Bahri, Africa Regional Director to give an
opening remark. In her opening statement, Dr. Bahri said the project is meant to fill a
knowledge gap regarding the run-off, sedimentation, erosion, hydrological, hydraulic and
institutional processes in the Blue Nile watersheds, and is now presenting its interim findings.
The facilitator invited Dr. Kim Geheb who is the challenge program (CP) regional
coordinator. Dr. Kim in his statement said that CP is happy to support the project whose
objective is very much in line with the overall objective of CP-19 and congratulated the
research team on the progress made to date.
General papers presentation
1. The CPWF and the CP19 Project Objectives (Dr. Seleshi Bekele Awulachew)
The presenter outlined the CPWF and CP19 project objectives. He presented the USDS in
brief with highlight of the following:
USDS project broad goals, objectives and stated that the major one is to identify major
water, land and livestock management opportunities, constraints and impact interventions
in the catchments.
About the key research questions that the project will address
Major outputs of the project
Project progress with respect to; watershed management, water allocation simulation
modeling, policy and institutions, capacity building, and knowledge sharing and
publications. There were no questions, comments and suggestions on this presentation.
2. Characteristics of Blue Nile and GIS Database of Blue Nile (Aster et al.)
The second presenter was W/t Aster who presented on Characteristics of Blue Nile and GIS
Database of Blue Nile. She introduced the following:
Brief introduction of the project
Data sources (in Ethiopia as well as in Sudan)
Key basin information (geographic, DEM, climate, geology, land cover, population
density, etc)
Minutes summary
283
In depth information on selected sub-basins in Ethiopia (Gumera, Gilgel Abbay, Koga)
and in Sudan (Dindir and Rehad)
Availability of documents and data on CD (ready for distribution to participants)
Question: Does the GIS information include groundwater (GW) and water quality
information?
Answer: Effort has been made to create baseline information based on secondary data. If there
is additional information on GW and water quality the project is ready to include
them.
Question: What kind of resolution are you using? 90 m resolution was used for the whole of
the Blue Nile Basin
Question: How do you make the information available?
Answer: It will be distributed with CD containing sharable information and in addition it will
be posted on the IWMI web-site.
Question: Did you produce soil erosion map? How did you calculate Potential
Evapotranspiration (PET)? What quality assurance measures are used? How do you
validate the data available? Furthermore, other source of information needs to be
exploited to avoid duplication of effort (example FRIEND NILE).
Answer: The information is gathered from IWMI IDIS kit processed under IWMI GIS unit
and others are acquired from National Meteorological Service Agency (NMSA) which
is the sole source of relevant information in Ethiopia including those obtained from
ENTRO. Other source of information will be further explored and it will be added into
the data base.
3. Impacts of improving water management of small holder agriculture in the Upper
Blue Nile Basin (Teklu et al.)
The presenter structured his presentation as follows: as introduction to the Abbay Basin and
the key challenges of the basin (topography, biophysical variations, etc), objectives of the
component and preliminary results. Accordingly, nine farming systems were identified, in
which cereal based farming system is the dominant one (about 70%). The major soils areas
are identified and Leptosols and Nitosols are found to be the dominant ones. Average
productivity of the basin was less than one tone a hectare. The low productivity was related
to soil erosion, rainfall variation and others. Multifaceted interventions recommended and
technological interventions (integrated watershed management, AWMT, etc.) were proposed.
Possible impacts of AWMT such as shallow well; RWH, WSM and SSI are outlined. The
remaining tasks include estimating the impacts of selected AWMT based on different
scenarios.
Question: One of the reasons low productivity was mentioned to be soil erosion. What is the
recommended measure?
Answer: The best approach adopted in this country is an integrated watershed management
intervention. Unless the catchment is well treated we shall be harvesting sediments. In
order to reverse this situation; there are physical, biological and water management
interventions.
Minutes summary
284
Question: Among identified farming system perennial farming system is one of them why are
farming systems such as livestock missed?
Answer: The data was obtained from river basin master plans which do not include other
farming systems other than those mentioned in this study. Effort will be made to
include others depending on availability of information.
Question: What are the proposed climate variability interventions? ENTRO has already
identified hot spots of soil erosion in Blue Nile Basin. Why not to do an integrated
farming approach where there is ample experience in Sudan?
Answer: Description of ongoing activities has been done but during the next phases the
comments will be taken up.
Suggestions: Water quality concern is becoming a serious issue in the basin and therefore it
highly recommended that this aspect is included in the study. Prioritize list of issues
contributing to decreased productivity were presented. However, integrated approach
of the various interventions can only alleviate the decrease of productivity. The issues
of supply of water, nutrients are critical to increasing productivity and needs to be
addressed sufficiently
Session II – Water Allocation Simulation Modeling
1. The Water Allocation Modeling Framework; Mathew
Dr. Mathew has provided an overview of the water allocation modeling and the
presentations of this session.
2. Simulation of Lake Tana with Environmental Flows in Lake Tana Sub-basin
(Tadesse and Mathew)
The study applied WEAP model for assessing the impact of environmental flow on Lake
Tana water level and the reliability of water resource projects planned in the Lake Tana
Sub-basin. It was outlined that the study adopted four development scenarios; including
the baseline scenarios. It was pointed out that the reliability of navigation deteriorates with
development scenarios and with consideration of environmental flow. Climate change
assessment and economic analysis are recommended as future enhancement to the current
study.
Question: Which of the presented alternatives (scenarios) is the best to maximize the
benefit to irrigation and hydropower at the same time?
Answer: The study has only simulated the reliability of Lake Tana water level and
proposed development projects for the four development scenarios. Optimization
of the development scenarios in terms of maximizing irrigation, hydropower,
environmental and social benefits is not conducted. Rather it is recommended as
one of the future works. Therefore, the study hasn‘t identified an optimum
scenario.
Minutes summary
285
3. Regionalization, Performance of Rainfall-Runoff Model and Optimization of Water
Allocation of Blue Nile (Aemayehu and Seleshi)
The primary focuses of the study were regionalization of rainfall-runoff relationships of
unguaged catchments, and derivation of operation policy for multi-reservoir systems using
multi-objective optimization methods. Kohonen Neural Network was applied to identify
homogenous hydrological regions; and WaSiM-ETH model was used for rainfall-runoff
modeling. The optimization (modified single-objective) and simulation (HEC5) modules
were coupled to optimize water allocation in multi-reservoir systems.
Question: Future scenarios of water allocation should consider other production system
components, including enterprise choice, water management interventions, local
capacity, etc. Is it not important to include other scenarios beyond water allocation
for practical policy recommendation?
Answer: Operating rules are always changing whenever there is change in demand. Our
operation rule curves were derived based on the current and future water resources
development extracted from the Master Plan document. It was tested with 50 years
generated flow. Moreover, it is possible to update the ruling curve.
Question: What are the chances or plans to collect more water in Abbay basin through
studying groundwater and studying the opportunities for water harvesting to secure
sustainability of proposed development plans without affecting the water
allocation for Egypt and Sudan?
Answer: Groundwater assessment is beyond the scope of the current study. But, water
harvesting options are being considered in Dr. Teklu‘s presentation.
4. Water Balance Assessment of the Roseires Reservoir (Sudan) (Bashar and Mustafa)
The contributions of the intervening catchments and the direct rainfall over the reservoir
were not considered in the water balance computation as they are assumed insignificant. It
was pointed out that the water balance has performed better in wet season than in dry
season. This may be attributed to leakage from dam.
Question: The water balance during dry season has some discrepancies. This might be
rectified by including base flow in the water balance.
Answer: Comment noted.
Question: Is there any mitigation measures to reduce the sedimentation process in the
Roseires dam reservoir?
Answer: Watershed and land management in the upper Blue Nile and provision of extra
storage for sedimentation in the reservoir are some of the measures that can reduce
the sedimentation process in the Rosieres reservoir.
Question: The reported volume of the Roseires reservoir after heightening (10 Bm3) is too
much. According to latest studies the total storage capacity after heightening is
expected to be about 6 Bm3.
Answer: The figure is obtained from previous presentation. We will check that.
5. Improving Water Management Practices in the Rahad Scheme (Sudan) (Sulieman
and Yosif)
Minutes summary
286
Sedimentation is the major problem in the Rahad irrigation scheme. The major objective
of the study is to develop water management tools for Rahad irrigation system; which
previously relied upon the experience of operation staff. The total annual amount of water
supplied is enough for the scheme. The water scarcity during some months (August –
November) is due to problems in the timing of releases and management of the scheme.
The study has proposed operation rules.
Question: Rather than using Flow Duration Curves, why the study didn‘t apply frequency
analysis to estimate yield from Rahad seasonal river at different reliability?
Answer: We fully agree that fitting statistical distribution would be more accurate.
However, we are dealing with daily flows of longer period records and, hence, the
discrepancy caused by using FDC is anticipated to be minimum.
6. Water Allocation Simulation of Upper Blue Nile using HEC-ResSIM (Ethiopia);
(Yilma et al.)
The study has considered detailed reservoir operation through HEC-ResSIM in the
process of performing water allocation simulation in the Upper Blue Nile. Flow
estimation for tributaries of ungauged catchments was the greatest challenge faced by this
study.
Question: Why do we talk about Border Dam where you found higher actual and potential
evapotranspiration when there are other dams (Karadobi, etc.)?
Answer: The study has considered all dams in the upper Blue Nile.
7. Analysis of Water Uses on Large River Basin using MIKEBASIN Model (A Case
Study of Abbay River Basin, Ethiopia) (Fasikaw and Seleshi)
The study has simulated water allocation for the production systems (both existing and
planned) in the Abbay River Basin. It has adopted three development scenarios, including
the reference scenario, in the simulation of water allocation for the production systems.
About 3% of reduction in the annual flow volume at Sudan boarder is estimated as a result
of implementing projects in the Abbay Basin.
8. A Water Simulation Model for the Blue Nile River Basin in Sudan using HEC-
ResSIM (Sudan) (Yosif and Abdalla)
A Water Simulation Modeling framework was developed for the Sudan part of the Blue
Nile. Evaluation of development scenarios using the developed WSM and integration of
the modeling system with that of Ethiopian study is recommended.
Question: You said the required amount of water in Sudan is 20 BCM. This amount is
higher that the 18.5 BCM allocated to Sudan in the controversial 1959 agreement.
Where does the extra water come from unless a new volumetric allocation takes
place in the Nile?
Minutes summary
287
Answer: According to the 1959 agreement between Sudan and Egypt, the share of Sudan
measured at Aswan is 18.5 BCM annually while it is 20.5 BCM measured as
Sennar Dam. The figure shown in the presentation (20 BCM) is based on the
current irrigation water demand obtained from crop water requirement
computation. However, the actual current consumption of Sudan, as announced
officially, is 14.5 BCM at Aswan and 16.5 BCM calculated at Sennar Dam.
9. Integrated Simulation of Blue Nile Water using WEAP under Current and Future
Scenario (Ethiopia-Sudan) (Mathew et al)
The study has preliminarily evaluated two basic scenarios (current and year 2015),
considering both existing and planned schemes. Further, the 2025 scenario is currently
being simulated. The simulation results at major gauging stations and reservoirs have
fairly reproduced observations. The preliminary results of the simulation exercise are very
promising. Environmental flow is not considered in the current simulation. In the future,
environmental flow and impact of climate change on supply and demand shall be
included.
Other questions rose during the session and their answers
Question: The flow volume reported at Khartoum seems for the Border. Is that true?
Answer: The data sources say the same as reported. This will be revised if better data is
obtained.
Question: What is the proposed plan to mitigate sedimentation in the planned dams?
Answer: Some volumes are allocated in the dams for trapping sediment.
Question: The public domain models are developed for different climate conditions. Why
you are not developing your own modeling tool rather than depending on existing
models?
Answer: We are not developing models; rather we use or customize existing models to our
conditions.
Question: The crop water requirement and base flow estimation models should be used.
The crop water requirement should consider different cropping patterns expected
in future planned schemes.
Answer: Comment well taken.
Question: What is the purpose of using different models unless one is to select an
appropriate model? What if MIKEBASIN is used for lower basin and HEC-
ResSIM for upper or both are applied instead of WEAP?
Answer: The purpose of using different models was to experiment with different models.
Session III- Watershed modeling
1. Problems of erosion and sediment transport and modeling framework of the Blue
Nile (Seleshi and Tammo)
Overview of sediment transport has been given. The causes, degree, extent and impacts of
land degradation on hydrologic structures, productivity, and livelihood both upstream and
Minutes summary
288
downstream were highlighted. Emphasis was given to the effects sediment deposition on the
downstream sites and the problems of data quality and availability.
Question: Is it not possible to use seasonal curve development? If not what do you suggest?
Answer: Seasonal based type possibly based on monthly bases can be used, but not one curve
for all the seasons.
Question: It is known that data shortage and quality is a problem in the Nile system,
especially in Ethiopia. How come that your calibration results based on the same data is said
to be good?
Answer: The low efficiency obtained by the model can be explained by the data quality.
2. Impact WSM Interventions in Gumera Watershed (Mekuannint and Seleshi)
Mekuanint explained that land degradation is a series threat in Gumara watershed as reflected
in the form of soil erosion, which lead to significant loss of soil productivity and reduced life
time of reservoirs. Used SWAT model to quantify sediment loss, identify vulnerable areas,
and study impact of filter strip on sediment loss.
Question: As mentioned by Dr. Seleshi, Gumera and Ribb catchments are characterized by
high flood, especially during the rains season. This results in missing of records from
the gauging stations. How did you account for this in your analysis?
Answer: we developed sediment-discharge rating curve for Gumera River, and we estimate
the missing data from this rating curve.
Question: How did you consider the land use land cover for future application of your model?
Answer: for future application of the model, we need to use recent satellite images to
determine the land use/land cover data for an area of interest.
Question: What are the main factors governing the filter strips? Reduction of erosion by 72%
is difficult to believe.
Answer: In the universal soil loss equation, one of the factors is conservation practice (P).
After we calibrated and validated the model, we changed the P-factor instead of the
existing conservation practice and we run the model. The result was a reduction in
sediment yield by 58% to 74%. These results are consistent with soil and water
conservation research plots in the basin.
3. Development of Rainfall-Runoff –sediment Discharge relationship in Blue Nile
Basin, Ethiopia (Fekadu et al.)
Fekadu explained that the quantification of components of the hydrologic cycle is a
crucial step in integrated watershed management. However, data scarcity, accurate
methods to estimate the components are challenging that advanced tools are required to
overcome the problem. The study suggested that SWAT model simulates well both
streamflow and sediment yield for Blue Nile basin.
Question: From your topic, we expect some relationship between rainfall-sediment-runoff, if
there is any and if not your point of view. So, what is the relationship? Is it
exponential, linear…?
Minutes summary
289
Answer: I missed the last slide which shows the rainfall-runoff-sediment relationship. But as
Dr. Seleshi mentioned, rainfall or runoff do not have direct relation with sediment.
The peak of sediment comes before that of rainfall and runoff.
Question: In discussing the relation between processes like rainfall, runoff and sediment, scale
is one of the basic issues that should be considered. So at what scale does your model
perform well?
Answer: I did not compare different scales, but it is better with small resolution DEM (only
obtained 90 m resolution).
Question: How is groundwater 65% of Blue Nile and 80% of flow occurs in flood season-
during the four months (July –October only)?
Answer: I did not say groundwater contributes 65% of Blue Nile, but I said that rainfall
contribute 65% of GW that can be base flow and can be runoff at downstream basin.
4. Integrated sediment transport modeling using SWAT-SoBEK Models: the case of
Blue Nile River Basin (Getnet and Yasir)
Getnet explained sediment transport as a process involving soil erosion, transport and
deposition. He also explained the impacts of sediment transport. The study attempted to
identify sensitive regions for erosion and deposition in the basin. It was explained that
SWAT model can be used for Ethiopian Watersheds, but as it does not recognize
storages/reservoirs, it was linked with SOBEK to simulate the downstream situation.
SWAT estimation good- under data scarce situation. SOBEK for the lower part estimated
with good accuracy.
Question: SWAT results are present on monthly time step. Does it also perform well on daily
basis?
Answer: Yes, the daily time step simulation calibration showed that it gives good estimates.
Question: Sediment transport is passive. Did you try to model the surface processes?
Answer: Yes, SWAT incorporates land use, soil and topography and management practices in
addition to rainfall and runoff volume.
Question: It was presented by Bashar and Eltayeb that the annual rte of sedimentation in
Roseries Reservoir is 34Mm3/year but your estimate is about 19Mm3/year. Why this
discrepancy?
Answer: From the report that Roseries dam has lost one third of its capacity (3000Mm3), and
if you divide the original volume by 50 and multiply by 1/3, you would get20Mm3.
Therefore, 19Mm3 is comparable with 20Mm3 loss.
Question: You are using sedimentation and erosion interchangeably. But sediment delivery is
affected by different catchments factors. How do you relate that?
Answer: Sediment delivery ratio- the previous version of SWAT uses USLE and hence
requires sediment delivery ratio, but the latest version uses MUSLE takes care of the
sediment delivery ratio that we should not worry about it.
Question: Is wash load difficult to model?
Answer: if there is data to calibrate such as bed load, one can use transport formula that is
based on concentration such as Delft 3D.
Minutes summary
290
5. Predicting Discharge and Erosion for the Abay with simple Model (Tammo S.
Steenhuis et al)
The presenter explained that subsurface flow is an important component in the hydrological
flows in the landscape. Including this surface flows improves simulation models prediction of
both river flows and locations of discharges.
Question: About the erosion intensity at different slopes, is it possible that we see higher
erosion in the flat lands because of higher cropping intensity and degree of land
management? Have you tested it on non-agricultural lands? Does it relate to high
kinetic energy due to cumulative effects of water in the flat lands?
Answer: Erosion requires overland flow. There is less overland flow on the hillsides than in
the bottom lands. Amount of overland flow is related exponentially to kinetic energy.
Certain flow can carry a maximum amount of sediment for a specific velocity. If this
maximum is reached depends on the erodability of the soil.
Question: Pipe flow dominates gully formation. You are studying groundwater development
(rising). Have you included the data to justify the formation of gully erosion?
Answer: There are many pipes in the Debra mewi watersheds. High water tables are required
for pipes to be formed. Gully formation by slumping banks is also caused by high
water tables. It is my hypothesis that gully initiation is due to a pipe. Once formed,
both mechanisms take place.
Question: Predicting discharge and erosion from the Abbay river with a simple model – the
result of your presentation are very challenging; like the infiltration of water on steep
slopes is higher than on moderate slopes. Is this for localized conditions or can be
generalized?
Answer: In the watershed, we examined near Woldea Sekota and the SCRP watersheds at
Maybar and AnditTid had all high infiltration rates on the hill sides. Especially, if
some small furrows are built, most water will infiltrate. The Anjeni case was
exception. Water infiltration rates were less because the lands were cultivated.
6. Modeling Rainfall-Runoff and Erosion in the Blue Nile Using A Modified Soil
and Water Assessment Tool Model (Zakary M. Easton et al)
The presenter explained that the famous curve number developed for USA does not reflect the
situation in monsoonal rainfall as it under estimates runoff. This shortcoming can be
overcome if longer periods are considered. Integrating water balance into SWAT provides
reasonable estimates of runoff and sediment.
Question: What are the main factors affection the results of the outputs of SWAT Model? Is it
the quality of data, or the way the data are prepared for the model or the experience of
the user?
Answer: The out put of SWAT depends on data quality, data preparation, data calibration and
experience of the modeler.
Minutes summary
291
7. Assessment of hydrological controls on gully formation and upland erosion near
Lake Tana BDU Students/Advisors (BDU Students and Advisors)
It was reported that soil loss was severe at the beginning of the rainy season, decreases with
time and finally negative loss (deposition). The rate of soil loss increased down the slope.
Prediction based on USLE correlates very well with observed data for the upland erosion, for
rill and inter rill erosion. But, there is a strong correlation between water table above gully
bottom and the amount of gully erosion due to gully erosion. Gully erosion is caused mostly
by the sub surface flow.
Session IV- Policy and Institutions
1. Overview of Policy and Institutions Component [Dr. Amare]
This presentation gave an overview of the policy and institution component of the Upstream-
Downstream project. The presentation outline the processes involved in this component which
included Rapid Appraisal, stakeholder workshop, and in-depth policy and institutional
studies. The presentation also highlighted the outputs that this component is producing
including working papers, proceedings, MSc theses, and Research reports.
2. Assessment of Local Land and water institutions in the Blue Nile” [Dr. Fitsum]
This presentation looked at broad institutional issues in the Blue Nile, particularly in the Tana
Sub-Basin. The presenter began with an explanation of institutions as being the ‗rules of the
game‘ and organizations as being the social entities established to make sure these rules are
followed. In carrying out an analysis of institutional arrangement issues, Dr. Fitsum presented
a framework that was developed for this exercise. This involved the following criteria to look
for:
1. Clear objective
2. Linkage between formal and informal institutions
3. Adaptiveness
4. Appropriateness of scale
5. Compliance capacity
The presentation highlighted the methods that were used in this analysis which included a
literature review, stakeholder analysis, focus group discussions and institutional analysis. The
results at this stage were then presented in the categories of institutional arrangements,
problems in institutional arrangement, scale and enforcement capacity.
Question: As you said on of the problems in dealing with institutions is the issue of informal
institutions which would take over the mandate of the formal institutions. What are
these informal institutions that you have in mind?
Minutes summary
292
Answer: There are unwritten institutions which substitute the role of formal (written)
institutions. For example lack of IWRM and EIAs, although the policy advocates for
them.
Question: Your presentation was very general. Many irrigation schemes are not sustainable
due to institutional failures. To what extent has your study looked at irrigation
schemes which are failing due to institutional issues? Also land tenure is a problem in
this area. To what extent is this a gap in institutional arrangements?
Answer: There are documented cases of successful and failing irrigation schemes which we
did look at. What we see is that traditional schemes have been more successful. For
example Water User Associations have had stronger capacity to enforce the ‗rules‘. In
terms of land tenure we have found that this is an incentive-based policy tool.
3. Benefit sharing framework in Transboundary River Basins: The Case of Eastern Nile
[Tesfaye]
This presentation gave a background to increasing demand for water which has lead to, in
many places, a water crisis. The main point that was highlighted early on was that ‗forging
cooperation is key‘. This presentation pointed out that there should be a stronger emphasis on
sharing of benefits rather than just sharing of water. It was at this point that the concept of
benefit sharing was introduced. Despite many agreements over the years for the Nile Basin
effective transboundary relations still have not been achieved. What the presenter indicated is
needed is for a ‗basket of benefits‘ to be identified both water and non-water and to see how
these can be achieved by all in question. The presenter advocated for 1) a benefit sharing
treaty and 2) a sound financial framework in order to make this possible. A word of caution
was also given in that the perception of benefits alter over time so there is a need to revisit
these benefit sharing agreements and terms at certain time intervals.
Question: Dr. Abdalla pointed out that river basin management is a way of taking the river as
one unit and learning how to mange it as a whole. He asked whether this option had
been considered.
Answer: The Nile is considered as a whole, and as we look at the Eastern Nile we also look at
this as a whole part. The Cooperative Framework is stuck currently but once it is
resolved it can give a better opportunity to look at benefit sharing for the whole Nile.
Comment: This is what we are doing at ENTRO now. We are looking at the whole system by
removing the borders and studying how the basin works and then putting the borders
back to see where the benefits are being gained and where they should be going.
4. Transboundary Water Governance Institutional Architecture: Reflections from
Ethiopia and Sudan [Everisto Mapedza et al.]
Everisto began his presentation with the main message that whatever arrangements are made
it ‗has to bring benefits to all stakeholders‘. The presentation pointed out that if sharing of
water is to happen along the Nile then there has to be some form of cross-border cooperation.
The presenter outline a number of steps which have occurred over the years towards
cooperation, listing agreements, surveys, the Cooperative Framework and also the formation
of the NBI. The presentation highlighted also the Shared Vision and Strategic Action Program
Minutes summary
293
which have been developed. In terms of institutional architecture, the presentation listed key
components which need to be established. These include transparency (data), fairness (gain
legitimacy), meaningful powers (with accountability to US and DS), participation as a
process, nested institutional arrangements, transboundary institution should be connected to
other institutions, and others.
Question: You have stated that ―securitizing‘ water is one of the impediments that would
inhibit a basin wide cooperation. Then, what would be, in your opinion, the way out to
―de-securitize water‖?
Answer: De-securitization of water can be achieved through broader regional economic
integration which goes beyond water alone as what is being done within the SADC
region.
5. Prospect of Payment for Environmental Service in the Blue Nile Basin: Example from
Koga and Gumera Watersheds, Ethiopia [Amare et al]
The presenter opened by saying that there is a lot of scope for institutionalizing PES, however
fully-fledged user financed PES may not be viable and that user and state co-financing would
have to take place. The presentation highlighted the problems occurring between the upstream
and downstream and showcased some of the onsite and offsite impacts. The question posed
was ‗How to internalize these effects?‖ The premise that PES will work on is that by
improving water and land management in the upstream part of the basin can provide
ecosystem services to the downstream. The role of PES would then be to internalize benefits
and channel to the upstream as an incentive to pursue conservation practices. In order to
arrange PES it is necessary to see what the Willingness to Pay (WTP) and Willingness to
Compensate (WTC) are amongst people who would eventually be part of a PES scheme.
These were established through a household survey. The results indicated that while there was
willingness to pay and willingness to compensate, the amounts were not enough to make the
scheme feasible. The presentation also showed what some of the key determinants of WTP
and WTC were. For WTP the key determinants were asset holdings, household factors and
institutional factors. For WTC, the determinants were asset holdings, household factors, and
institutional factors as well as access to credit and access to extension.
Question: Are there any experiences in applying this concept? I noticed that your study relies
completely on results of the questionnaire, but will people actually pay? What is the
sample size and how representative is it-if we are to rely on the survey results then we
make sure these are good.
Answer: PES is a relatively new concept. It is being implemented around the world, and also
in Africa in Tanzania, Uganda and South Africa. PES is about understanding US-DS
issues and linkages. It requires cooperation of US and DS land users to alleviate the
issues. You have to take a sample as cannot survey the whole Nile. This is a nested
approach-you can derive implications from this scale to other scales.
Question: You gave a new meaning to US-DS in your presentation than what we have been
generally using in the project. What is the role of the government institutions in PES?
Minutes summary
294
Answer: Currently it is mainly the Government that finances sediment management. The
Government mist support institutionally as well as financially the communities
involved in such a scheme.
6. Determinants of adoption of improved land and water management practices in the
Blue Nile: exploring strategies for outscaling of promising technologies [Solomon et al]
This presentation showed that this study had three main objectives including 1) identifying
agricultural water management technologies, 2) to find out the determinants of adoption, and
3) to understand how these could be upscaled. The methods used in this study involved the
use of a stratified random sampling technique which identified 325 households to be
surveyed. A number of variables were identified to a total of 27 which covered aspects such
as institutional and policy variables, farm level attributes and plot level attributes. The results
of the study were derived by using two main methods: 1) Logit and 2) Tobit and truncated
models. The first method- Logit- was used to derive the probability of adopting conservation
technologies. This founds that the following variables were very influential: plot size, land
registration, fertility, soil depth and land affected by erosion. Other variables which meant
that farmers were less likely to adopt conservation techniques were: tenure (rented in), tenure
(sharecropping) and slope of plot (flat). The Tobit and truncated models were used to
understand the intensity of use of conservation techniques. The main variables affecting this
were: plot distance, plot area tenure and soil type. In conclusion the presentation showed that
security of tenure affected both adoption and intensity of use of technologies.
Question: Clarification of why adoption of conservation of soil and water conservation
technologies is positively correlated to plot size?
Answer: Farmers with bigger plot size are more likely to adopt conservation technologies than
those with smaller plots. This is because they think that these technologies occupy
space which reduces land for cultivation.
7. Lessons from Upstream Soil Conservation Measures to Mitigate Soil Erosion and its
Impact on Upstream and Downstream Users of the Nile River [Yihnew G/Sellassie et al]
The overall premise and conclusion of this presentation was that by using certain soil and
water conservation measures it can increase productivity. This presentation outlined a study
which ahs been going on to test a number of key soil and water conservation techniques and
to evaluate them.
8. Impact and rehabilitation of floods downstream high Aswan Dam [Lady from Egypt]
This presentation showed how the upstream situation of the Blue Nile has direct impact on the
Nile River in Egpyt, as seen at the High Aswan Dam.
Comments from Dr. Anne
1. As an important indicator of the validity of a CVM study, the price of the good should
significantly and negatively impact upon the WTC/WTP upstream users for improved
Minutes summary
295
land and water management. This is because start bid is an essential variable to
determine mean and aggregate WTP/WTC. However, your result completely
contradicts this assumption, and under this condition, I am not clear how you are able
to compute mean and aggregate WTC/WTP.
2. The other problem is associated with aggregation of differently located environmental
services; this may create an issue of implementation of PES projects. As the watershed
dummy indicates that the probability of a household WTP/WTC for Koga watershed is
greater then Gumara watershed. And this specification greatly affects (reduce) WTP in
Gumara watershed by over estimating the mean WTP during implementation.
3. The finding of watershed dummy variable also suggests that there may be a possibility
to have a variation in the determined factors between the two watersheds? Because
with a similar study, Koga watershed we find that different result between the start bid
and WTP variable.
4. Generally, I suggest that disaggregation of specification may show many of the
problem associated with CV study.
Presentation of Group Works
In this session, four groups presented their group work.
Group I: Policy and Institutions in the Blue Nile
The group outlined key lessons learned, identified gaps in: institutions, policies and
knowledge; identified stakeholders and suggested the way forward. Among the key lessons
awareness of relation on downstream & impacts, the roles and responsibilities of
organizations & problems in institutional assessments, local community commitment etc.
were mentioned. Lack of mechanisms for promoting restricted livestock management, (e.g.
Zero grazing), was mentioned as one of the institution and policy related gaps.
Group II: Water Allocation Simulation Model
The group reported on key lessons learned, strength, key gaps, mechanism for data sharing,
key stakeholders, and the way forward. Among the strength outlined was ―basin scale results
prepared jointly by researchers from across the basin‖, but there is still discrepancy in
estimates current water use and even flow. Lack of linkage with other components was also
mentioned as a problem. Thus, it was suggested that focus will be made on linkage between
watershed, water allocation and policy. It was also suggested to add constraints to model at
the downstream end to take into account downstream water requirements
Group III: Watershed Modeling
The group summarized the lessons learned by stating that subsurface flow is an important
component in the hydrology of the watershed, especially for determining the location of
runoff areas and type of erosion. It was learned that other models can be combined with
SWAT to simulate channel processes. SWAT can be parameterized to predict monthly
Minutes summary
296
discharges and sediment loads in rivers. As a gap, it watershed modeling should be integrated
with livelihood issues on the landscape. Distributed outputs are validated only at the outlet of
the watershed at monthly time step, which may not be valid at watershed scale. It was
suggested that more models are needed to simulate the watershed process.
Group IV: Knowledge sharing and Impact Pathway
This group identified target groups/stakeholders for knowledge sharing like policy makers,
research community including: researchers, scientific societies, higher education institutions,
Implementers, including: extension system, NGOs; Nile region, including: other riparian
countries and regional organizations (e.g NBI, etc) and farmers. Also, they outlined what
knowledge to share with the stakeholders, what knowledge activity to use to share for the
different stakeholders and the ―how and who-operational details‖. Finally, the group requested
participants to suggest ―Top 3 to do‖. Accordingly, the following prioritized additional
dissemination activities were suggested:
Producing videos
Regional workshop/training for young researchers from three countries to come
together to learn how to use models and analyze own data.
Training/workshops for those in the Ministries
Use NBI network to help in dissemination
Researchers working together- NB capacity building unit—building platform for
researchers to share knowledge
General Discussion
A lengthy and heated debate was conducted on issues related to data quality and sharing,
linkage and integration between the components of the project, the project lifetime and the
gap to be addressed.
Data quality and sharing
The issue of contradiction free information bases/data has been raised by most of the groups.
Consequently, there was a heated debate on the same issue during the plenary session. It was
suggested to get data from the source of the data, but that has been difficult so far. Data
sharing is a dilemma, which is forcing people to use secondary data, which leads to high
discrepancy. There was an understanding that the real problem is not the absence of data but
its availability is hindered by the historical hydro politics. This is believed to be related to
lack of enough confidence building. In line with this, Dr. Seleshi appealed to the decision
makers participating in the workshop to help in ensuring the sharing of available data.
Others argued that the only way out is the data protocol which is under development by
ENTRO. It was explained that the process has been completed, but has to be signed by higher
officials. It was also suggested that attempt be made to generate primary data like
sediment/wash data by having gauging stations, but it was reminded that institutions like
IWMI do not have the mandate to take measurements. Others argued that the presentations of
the previous day were based on SCRP data, collected by the project, which imply that there
Minutes summary
297
should be a strategy for projects to be able to collect primary data. Currently, a lot of projects
are running in the basin and ENTRO can develop a mega project for data collection by
adopting a standardized data protocol. Besides, it was strongly suggested to include
gauging/data collection in the next phase of the project, as it is difficult to continue to count
on scanty data. In the mean time, the following suggestions were made:
o Link Research Institutes/Universities with development efforts in the basin like
with Tana basin development
o Also link with national institutions working in the basin;
IWMI has linkage with NBI and Universities
IWMI is facilitating research in Nile basin- and this can be
strengthened
o Institutions like IWMI can do capacity building in terms of training and
facilities for the government institutions which can do the recording
Linkage and Integration between the components of the Project
The link between the first two components is not difficult- but to link with institutions and
policy is an important issue. One way to integrate the components is to assess certain
watersheds taking the basin as its entirety than country by country basis.
It was also suggested that we follow a two steps- gap filling approach; like understanding the
economic implication of land degradation, and economic impact of water allocation and
synthesis the results into reports. If there are viable technologies coming up from the model, it
is possible to follow-up to see the economic, policy and institutions aspects.
It was recommended to change the term ―water allocation‖ to ―water utilization or water
budgeting‖ since the term has connotations beyond the mandate of scientists.
About the projects life time and the gap to be addressed
There are several research questions to be answered. We should sort out those
which can be addressed within the time left
Mean while there was a strong notion that the project be extended
Summary and conclusion (by the facilitator)
Thread- off between being focused and covering the issues
Climate change scenarios should be considered in the future studies
Communication to the stakeholders is important aspect which should be done in a
realistic manner
When extending the project, the impact downstream should be considered up to Egypt
About data sharing- we should start from ourselves, if we can make it available before
demanding the policy makers or others
The fact that young molders are emerging from within the basin is encouraging output
of the project
The progress so far is quite optimistic
List of Posters
298
List of Posters
These are the titles and the authors of the posters displayed during the workshop (for details refer to CD):
Determinants of Household Willingness to Pay for Water to Boost Sustainability of
Water Supply Sources: Achefer, Amhara Region, Ethiopia
Aschalew Demeke, Tammo Steenhuis, Charles Nicholson, Amy Collick and Robert Blake
Assessment of Hydrological Controls on Gully Formation near Lake Tana, Northern
Highlands of Ethiopia
By: Tigist Y. Tebebu, Anteneh Z. Abiy, Helen E. Dahlke, Eric D. White, Amy S. Collick,
Zachary M. Easton, and Tammo S. Steenhuis
Assessment of adoption behavior of soil and water conservation practices in Koga
Watershed, Highland of Ethiopia
Fikru A. Mengstie, Amy S. Collick, Fistum H, Tammo S. steenhuis
SWAT based Runoff and sediment yield modeling of Gumara Watershed
Meqaunint Tenaw, Seleshi B. Awulachew
Payment for Environmental Service to Enhance Environmental Productivity in the Blue
Nile Basin
Habtamu T. Kassahun, David R. Lee, Charles F. Nicholson, Gregory L. Poe, Amy S. Collick,
and Tammo S. Steenhuis
Modeling Rainfall and Runoff Relationships Atmaybar Research Unit, Wollo, Ethiopia
Haimanote K. Bayabil Tammo S. Steenhuis, Seleshi B. Awulachew, Amy S. Collick
Assessment of Upland Erosion Processes and Farmers’ Perception of Land
Conservation near Lake Tana, Ethiopia
Assefa D. Zegeye, Tammo S. Steenhuis, Robert W. Blake, Amy S.Collick, Selamyihun
Kidanu
Application of the SWAT Model in the Ethiopian Highlands
Biniam Biruk, Eric D. White, Zachary M. Easton, Matthew McCartney & Tammo Steenhuis
Modified Soil and Water Assessment Tool (SWAT) for Modeling Rainfall/Runoff in
Monsoonal Climates
Eric D. White, Zachary M. Easton, Daniel R. Fuka, and Tammo S. Steenhuis
Rainfall, Runoff and Soil Loss Relationships for Northern Highlands of Ethiopia
Tegenu A. Engda, Tammo S. Steenhuis, Amy S. Collick, Zachary M. Easton, Seleshi B.
Awulachew
List of Posters
299
Assessment of Sustainable Watershed Management Approach Case Study Lenche Dima,
Tsegure Eyesus and Dijjil Watershed
Tesfaye Habtamu, Tammo Steenhuis, Amy S. Collick
Assessment of hydrological controls on gully formation near Lake Tana, Northern
Highlands of Ethiopia
Tigist Y. Tebebu, Anteneh Z. Abiy, Assafa Derebe, Helen E. Dahlke, Eric D. White, Amy S.
Collick, Selemyihun Kidnau, Farzad Dadgari, Mathew McCartney and Tammo S. Steenhuis
Annexes
300
Annexes
List of participants
301
List of Participants
Professor Abdalla A. Ahmed UNESCO–Chair in Water Resources P. O. Box 1244 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 00249-183779599 Fax: 00249-183-797758 Email: [email protected] Abdel Hadi Abdel Wahab Associate Research Professor Agricultural Research Corporation P. O. Box 126 Wad Medani Sudan Tel: 00249-511-843226/ 251-911-315551 Fax: 00249-511-843213 Email: [email protected] Abreham Melesse Cornell/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-758221 Email: [email protected] Ahmed Khalid Eldaw Senior Regional Coordinator Eastern Nile Technical Regional Office (ENTRO) P. O. Box 27173 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-461130/ 251-911-864921 Email: [email protected]
Ahmed Mohamed Adam, PhD Al-Badr International Company P. O. Box 878 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 249-511-859-207/ 249-912-320-485 Email: [email protected] Akiça Bahri, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) Regional Office for Africa Accra Ghana Tel: 233-51-60206 Email: [email protected] Alemayehu Habte (IWMI PhD student) Arba Minch University P. O. Box 21 Arba Minch Ethiopia Tel: 251-913-095345 Email: [email protected] Amare Haileslassie, PhD International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172244/ 251-911-735747 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
302
Amy Collick PhD (Assistant Professor/Project Leader) Bahir Dar University/Cornell University P. O. Box 26 Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-913-321709 Email: [email protected] Aschalew Demeke Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-968918 Email: [email protected] Asferachew Abate, PhD Canadian International Development Agency (CIDA) P. O. Box 170685 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-243043 Fax: 251-113-715744 Email: [email protected] Ashagrie Gibtan Ejigu Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-372582 Email: [email protected]; [email protected] Assefa Derese Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-582-264236 Email: [email protected]; [email protected] Aster Denekew Yilma
International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172194/ 251-911-601994 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Aynalem Asheber Forum for Social Studies (FSS) P. O. Box 25864 code 1000 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-297887/ 251-911-344772 Fax: 251-116-297889 Email: [email protected] Prof. Bahiru Zewdie Forum for Social Studies (FSS) P. O. Box 25864 code 1000 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-297887 Fax: 251-116-297889 Email: [email protected] Beshir Keddi Jimma University P. O. Box 307 Jimma Ethiopia Tel: 251-471-110102/ 251-917-802047 Fax: 251-471-110934 Email: [email protected]; [email protected]
List of participants
303
Biniam Biruk Ashagre Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-374073 Email: [email protected] Birhanu Adinew, PhD Ethiopian Economic Association P. O. Box 34282 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel. 251-911-407207 Email: [email protected] Professor Camal Abdo Khartoum University P. O. Box 321 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 249-122-123-825 Fax: 249-183-785-432 Email: [email protected] Deborah Bossio, PhD, Team Leader International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172193/ 251-913-82 13 51 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Desalegn Chemeda, PhD Haremaya University P. O. Box 19 Haramaya Ethiopia Tel: 251-255-530313/ 251-915-74 04 95 Email: [email protected]
E. V. Jagannathan World Bank P. O. Box 5515 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-115-176064/ 251-911-501197 Fax: 251-116-627717 Email: [email protected] Eltayeb Ahmed Khalifa University of the Blue Nile Sudan - Wal Madani P. O. Box 318 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 00249-910-259-672 Fax: 00249-511857900 Email: [email protected] Everisto Mapedza, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172201/ 251-913-598039 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Fasikaw Dessie Arba Minch University P. O. Box 21 Arba Minch Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-984993 Fax: 251-046-8810279 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
304
Fikadu Fetene Arba Minch University P. O. Box 21 Arba Minch Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-372479 Email: [email protected] Fikru Assefa Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251--13-298351 Email: [email protected] Fiseha Behulu Muluneh Arba Minch University P. O. Box 21 Arba Minch Ethiopia Tel: 251-468-810775/ 251-912-089440 Fax: 251-468-810279 Email: [email protected] Fitsum Hagos, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172191/ 251-911-55169616 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Genet Ellala Water Works Design & Supervision Enterprises P. O. Box 2561 Addis Ababa
Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-636871/ 251-911-823532 Email: [email protected] Geremew Aragaw National Meteorological Agency P. O. Box 1090 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-115-552299/ 251-911-995476 Email: [email protected] Getnet Dubale Ethiopian Institute of Agricultural Research (EIAR) P. O. Box 32 Debre Zeit Ethiopia Tel: 251-910-100289 Email: [email protected] Habtamu Tilahun Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University P. O. Box 1174 Addis Ababa, Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-034382 Email: [email protected] Haimanote Kesate Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-912-124028 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
305
Ibrahim Adam Ahmed Ministry of Irrigation and Water Resources P. O. Box 878 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 00249-122-192711 Email: [email protected] James Ramsay BRL/MoWR Victoria, B.C Canada 1-250-598-4415 251-910-196-376 Email: [email protected] Kamalddin E. Bashar PhD UNESCO–Chair in Water Resources P. O. Box 1244 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 00249-122-184-007 Fax: 00249-183-797758 Email: [email protected] Karma Mahmoud Attia Deputy Director Nile Research Institute-National Water Research Center P. O. Box 13621 Cairo Egypt Tel: 42184229/101265930 Fax: 42187152 Email: [email protected] Katrien Descheemaeker, PhD International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI)/International Water Management Institute (IWMI) P. O. Box 5689
Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-117-172252/251-913-403312 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Kim Geheb International Water Management Institute (IWMI)/CGIAR Challenge Program on Water and Food (CPWF) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172296/ 251-913-110022 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Lisa-Maria Rebelo, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172198 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Mark Giordano, PhD, Team Leader International Water Management Institute (IWMI) 127 Sunil Mawatha Pelawatte Battaramulla Sri Lanka Mailing Address: P. O. Box 2075 Colombo Sri Lanka Tel: +94 11 288000/2787404/2784080 Fax +94 11 2786854
List of participants
306
Matthew McCartney, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172246/ 251-911-739711 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Mekuria Beyene, PhD Nile Basin Initiative (NBI)-Water Resources Planning and Management (WRPM) P. O. Box 60173 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-467011/251-911-914626 Fax: 251-116-467014 Email: [email protected] Mequanint Tenaw Water Resource Specialist Ministry of Water Resources P. O. Box 5747 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-611111/251-911-45 77 47 Email: [email protected] Professor Mohamad Abdel Meguid, PhD Channel Maintenance Research Institute Elkanater P. O. Box 12351 Kalyolia Egypt Tel: 202-4218-9596 Fax: 202-4218-9596 Email: [email protected] Mohanad Osman Mustafa Ministry of Irrigation and Water Resources P. O. Box 318
Wal Madani Sudan Tel: 00249-912-249-020 Fax: 00249-511-857-900 Email: [email protected] Moudathir Suleiman Ramdan Elnil UNESCO–Chair in Water Resources P. O. Box 1422 Khartoum Sudan Tel: 249-0122-832-456 Email: [email protected] Mulualem Fetene, Student Addis Ababa University P. O. Box 20830 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-711633 Email: [email protected] Nadia Manning-Thomas International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172251/251-911-811953 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Nata Tadesse, Associate Professor, PhD Mekelle University P. O. Box 231 Mekelle Ethiopia Tel: 251-344-410972/ 251-914-300150 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
307
Nebil Miftah Ministry of Agriculture and Rural Development (MoARD) P. O. Box 62347 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-115-518040/251-911-733749 Email: [email protected]/ [email protected] Nehal Adel Mohamed Strategic Research Unit-National Water Research Center Cairo Egypt Tel: 4218-3058 Mobile: 0123965650 Email: [email protected] Reitberger Bianca International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172000/ Email: [email protected] Selamyihun Kidanu, PhD Sustainable Water Harvesting and Institutional Strengthening in Amhara Region (SWHISA) P. O. Box 325 Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-582-222011/ 251-918-707601 Fax: 251-582-222012 Email: [email protected] Semunesh Golla Ministry of Water Resources Addis Ababa
Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-610883/251-911-123708 Fax: 251-116-61 10 09 Email: [email protected] Solomon Abate, PhD Eastern Nile Technical Regional Office (ENTRO) Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-461130/ 251-911-470110 Email: [email protected] Solomon Gebreselassie International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172252/ 251-911-403291 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Solomon Getachew Science and Technology Ministry Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-381785 Email: [email protected] Solomon Kibret International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172000/ 251-911-652978 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
308
Solomon Seyoum Demissie, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172000/ 251-912-055008 Email: [email protected] Tadesse Alemayehu Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-750425 Email: [email protected] Tammo S. Steenhuis, PhD Cornell University P. O. Box 206 Filey Robb Hall Ithaca New York 14853 USA Tel: 607-2552489 Fax: 607-2554080 Email: [email protected] Taye Assefa, PhD Forum for Social Studies (FSS) P. O. Box 25864 code 1000 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-297888 Email: [email protected] Tegenu Ashagrie Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University P. O. Box 26 Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-335638 Email: [email protected]
Teklu Erkossa, PhD. International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-172249 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected] Tena Alamirew, PhD Haremaya University P. O. Box 138 Haramaya Ethiopia Tel: 251-255-530320/ 251-915-330471 Fax: 251-255-530331 Email: [email protected] Tesfaye Habtamu Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-339549 Email: [email protected]/ [email protected] Tesfaye Tafesse, Associate Professor, PhD Addis Ababa University (AAU) and Forum for Social Studies (FSS) P. O. Box 1176 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-111-239721/ 251-911-882375 Fax: 251-111-239729 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
309
Teshome Atinafe Head, Irrigation and Drainage Development Studies Department Ministry of Water Resources P. O. Box 100894 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-637136/ 251-911-611238 Fax: 251-116-637048 Email: [email protected] Tewodros Negash Addis Ababa University (AAU) Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-111-223776/ 251-911-402988 Email: [email protected] Tigist Yazie Tebebu Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University P. O. Box 1835 Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-827729 Email: [email protected] Tilahun Amede, PhD International Livestock Research Institute (ILRI)/International Water Management Institute (IWMI) P. O. Box 5689 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-117-172217/ 251-911-230135 Fax: 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected]
Tilahun Hordofa, PhD Ethiopian Institute of Agricultural Research (EIAR) P. O. Box 436 Nazareth Ethiopia Tel: 251-221-111449/ 251-911-842492 Fax: 251-221-114622/23 Email: [email protected] Tilashwork Chanie Student Cornell University/Bahir Dar University P. O. Box 488 (Debre Birhan) Bahir Dar Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-792181 Email: [email protected] Tolessa Debele, PhD Ethiopian Institute of Agricultural Research (EIAR) P. O. Box 2003 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-116-460134/ 251-912-021610 Fax: 251-116-461294 Email: [email protected] Yasir A. Mohamed, PhD International Water Management Institute (IWMI) East Africa & Nile Basin Office P. O. Box 2589 Addis Ababa, Ethiopia Tel. 251-116-172247 251-911-399681 Fax 251-116-172001 Email: [email protected]
List of participants
310
Yibeltal Tiruneh Food and Agriculture Organization of the United Nations (FAO) P. O. Box 5536 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-115-511394/98/ 251-911-605898 Fax: 251-115-515266 Email: [email protected] Yihenew Gebreselassie, PhD Amhara Regional Agricultural Research Institute (ARARI) P. O. Box 527 Bahir Dar
Ethiopia Tel: 251-582-205173/ 251-918-765823 Fax: 251-582-205174 Email: [email protected] Yilma Seleshi, PhD, Associate Professor in Hydrology Addis Ababa University P. O. Box 385 Addis Ababa Ethiopia Tel: 251-911-222440 Email: [email protected]